impudent_a he_o must_v say_v no._n all_o therefore_o he_o can_v reply_v be_v that_o the_o minister_n of_o his_o church_n after_o a_o perusal_n of_o scripture_n find_v these_o verity_n contain_v there_o and_o propose_v all_o to_o he_o as_o thing_n certain_o reveal_v therefore_o he_o believe_v they_o here_o we_o come_v to_o the_o trial_n of_o protestant_n faith_n and_o mark_v well_o how_o avoidable_o they_o be_v force_v to_o grant_v that_o when_o a_o pretend_a revelation_n proponent_n sectary_n must_v own_v a_o infallible_a proponent_n be_v not_o manifest_a for_o they_o but_o lie_v if_o at_o all_o very_o dark_o in_o scripture_n it_o must_v be_v bring_v to_o light_v and_o make_v more_o clear_a by_o some_o teacher_n some_o one_o or_o other_o if_o it_o have_v influence_n into_o faith_n must_v apply_v it_o and_o propose_v it_o to_o a_o hearer_n as_o god_n certain_a word_n without_o this_o application_n make_v by_o a_o certain_a teacher_n no_o christian_a can_v but_o most_o temerarious_o admit_v of_o the_o revelation_n as_o divine_a and_o certain_a 10._o demand_v therefore_o in_o the_o last_o place_n whether_o all_o the_o minister_n in_o england_n be_v able_a to_o propound_v certain_o and_o infallible_o the_o above_o mention_v doctrine_n dark_o at_o least_o and_o indeed_o not_o all_o contain_v in_o scripture_n as_o god_n reveal_v truth_n to_o any_o the_o answer_n must_v be_v negative_a they_o can_v for_o if_o they_o propose_v they_o infallible_o minister_n be_v infallible_a ergo_fw-la say_v i_o none_o can_v believe_v these_o doctrine_n for_o god_n certain_a revelation_n because_o the_o proposal_n of_o they_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o apply_v the_o revelation_n be_v defective_a weak_a dubious_a and_o uncertain_a the_o faith_n therefore_o which_o follow_v upon_o so_o unsteedy_a a_o teach_v not_o but_o be_v answerable_o roll_a that_o be_v in_o one_o word_n no_o faith_n at_o all_o and_o protestant_n have_v no_o better_a 11._o some_o perhaps_o may_v say_v though_o protestant_n have_v no_o great_a certainty_n of_o the_o doctrine_n above_o specify_v because_o they_o be_v neither_o express_o in_o scripture_n nor_o assert_v by_o any_o infallible_a teacher_n yet_o their_o faith_n in_o fundamental_o universal_o hold_v by_o all_o christian_n stand_v sure_a enough_o and_o be_v infallible_a such_o truth_n shall_v never_o fail_v and_o so_o far_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n may_v it_o be_v likely_a be_v hold_v infallible_a 12._o hereafter_o we_o shall_v treat_v more_o large_o of_o fundamental_a point_n and_o therefore_o at_o present_a will_v wave_v what_o be_v not_o pertinent_a to_o answer_v this_o reply_n and_o pertinent_a uncertain_a why_o doctrine_n of_o protesta_fw-la as_o protestant_n be_v uncertain_a it_o be_v to_o say_v first_o that_o not_o one_o doctrine_n peculiar_a to_o protestant_n as_o protestant_n because_o neither_o express_o find_v in_o scripture_n nor_o assert_v by_o any_o infallible_a teacher_n can_v certain_o be_v believe_v upon_o divine_a revelation_n that_o these_o sectary_n teach_v not_o their_o own_o protestant_a tenant_n infallible_o be_v grant_v that_o scripture_n do_v not_o in_o express_a term_n without_o intolerable_a gloss_v deliver_v one_o of_o they_o shall_v be_v make_v after_o a_o few_o page_n most_o evident_a and_o thus_o if_o this_o last_o reply_n be_v to_o any_o purpose_n it_o bring_v ruin_n to_o that_o part_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v call_v protestancy_n i_o say_v second_o there_o be_v scarce_o one_o article_n of_o christ_n sacred_a doctrine_n so_o clear_o express_v in_o scripture_n which_o may_v not_o will_v man_n take_v the_o liberty_n as_o sectary_n do_v by_o wilful_a gloss_n to_o alienate_v it_o from_o the_o church_n sense_n be_v pervert_v arian_n have_v teach_v they_o this_o mode_n of_o gloze_a and_o they_o exact_o follow_v it_o separate_a therefore_o the_o word_n faith_n doubful_a word_n of_o scripture_n separate_v from_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n ground_z not_z faith_n of_o scripture_n from_o the_o sense_n of_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n we_o can_v believe_v nothing_o we_o have_v no_o more_o but_o a_o body_n without_o a_o soul_n guess_v without_o certainty_n and_o upon_o such_o uncertainty_n the_o whole_a faith_n of_o protestant_n do_v and_o must_v rely_v which_o be_v deplorable_a and_o here_o ask_v they_o when_o they_o appeal_v as_o they_o ever_o do_v to_o scripture_n what_o they_o mean_v by_o scripture_n which_o needs_o interpretation_n even_o in_o point_n most_o fundamental_a must_v we_o admit_v of_o their_o interpretation_n why_o so_o more_o than_o of_o other_o as_o learned_a as_o they_o why_o not_o as_o well_o on_o the_o present_a church_n interpretation_n this_o be_v as_o good_a to_o say_v no_o more_o as_o their_o fallible_a guess_n be_v but_o of_o this_o subject_a hereafter_o i_o say_v three_o never_o infallible_a the_o church_n in_o all_o her_o doctrine_n equal_o infallible_a any_o catholic_n church_n hitherto_o hold_v itself_o infallible_a in_o a_o few_o fundamental_a doctrine_n and_o not_o in_o other_o therefore_o protestant_n be_v more_o insolent_o bold_a whilst_o they_o attempt_v to_o make_v this_o distinction_n than_o ever_o any_o church_n yet_o be_v what_o that_o mere_a fallible_a man_n shall_v be_v my_o doctor_n and_o ex_fw-la tripod_n define_v so_o far_o the_o church_n hold_v infallible_a doctrine_n but_o no_o further_o it_o will_v be_v well_o nigh_o eight_o degree_n of_o madness_n in_o i_o to_o believe_v they_o admit_v once_o of_o this_o a_o new_a haeretick_n may_v step_v out_o and_o defend_v as_o stout_o yea_o and_o upon_o as_o solid_a ground_n that_o scripture_n itself_o it_o not_o infallible_a but_o only_o in_o a_o few_o fundamental_a matter_n yet_o unknown_a to_o the_o world_n if_o you_o say_v this_o sound_v too_o harsh_o and_o can_v be_v grant_v parallel_v i_o beseech_v you_o your_o own_o wild_a assertion_n with_o it_o school_n the_o church_n be_v christ_n school_n and_o see_v whether_o that_o run_v much_o smooth_a thus_o it_o be_v christ_n have_v erect_v a_o school_n which_o be_v his_o church_n where_o christian_n be_v to_o learn_v his_o sacred_a doctrine_n but_o when_o they_o come_v to_o it_o they_o find_v more_o than_o the_o half_a of_o its_o doctrine_n doubtful_a fallible_a unsound_a uncertain_a alas_o aristotle_n or_o plato_n school_n can_v cfford_v we_o topic_n and_o uncertainty_n enough_o i_o hope_v christ_n school_n can_v learn_v we_o better_o four_o be_v the_o church_n false_o suppose_v fallible_a in_o the_o delivery_n of_o some_o doctrine_n less_o fundamental_a it_o will_v be_v much_o safe_a to_o believe_v it_o than_o protestant_n who_o may_v err_v in_o all_o they_o say_v and_o then_o most_o when_o be_v void_a of_o proof_n they_o stand_v trifle_v with_o a_o distinction_n of_o fundamental_o and_o not_o fundamental_o herein_o as_o in_o all_o other_o thing_n they_o be_v most_o fallible_a and_o must_v i_o think_v you_o credit_n man_n that_o can_v say_v nothing_o certain_o 13._o five_o and_o i_o end_v admit_v once_o of_o a_o church_n with_o this_o half_a infallibility_n in_o fundamental_o our_o sectary_n who_o so_o furious_o oppugn_v that_o whole_a infallibility_n which_o we_o ascribe_v to_o the_o roman_a church_n must_v answer_v their_o own_o argument_n against_o we_o for_o here_o we_o question_v they_o as_o they_o do_v we_o where_o or_o in_o what_o protestant_n rational_a query_n make_v to_o protestant_n subject_n be_v that_o partial_a infallibility_n lodge_v what_o pastor_n designable_a be_v endue_v with_o it_o how_o shall_v we_o make_v our_o address_n to_o they_o in_o doubt_n and_o difficulty_n if_o none_o know_v where_o or_o who_o they_o be_v what_o kind_n of_o infallibility_n be_v this_o by_o who_o assure_a testimony_n can_v we_o learn_v what_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la funaamentali_fw-la what_o not_o what_o if_o these_o pastor_n be_v divide_v among_o themselves_o in_o their_o decision_n of_o fundameetal_n who_o judgement_n be_v final_o to_o be_v stand_v too_o &_o c._n these_o and_o the_o like_a question_n most_o easy_o answer_v by_o catholic_n when_o they_o give_v a_o account_n of_o their_o belief_n as_o i_o shall_v show_v in_o the_o resolution_n of_o faith_n press_v so_o strong_o upon_o protestant_n that_o not_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v ever_o have_v a_o satisfactory_a answer_n perhaps_o to_o spirit_n protestant_n pretence_n to_o a_o private_a spirit_n solve_v they_o some_o will_v recurre_v to_o the_o private_a spirit_n and_o say_v this_o tell_v we_o they_o all_o truth_n in_o these_o doubt_n contra._n ask_v only_o here_o whether_o this_o spirit_n make_v they_o or_o their_o pastor_n infallible_a or_o can_v direct_v other_o to_o find_v out_o such_o infallible_a pastor_n if_o they_o reply_v those_o be_v such_o as_o teach_v god_n word_n pure_o the_o answer_n be_v impertinent_a for_o we_o ask_v whether_o it_o assist_v any_o to_o teach_v god_n pure_a word_n infallible_o and_o who_o they_o be_v it_o may_v be_v other_o will_v say_v that_o christ_n never_o have_v since_o the_o apostle_n
christ_n but_o hold_v that_o he_o be_v man_n only_o the_o monothelit_v believe_v faith_n that_o which_o all_o christian_n agree_v in_o though_o true_a be_v not_o enough_o for_o save_v faith_n in_o christ_n but_o deny_v his_o two_o nature_n his_o two_o will_n humane_a and_o divine_a the_o apollinarian_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o hold_v that_o the_o word_n assume_v true_a flesh_n but_o without_o a_o create_a soul_n tell_v i_o now_o can_v you_o abstract_v a_o belief_n from_o these_o err_v christian_n common_a to_o all_o other_o that_o be_v safe_a sufficient_a and_o enough_o to_o constitute_v save_v and_o catholich_n faith_n be_v it_o enough_o to_o say_v i_o do_v believe_v in_o christ_n without_o descend_v with_o my_o faith_n to_o a_o explicit_a belief_n of_o his_o divinity_n also_o have_v one_o that_o say_v i_o believe_v in_o christ_n but_o i_o will_v abstract_n from_o a_o belief_n of_o his_o two_o nature_n from_o his_o have_v a_o rational_a soul_n from_o his_o be_v god_n and_o man_n and_o because_o other_o have_v positive_o disbelieved_a these_o article_n i_o will_v only_o prescind_v from_o the_o verity_n of_o they_o to_o prescind_n be_v les_fw-fr then_o express_o to_o deny_v they_o have_v such_o a_o one_o i_o say_v save_v faith_n enough_o to_o make_v he_o a_o doctrine_n plain_a haresy_n follow_v from_o these_o sectary_n doctrine_n member_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n no._n for_o if_o so_o he_o need_v not_o to_o believe_v at_o all_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n or_o his_o two_o nature_n after_o scripture_n be_v red_a and_o propose_v unto_o he_o which_o oblige_v he_o if_o he_o own_v it_o for_o god_n word_n not_o to_o abstract_n from_o the_o belief_n of_o these_o article_n but_o positive_o to_o yield_v a_o assent_n to_o they_o with_o true_a faith_n as_o most_o fundamental_a verity_n of_o christian_a religion_n you_o see_v therefore_o how_o impossible_a it_o be_v to_o draw_v one_o true_a vniform_a universal_a doctrine_n from_o all_o err_a christian_n and_o to_o hold_v that_o on_o the_o one_o side_n sufficient_a for_o catholic_n faith_n and_o on_o the_o other_o to_o comply_v with_o that_o strict_a obligation_n which_o express_a scripture_n clear_o propose_v force_v we_o to_o believe_v 4._o this_o point_n i_o insist_v on_o because_o i_o know_v protestant_n can_v so_o much_o as_o probable_o name_v any_o thing_n like_o a_o holy_a unite_a catholic_n church_n before_o luther_n unless_o they_o first_o answer_v as_o some_o of_o they_o seem_v to_o do_v by_o the_o abstract_a doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n now_o evidence_v no_o faith_n and_o say_v that_o particular_a error_n do_v vncatholick_a none_n or_o second_o run_v to_o a_o invisible_a church_n not_o at_o all_o designable_a or_o three_o as_o they_o etc._n protestant_n ought_v to_o acknowledge_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n as_o true_a etc._n etc._n ought_v to_o do_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n be_v then_o and_o now_o be_v not_o only_o a_o church_n but_o the_o sole_a holy_a and_o catholic_n church_n of_o christ_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n with_o this_o catholic_n society_n i_o can_v show_v be_v it_o not_o ample_o do_v by_o other_o how_o all_o who_o age_n after_o age_n merit_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_n have_v join_v in_o faith_n and_o all_o who_o part_v from_o it_o have_v be_v brand_v with_o the_o ignominious_a note_n of_o none_o or_o can_v find_v none_o heretic_n if_o i_o speak_v not_o truth_n name_v any_o society_n of_o christian_n before_o luther_n that_o ever_o gain_v the_o faith_n none_o ever_o have_v the_o name_n of_o catholic_n but_o those_o of_o the_o roman_a faith_n repute_n of_o catholic_n but_o such_o only_a as_o be_v unite_v in_o faith_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n name_v any_o one_o society_n that_o divorce_v itself_o from_o this_o church_n which_o forthwith_o lose_v not_o that_o ancient_a title_n of_o catholic_n or_o be_v not_o upon_o that_o separation_n style_v haeretical_a schismatical_a or_o both_o if_o you_o say_v first_o the_o roman_a church_n wrong_v they_o i_o ask._n quis_fw-la te_fw-la constituit_fw-la judicem_fw-la who_o make_v you_o judge_v in_o this_o case_n name_v the_o injure_a party_n be_v the_o arian_n pelagian_o nestorian_n donatist_n wrong_v when_o they_o leave_v communion_n with_o this_o church_n arian_n the_o grecians_n waldenses_n etc._n etc._n no_o more_o wrong_v than_o arian_n no._n but_o the_o waldenses_n the_o albigenses_n the_o hussit_n and_o most_o of_o all_o the_o late_a grecian_n have_v injury_n don_n they_o and_o why_o so_o more_o than_o pelagian_n be_v your_o bare_a assertion_n proof_n enough_o to_o declare_v those_o guilty_a and_o these_o innocent_a when_o you_o yourselves_o as_o much_o condemn_v they_o as_o catholic_n do_v for_o you_o utter_o disavow_v their_o doctrine_n be_v ever_o general_a council_n convene_v that_o do_v more_o patronize_v the_o error_n of_o these_o waldenses_n then_o those_o other_o of_o the_o arian_n or_o that_o blame_v the_o roman_a church_n for_o cast_v they_o out_o of_o her_o communion_n no._n why_o therefore_o do_v you_o plead_v âo_o much_o for_o a_o bad_a cause_n when_o you_o have_v no_o more_o âo_o defend_v it_o then_o your_o own_o proofle_n talk_v which_o have_v you_o spend_v in_o a_o apology_n for_o any_o old_a condemn_a haeretick_n will_v have_v help_v as_o much_o that_o be_v nothing_o at_o all_o as_o now_o you_o advantage_n these_o late_a man_n and_o observe_v i_o beseech_v you_o how_o weak_o you_o go_v to_o work_v you_o say_v the_o hussit_n waldenses_n talk_n sectary_n plead_v for_o condemn_a heretic_n without_o any_o principle_n but_o their_o own_o talk_n and_o other_o be_v good_a catholic_n we_o deny_v it_o and_o demonstrate_v their_o vncatholick_a doctrine_n to_o what_o tribunal_n shall_v we_o appeal_v for_o a_o just_a sentence_n to_o your_o say_v i_o or_o to_o our_o no._n to_o none_o and_o thus_o you_o proceed_v with_o we_o in_o all_o your_o controversy_n we_o must_v either_o take_v your_o word_n for_o your_o assertion_n or_o dispute_v without_o end_n upon_o nothing_o that_o have_v the_o appearance_n endless_a and_o make_v controversy_n endless_a of_o a_o receive_a principle_n 5._o you_o say_v again_o the_o late_a grecian_n be_v catholic_n before_o they_o recant_v their_o error_n in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n how_o prove_v you_o that_o by_o a_o glorious_a empty_a title_n a_o defence_n of_o the_o greek_a church_n by_o far_o fetch_v uncertain_a conjecture_n and_o mere_a negative_a argument_n which_o be_v so_o slight_a that_o if_o all_o be_v put_v together_o in_o a_o just_a balance_n they_o will_v not_o weigh_v one_o straw_n much_o âes_n outweigh_v the_o definition_n of_o a_o most_o learned_a general_n council_n against_o the_o greek_n yet_o such_o talk_n and_o talk_v only_a lengthen_n these_o new_a book_n and_o make_v they_o so_o voluminous_a as_o they_o be_v and_o church_n they_o defend_v doctrine_n deny_v by_o the_o english_a church_n by_o the_o way_n note_v here_o a_o pretty_a humour_n the_o greek_n must_v be_v defend_v in_o that_o point_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n procession_n from_o the_o father_n only_o whilst_o the_o church_n of_o england_n anathematize_v the_o doctrine_n be_v not_o this_o right_n think_v you_o and_o well_o do_v by_o a_o protestant_n 6._o well_o you_o shall_v see_v my_o plain_a deal_v with_o church_n grecian_n hussit_n and_o waldenses_n can_v not_o make_v the_o catholic_n church_n you_o i_o licence_n you_o to_o take_v these_o grecian_n those_o hussit_n those_o waldenses_n etc._n etc._n to_o make_v up_o a_o church_n before_o luther_n yet_o must_v tell_v you_o they_o do_v not_o the_o deed_n without_o more_o company_n which_o can_v be_v find_v that_o these_o we_o have_v name_v make_v not_o the_o church_n catholic_n be_v evident_a for_o first_o they_o be_v never_o universal_a either_o in_o time_n or_o place_n their_o late_a beginning_n and_o little_a extent_n be_v know_v and_o upon_o record_n 2._o they_o be_v never_o unite_v in_o one_o doctrine_n but_o more_o at_o variance_n with_o one_o another_o than_o you_o and_o catholic_n be_v this_o they_o only_o agree_v in_o to_o oppose_v the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o if_o so_o much_o make_v they_o protestant_n or_o good_a catholic_n you_o may_v call_v in_o turk_n and_o jew_n to_o bear_v they_o company_n 3._o they_o be_v most_o contrary_a to_o protestant_a religion_n and_o not_o in_o trifle_n only_o why_o therefore_o have_v you_o recours_fw-fr to_o a_o people_n so_o blast_v scatter_v and_o almost_o now_o forget_v alas_o churchles_a protestant_n every_o way_n churchles_a the_o reason_n be_v clear_a because_o without_o they_o you_o have_v nothing_o to_o make_v a_o church_n of_o and_o yet_o with_o they_o you_o be_v churchles_a i_o say_v therefore_o no_o roman_a catholic_n church_n no_o church_n all_o no_o roman_a catholic_n church_n no_o church_n at_o all_o at_o all_o if_o no_o church_n at_o all_o there_o be_v then_o
assent_n and_o with_o like_a faith_n the_o centre_n of_o faith_n reverence_n upon_o this_o motive_n of_o god_n reveal_v word_n true_a christian_a faith_n rely_v mille_fw-la clypei_fw-la pendent_fw-la ex_fw-la eâ_fw-la omnis_fw-la armatura_fw-la fortium_fw-la here_o they_o meet_v together_o concentred_a as_o it_o be_v in_o this_o one_o vndeceived_a and_o undeceive_a verity_n do_v i_o therefore_o believe_v christ_n to_o be_v word_n we_o believe_v all_o âlike_a upon_o god_n word_n the_o true_a messiah_n because_o god_n say_v it_o i_o must_v also_o believe_v baptism_n the_o eucharist_n and_o other_o reveal_v truth_n when_o after_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n i_o know_v that_o the_o same_o god_n speak_v them_o for_o if_o his_o word_n prevail_v with_o i_o to_o credit_v he_o in_o the_o one_o it_o be_v as_o powerful_a and_o press_v to_o force_v as_o i_o may_v say_v faith_n from_o i_o in_o the_o other_o a_o further_a reason_n be_v because_o a_o reason_n another_o reason_n right_a act_n of_o faith_n settle_v on_o this_o motive_n be_v a_o virtual_a and_o implicit_a belief_n not_o of_o one_o article_n but_o of_o all_o other_o which_o the_o motive_n own_v his_o or_o vphold_n you_o see_v therefore_o none_o can_v true_o believe_v in_o christ_n who_o deny_v the_o least_o verity_n sufficient_o propose_v that_o god_n reveal_v for_o as_o the_o true_a belief_n of_o one_o article_n imply_v a_o belief_n of_o all_o so_o ââll_v believe_v all_o ââ_o none_o at_o ââll_v the_o denial_n of_o one_o imply_v a_o denial_n of_o all_o other_o and_o thus_o christian_a faith_n consist_v in_o indivisibili_fw-la and_o be_v either_o whole_o have_v or_o whole_o lose_v which_o be_v the_o true_a cause_n why_o protestant_n have_v no_o faith_n and_o must_v jumble_v as_o they_o do_v fundamental's_n why_o protestant_n have_v no_o faith_n and_o stagger_v in_o their_o doctrine_n concern_v fundamental's_n in_o their_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o essential_o of_o it_o and_o final_o have_v never_o yet_o discover_v nor_o shall_v hereafter_o if_o we_o seclude_v the_o roman_a any_o thing_n like_o a_o catholic_n church_n before_o luther_n 5._o for_o these_o reason_n now_o allege_v perhaps_o some_o will_v say_v that_o after_o a_o belief_n in_o christ_n and_o a_o general_n own_v of_o scripture_n we_o must_v descend_v to_o more_o particular_n purpose_n a_o reply_n to_o little_a purpose_n and_o explicit_o assent_v to_o all_o that_o express_v scripture_n plain_o deliver_v and_o we_o will_v adhere_v to_o the_o very_a word_n without_o dispute_n if_o we_o do_v so_o we_o admit_v of_o all_o that_o god_n clear_o reveal_n and_o take_v it_o upon_o his_o authority_n without_o interpretation_n answer_n here_o be_v a_o fair_a promise_n of_o nothing_o for_o plain_o who_o can_v tell_v when_o scripture_n speak_v plain_o who_o can_v assure_v we_o without_o dispute_n when_o scripture_n speak_v s_z plain_o both_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n dissent_n in_o this_o very_a principle_n those_o say_v it_o speak_v plain_o for_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n sacred_a body_n in_o the_o eucharist_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n by_o a_o priest_n dispute_n the_o matter_n still_o in_o dispute_n for_o justification_n by_o good_a work_n for_o extream-vnction_n for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n these_o deny_v all_o and_o do_v what_o we_o can_v to_o hinder_v they_o will_v upon_o their_o own_o fancy_n force_v into_o god_n word_n certain_a violent_a gloss_n which_o god_n never_o speak_v you_o see_v therefore_o that_o when_o we_o descend_v to_o the_o particular_a expression_n of_o scripture_n concern_v the_o particular_a doctrine_n of_o it_o we_o be_v at_o a_o stand_n and_o can_v go_v forward_o for_o sectary_n will_v have_v no_o judge_n on_o earth_n to_o appeal_v to_o in_o these_o doubt_n if_o they_o say_v the_o ancient_a etc._n a_o judge_n necessary_a to_o determine_v etc._n etc._n church_n shall_v judge_v we_o be_v as_o i_o tell_v you_o as_o far_o from_o home_n as_o before_o and_o as_o much_o differ_v about_o the_o sentiment_n of_o that_o church_n as_o we_o do_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o thus_o it_o ever_o fall_v out_o endless_a otherwise_o controversy_n be_v endless_a either_o we_o must_v drive_a controversy_n between_o we_o to_o endless_a quarrel_n or_o yield_v to_o what_o our_o protestant_n say_v or_o final_o commiserate_v their_o sad_a condition_n because_o they_o will_v not_o acquiesce_v in_o a_o judge_n upon_o earth_n that_o as_o well_o ascertain_n u_fw-mi of_o the_o mean_v as_o it_o do_v of_o the_o very_a book_n of_o scripture_n without_o this_o judge_n we_o may_v contract_v to_o the_o world_n end_n and_o never_o be_v wise_a 6._o you_o see_v this_o plain_o in_o that_o instance_n propose_v above_o out_o of_o st._n hierom._n for_o according_a to_o plain_a scripture_n if_o one_o strike_v we_o on_o the_o right_a cheek_n we_o must_v turn_v to_o he_o the_o other_o also_o we_o be_v to_o abstain_v from_o eat_v of_o blood_n and_o thing_n strangle_v we_o be_v not_o to_o have_v two_o coat_n nor_o carry_v money_n with_o we_o etc._n etc._n none_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o god_n speak_v these_o verity_n although_o they_o seem_v light_n to_o we_o buthow_v to_o understand_v they_o be_v to_o be_v learn_v from_o some_o infallible_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n which_o word_n scripture_n obscure_a when_o seem_o clear_a in_o word_n protestant_n reject_v when_o all_o know_v that_o very_o often_o where_o scripture_n seem_v clear_a in_o word_n there_o it_o be_v more_o deep_a in_o sense_n and_o most_o obscure_a chap._n iu._n the_o ambiguous_a discourse_n of_o protestant_n concern_v fundamental_o in_o faith_n be_v prove_v unreasonable_a 1._o we_o need_v not_o here_o to_o discuss_v too_o large_o this_o point_n of_o fundamental_o most_o learned_o examine_v by_o catholic_n writer_n for_o if_o we_o reflect_v well_o on_o what_o be_v prove_v in_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n there_o be_v enough_o say_v to_o silence_n all_o adversary_n and_o to_o satisfy_v every_o rational_a man_n doubt_n in_o this_o question_n 2._o we_o catholic_n speak_v plain_o and_o assert_v although_o a_o explicit_fw-la belief_n in_o god_n as_o a_o rewarder_n of_o good_a and_o a_o punisher_n of_o evil_n yea_o as_o some_o divine_n hold_v of_o doctrine_n the_o catholic_n doctrine_n christ_n also_o after_o the_o promulgation_n of_o the_o gospel_n be_v primary_n fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n because_o necessitate_v medij_fw-la every_o one_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v they_o explicit_o yet_o withal_o we_o say_v that_o the_o least_o article_n reveal_v by_o almighty_a god_n when_o it_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v grow_v to_o be_v so_o far_o fundamental_a that_o none_o can_v deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o it_o without_o damnable_a sin_n and_o in_o this_o sense_n there_o be_v no_o distinction_n between_o point_n fundamental_a and_o not_o fundamental_a the_o reason_n hereof_o already_o give_v rely_v upon_o this_o certain_a principle_n believe_v what_o ever_o god_n reveal_n be_v equal_o to_o be_v believe_v what_o god_n speak_v whether_o the_o material_a object_n be_v little_a or_o great_a after_o the_o charge_v lay_v on_o we_o to_o believe_v be_v to_o be_v admit_v of_o with_o equal_a certitude_n and_o reverence_n for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o less_o or_o more_o weight_n of_o thing_n reveal_v that_o distinguish_v faith_n submission_n to_o god_n veracity_n give_v true_a value_n to_o faith_n our_o faith_n or_o make_v it_o less_o or_o more_o valuable_a but_o that_o which_o set_z the_o true_a price_n upon_o it_o be_v the_o submission_n we_o yield_v by_o it_o to_o god_n veracity_n now_o because_o this_o veracity_n be_v one_o and_o equal_o the_o same_o in_o what_o ever_o be_v reveal_v by_o consequence_n we_o say_v that_o faith_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o that_o submission_n be_v equal_o good_a solid_a and_o valuable_a this_o i_o note_v in_o opposition_n to_o sectary_n reveal_v faith_n not_o to_o be_v measure_v by_o the_o diversity_n of_o thing_n reveal_v who_o for_o aught_o i_o can_v yet_o learn_v measure_v their_o faith_n not_o so_o much_o by_o the_o excellency_n of_o the_o formal_a object_n as_o by_o the_o different_a nature_n of_o thing_n reveal_v which_o because_o consider_v in_o themselves_o they_o often_o vary_v in_o worth_n protestant_n think_v that_o the_o degree_n of_o their_o faith_n may_v answerable_o be_v less_o or_o more_o various_a according_a as_o the_o object_n require_v it_o be_v a_o error_n reason_n the_o reason_n for_o as_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o when_o god_n speak_v to_o we_o the_o high_a truth_n imaginable_a speak_v so_o it_o be_v as_o certain_a that_o he_o be_v to_o be_v hear_v by_o we_o with_o high_a respect_n and_o reverence_n whether_o the_o matter_n be_v great_a or_o small_a 3._o what_o be_v here_o say_v suppose_v a_o sufficient_a proposition_n of_o reveal_v verity_n which_o without_o doubt_n be_v not_o equal_o clear_a to_o all_o capacity_n if_o we_o descend_v to_o the_o explicit_fw-la
belief_n of_o particular_a mystery_n but_o this_o be_v no_o hindrance_n to_o catholic_n faith_n in_o the_o most_o reveal_v how_o the_o unlearned_a believe_v all_o that_o be_v reveal_v unlearned_a man_n in_o the_o world_n for_o such_o a_o one_o believe_v explicit_o as_o much_o as_o he_o know_v be_v propose_v and_o be_v not_o only_o in_o praeparatione_n animi_fw-la ready_a to_o embrace_v more_o when_o more_o be_v propose_v but_o even_o now_o in_o every_o act_n of_o faith_n he_o elicit'_v as_o i_o note_v above_o implicit_o and_o virtual_o submit_v to_o all_o that_o god_n have_v explicit_o reveal_v that_o distinction_n therefore_o which_o some_o of_o our_o new_a man_n here_o introduce_v viz._n unnecessary_a a_o distinction_n of_o sectary_n unnecessary_a of_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n respective_o to_o such_o as_o be_v of_o weak_a capacity_n and_o of_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v own_v in_o order_n to_o salvation_n by_o christian_a society_n as_o bond_n of_o ecclesiastical_a communion_n be_v to_o no_o purpose_n unless_o we_o speak_v of_o a_o less_o or_o more_o explicit_fw-la belief_n which_o may_v be_v various_a according_a to_o a_o dark_a or_o clear_a proposition_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o all_o that_o god_n reveal_v and_o neither_o more_o nor_o less_o be_v one_a and_o the_o same_o respective_o to_o all_o to_o the_o learned_a to_o the_o unlearned_a to_o weak_a and_o strong_a capacity_n yea_o and_o to_o the_o whole_a church_n also_o and_o this_o all_o acknowedge_n in_o every_o act_n of_o faith_n they_o have_v though_o perhaps_o it_o be_v less_o extend_v to_o particular_a article_n but_o know_v as_o be_v submission_n the_o worth_n of_o faith_n not_o in_o the_o extension_n but_o in_o submission_n now_o note_v that_o the_o true_a worth_n of_o faith_n consist_v not_o so_o much_o in_o the_o extensive_a reach_n of_o it_o to_o more_o material_a object_n as_o in_o a_o intensive_a and_o equal_a submission_n to_o god_n veracity_n in_o the_o thing_n he_o speak_v which_o now_o i_o yield_v to_o by_o the_o explicit_a faith_n i_o have_v and_o be_o ready_a to_o do_v more_o when_o a_o clear_a proposition_n and_o god_n command_v require_v it_o whence_o you_o see_v though_o a_o extend_v how_o far_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o unlearned_a be_v extend_v rustic_a have_v less_o of_o the_o explicit_fw-la belief_n then_o a_o learned_a clerk_n yet_o he_o want_v not_o therefore_o one_o grain_n of_o supernatural_a faith_n that_o save_v all_o christian_n for_o his_o faith_n be_v virtual_o as_o far_o extend_v as_o any_o doctor_n and_o his_o infuse_v habit_n every_o whit_n as_o good_n if_o any_o one_o cavil_n at_o the_o distinction_n of_o explicit_fw-la and_o implicit_a faith_n he_o may_v correct_v his_o error_n by_o this_o one_o example_n give_v i_o one_o that_o have_v read_v over_o holy_a scripture_n and_o descend'_v by_o explicit_fw-la faith_n to_o every_o verity_n in_o it_o he_o believe_v well_o another_o far_a from_o that_o extensive_a knowledge_n know_v some_o verity_n reveal_v there_o and_o believe_v they_o nevertheless_o he_o own_v all_o and_o every_o jota_n in_o the_o book_n for_o god_n sacred_a word_n tell_v belief_n save_v faith_n as_o well_o find_v in_o a_o implicit_a as_o in_o a_o explicit_fw-la belief_n i_o i_o beseech_v you_o have_v not_o this_o more_o ignorant_a man_n with_o his_o less_o explicit_fw-la assent_n as_o true_a save_v faith_n as_o the_o other_o yes_o most_o assure_o and_o in_o the_o sense_n now_o declare_v as_o far_o extend_v this_o be_v our_o very_a case_n can_v we_o therefore_o once_o agree_v about_o the_o proponent_n of_o faith_n most_o difficulty_n be_v end_v these_o few_o consideration_n premise_v 4._o my_o first_o assertion_n be_v the_o distinction_n usual_o make_v false_o protestant_n distinction_n of_o point_n more_o or_o less_o fundamental_a be_v false_o by_o protestant_n of_o point_n more_o or_o less_o fundamental_a in_o order_n to_o christian_n be_v not_o only_o unreasonable_a but_o also_o very_o fall_v if_o we_o consider_v the_o article_n of_o faith_n subsist_v as_o it_o be_v or_o essential_o depend_v upon_o god_n eternal_a reveal_v verity_n for_o as_o they_o be_v here_o all_z stand_v firm_a alike_o and_o equal_o sure_a upon_o this_o verity_n if_o therefore_o i_o answer_v revelation_n all_o faith_n stand_v firm_a upon_o divine_a revelation_n with_o my_o faith_n to_o what_o this_o motive_n firm_o require_v and_o as_o undoubted_o believe_v as_o god_n speak_v i_o must_v assent_v to_o all_o with_o equal_a assurance_n nor_o can_v i_o believe_v some_o and_o disbelieve_v other_o when_o all_o be_v propose_v alike_o no_o nor_o make_v less_o or_o more_o degree_n of_o certitude_n in_o my_o faith_n from_o whence_o i_o infer_v that_o no_o man_n by_o any_o mean_n or_o search_v whatever_o can_v find_v out_o what_o article_n be_v fundamental_a what_o not_o because_o there_o be_v no_o mean_n possible_a to_o find_v that_o which_o speak_v there_o be_v nothing_o of_o the_o less_o or_o more_o certitude_n when_o god_n speak_v be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v but_o fundamental_o and_o not_o fundamental_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v and_o i_o prove_v the_o minor_n every_o reveal_v article_n be_v assert_v by_o a_o infinite_a verity_n but_o a_o infinite_a verity_n deliver_n all_n it_o speak_v with_o one_o and_o the_o same_o infinite_a certainty_n where_o no_o degree_n of_o more_o or_o less_o certitude_n can_v have_v place_n ergo_fw-la all_o article_n certain_a all_o reveal_v truth_n therefore_o be_v equal_o certain_a of_o faith_n have_v one_o and_o the_o same_o like_a infinite_a assurance_n as_o they_o be_v speak_v by_o a_o infinite_a verity_n consequent_o one_o be_v as_o ponderous_n as_o another_o and_o equal_o fundamental_a if_o we_o which_o be_v only_o to_o be_v regard_v do_v respect_n the_o motive_n again_o if_o some_o article_n be_v fundamental_a and_o other_o not_o it_o be_v either_o because_o the_o fundamental_o rely_v on_o a_o great_a verity_n and_o the_o non_fw-la fundamental_o on_o a_o less_o which_o be_v utter_o fall_v for_o the_o same_o infinite_a truth_n speak_v they_o all_o or_o because_o though_o he_o deliver_v all_o yet_o his_o pleasure_n be_v that_o we_o esteem_v of_o some_o more_o fundamental_a than_o other_o and_o this_o be_v impossible_a viz._n that_o a_o infinite_a verity_n take_v as_o it_o be_v the_o pain_n to_o speak_v to_o we_o and_o for_o our_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o yet_o do_v not_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v he_o in_o what_o he_o say_v with_o the_o whole_a equal_o it_o dishonour_v god_n not_o to_o believe_v all_o he_o speak_v equal_o force_n of_o our_o soul_n it_o be_v as_o i_o have_v show_v high_o against_o the_o dignity_n of_o god_n to_o engage_v his_o eternal_a truth_n in_o speak_v to_o we_o and_o yet_o have_v those_o he_o speak_v to_o talk_v as_o if_o it_o mattered_a not_o whether_o he_o be_v hear_v or_o no._n 5._o you_o may_v reply_v some_o thing_n reveal_v to_o we_o seem_v light_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o material_a object_n for_o who_o can_v own_o it_o as_o fundamental_a a_o article_n of_o faith_n to_o believe_v that_o st._n paul_n leave_v his_o cloak_n at_o troas_n as_o to_o believe_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o father_n and_o son_n also_o i_o answer_v god_n as_o we_o faith_n we_o can_v believe_v the_o great_a matter_n and_o disbelieve_v the_o lesser_a without_o forfeiture_n of_o faith_n now_o suppose_v speak_v both_o these_o verity_n therefore_o both_o be_v equal_o true_a and_o if_o equal_o true_a i_o can_v believe_v the_o one_o upon_o the_o motive_n of_o god_n veracity_n and_o disbelieve_v the_o other_o when_o propound_v without_o a_o forfeiture_n of_o all_o faith_n the_o disparity_n therefore_o which_o arise_v here_o from_o the_o matter_n reveal_v import_v nothing_o to_o the_o present_a question_n 6._o you_o may_v say_v again_o the_o necessity_n of_o thing_n which_o lie_v in_o god_n great_a design_n and_o be_v absolute_o to_o be_v believe_v must_v be_v take_v from_o the_o reference_n they_o have_v to_o our_o last_o end_n which_o be_v eternal_a salvation_n answ_n i_o say_v so_o too_o but_o talk_n general_n talk_n this_o be_v only_o general_a talk_n and_o come_v not_o home_o to_o the_o question_n for_o the_o question_n right_o state_v drive_v at_o particular_n and_o ask_v how_o many_o of_o those_o precise_o have_v reference_n to_o this_o last_o end_n or_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n respective_o to_o all_o after_o a_o sufficient_a proposition_n disbelieved_a no_o article_n reveal_v can_v be_v disbelieved_a catholic_n say_v the_o belief_n of_o all_o be_v so_o far_o necessary_a that_o not_o one_o of_o all_o those_o reveal_v article_n can_v be_v disbelieved_a protestant_n make_v their_o exception_n yet_o hitherto_o salvation_n sectary_n can_v say_v what_o article_n be_v to_o be_v exclude_v as_o unnecessary_a to_o salvation_n never_o dare_v to_o give_v in_o a_o catalogue_n of_o what_o they_o except_v
implicit_o if_o it_o be_v of_o faith_n though_o he_o yet_o know_v not_o so_o much_o yea_o and_o may_v sometime_o rational_o doubt_v whether_o the_o church_n propose_v it_o or_o no_o as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n so_o schoolman_n of_o different_a judgement_n often_o dispute_v whether_o such_o and_o such_o point_n be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la and_o because_o they_o be_v contrary_a in_o their_o position_n either_o these_o or_o those_o contendent_o light_n where_o it_o will_v err_v material_o yet_o i_o say_v the_o err_v party_n who_o admit_v of_o all_o that_o the_o church_n proposes_n as_o faith_n to_o be_v de_fw-fr fide_fw-la believe_v implicit_o upon_o his_o universal_a assent_n to_o all_o the_o very_a explicit_o a_o man_n may_v believe_v implicit_o what_o by_o error_n he_o deny_v explicit_o matter_n which_o he_o by_o error_n explicit_o deny_v yea_o and_o have_v as_o true_a faith_n as_o the_o other_o that_o hitt'_v on_o truth_n neither_o be_v there_o so_o much_o as_o a_o seem_a contradiction_n between_o these_o two_o judgement_n of_o true_a implicit_a faith_n and_o a_o untrue_a material_a explicit_fw-la error_n for_o the_o one_o be_v error_n no_o contradiction_n between_o true_a implicit_a faith_n and_o untrue_a material_a explicit_fw-la error_n so_o far_o from_o oppose_v the_o other_o that_o the_o erroneous_a judgement_n in_o actu_fw-la exercito_fw-la yield_v to_o truth_n and_o resolve_v into_o all_o the_o strength_n it_o have_v say_v no_o more_o but_o this_o by_o a_o conditional_a tendency_n if_o what_o i_o affirm_v be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o church_n doctrine_n and_o hence_o it_o be_v that_o catholic_n god_n be_v ever_o bless_v do_v not_o only_o easy_o lay_v down_o their_o material_a error_n when_o the_o reason_n the_o reason_n church_n declare_v against_o they_o but_o most_o usual_o also_o in_o their_o learned_a volume_n submit_v all_o they_o write_v to_o fancy_n learned_a catholic_n submit_v to_o the_o church_n censure_n sectary_n submit_v to_o nothing_o but_o fancy_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n which_o imply_v a_o tacit_a retractation_n or_o a_o unsay_n of_o whatever_o shall_v be_v censure_v or_o sentence_v to_o be_v amiss_o o_o will_v our_o protestant_n acknowledge_v such_o a_o live_a judge_n of_o controversy_n they_o may_v make_v excellent_a good_a use_n of_o their_o bible_n but_o to_o snatch_v that_o pure_a book_n from_o catholic_n as_o they_o have_v don_n and_o afterward_o to_o debase_v it_o to_o prostitute_n it_o to_o every_o wild_a fancy_n that_o shall_v plea_n to_o meddle_v with_o it_o be_v plain_o to_o abjure_v and_o renounce_v all_o possibility_n of_o either_o know_v what_o fundamental_o be_v or_o of_o ever_o arrive_v to_o better_a settlement_n in_o faith_n than_o now_o we_o see_v which_o indeed_o be_v none_o at_o all_o therefore_o though_o they_o protest_v a_o thousand_o time_n that_o they_o believe_v every_o thing_n in_o scripture_n with_o the_o like_a implicit_a faith_n as_o we_o do_v the_o church_n it_o avail_n nothing_o whilst_o every_o private_a man_n make_v that_o book_n to_o speak_v what_o he_o will_v have_v it_o that_o be_v what_o his_o fancy_n please_v 2._o other_o final_o have_v recours_fw-fr to_o the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o say_v all_o thing_n there_o as_o they_o relate_v to_o salvation_n the_o belief_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n not_o sufficient_a for_o salvation_n scripture_n and_o not_o more_o be_v fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n first_o admit_v of_o the_o assertion_n without_o any_o likelihood_n of_o proof_n protestant_n have_v little_a to_o glory_n in_o for_o there_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o article_n of_o their_o religion_n as_o protestancy_n observe_v it_o well_o contain_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n nothing_o of_o protestancy_n in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n creed_n therefore_o nothing_o of_o their_o religian_a as_o protestancy_n can_v be_v account_v fundamental_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n 2._o one_o may_v admit_v of_o all_o those_o express_a word_n in_o the_o creed_n i_o believe_v in_o jesus_n christ_n his_o only_a son_n and_o be_v a_o haeretick_n for_o the_o arian_n grant_v this_o and_o yet_o be_v heretic_n because_o they_o deny_v the_o high_a godhead_n of_o christ_n and_o consubstantiality_n likewise_o with_o his_o father_n which_o be_v not_o evident_o deduce_v out_o of_o those_o word_n and_o here_o i_o will_v glad_o know_v of_o protestant_n when_o either_o arian_n plain_o let_v it_o please_v sectary_n to_o answer_v this_o question_n plain_o or_o any_o sectary_n that_o do_v not_o only_a abstract_n from_o christ_n supreme_a divinity_n but_o positive_o also_o abjure_v it_o yet_o in_o some_o manner_n frigid_o own_v his_o christ_n for_o the_o only_a son_n of_o his_o father_n whether_o i_o faith_n such_o a_o one_o may_v be_v reckon_v of_o as_o a_o true_a believer_n in_o fundamental_o 3._o though_o the_o creed_n comprise_v much_o in_o that_o one_o article_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o therefore_o some_o ancient_a father_n most_o deserve_o magnify_v the_o catholic_n protestant_n can_v plain_o point_v at_o the_o church_n which_o the_o creed_n call_v catholic_n completeness_n of_o it_o as_o a_o excellent_a summary_n of_o christian_a faith_n yet_o protestant_n for_o their_o life_n can_v say_v what_o or_o where_o this_o catholic_n church_n be_v and_o it_o be_v very_o hard_a to_o oblige_v i_o to_o the_o belief_n of_o a_o church_n which_o be_v neither_o know_v nor_o can_v be_v point_v out_o now_o be_v it_o know_v a_o great_a difficulty_n yet_o remain's_n to_o be_v examine_v viz._n whether_o god_n will_v ever_o preserve_v this_o church_n infallible_a in_o the_o delivery_n of_o fundamental_a doctrine_n or_o suppose_v his_o present_a decree_n whether_o he_o can_v so_o leave_v it_o to_o a_o possibility_n of_o err_v in_o fundamental_o that_o christian_n may_v absolute_o loose_a all_o faith_n both_o of_o christ_n and_o creed_n if_o this_o second_o be_v fundamental_o sectary_n be_v press_v whether_o they_o grant_v or_o deny_v a_o church_n infallible_a in_o fundamental_o grant_v we_o have_v no_o assurance_n after_o all_o christ_n promise_n to_o the_o contrary_a but_o that_o christianity_n may_v total_o perish_v before_o the_o world_n end_n if_o they_o say_v god_n will_v ever_o preserve_v a_o church_n infallible_a in_o fundamental_o they_o must_v joint_o acknowledge_v a_o continue_a extinguish_v society_n of_o christian_n whereof_o some_o be_v pastor_n and_o teach_v infallible_o these_o fundamental_o and_o some_o difficulty_n sectary_n must_v solve_v their_o own_o difficulty_n hear_v they_o also_o infallible_o i_o will_v have_v these_o plain_o mark_v out_o and_o withal_o have_v sectary_n know_v that_o all_o their_o difficulty_n propose_v against_o a_o infallible_a church_n must_v be_v solve_v by_o they_o if_o they_o grant_v such_o infallible_a teacher_n of_o fundamental_o as_o be_v large_o creed_n baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n not_o in_o the_o creed_n prove_v above_o 4._o to_o omit_v that_o the_o creed_n deliver_v no_o explicit_fw-la doctrine_n concern_v baptism_n and_o the_o eucharist_n though_o the_o belief_n of_o these_o be_v also_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n thus_o much_o i_o observe_v that_o catholic_n gloss_n catholic_n admit_v of_o the_o creed_n without_o gloss_n without_o gloss_n and_o interpretation_n own_o the_o candid_a and_o plain_a obvious_a expression_n of_o the_o creed_n in_o all_o and_o every_o particular_a article_n of_o it_o therefore_o they_o be_v at_o least_o if_o not_o more_o as_o good_a believer_n of_o the_o creed_n fundamental_o as_o sectary_n and_o if_o which_o we_o deny_v they_o err_v by_o ignorance_n in_o lesser_a matter_n as_o protestant_n may_n and_o do_v err_v in_o great_a they_o must_v yet_o grant_v that_o the_o belief_n of_o fundamental_o be_v faith_n enough_o to_o save_v both_o party_n this_o suppose_a 3._o i_o must_v needs_o have_v a_o word_n with_o my_o long_a forget_a friend_n mr._n poole_n and_o ask_v why_o he_o deem'_v it_o such_o poole_n a_o word_n with_o mr._n poole_n a_o strict_a piece_n of_o justice_n to_o chafe_v as_o he_o do_v at_o a_o convert_a captain_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o his_o change_a religion_n as_o if_o he_o be_v a_o lose_a and_o perish_v soul_n a_o instrument_n forsooth_o he_o will_v prove_v append._n p._n 2._o if_o not_o of_o god_n mercy_n to_o reduce_v he_o to_o the_o truth_n from_o which_o he_o be_v revolt_v at_o least_o of_o god_n justice_n and_o a_o witness_n on_o god_n behalf_n to_o leave_v he_o without_o excuse_n what_o need_v i_o say_v so_o much_o ado_n about_o nothing_o for_o both_o the_o captain_n and_o all_o catholic_n whilst_o they_o believe_v the_o creed_n relate_v to_o scripture_n be_v very_o secure_a and_o confess_o right_a in_o fundamental_o which_o be_v suppose_v it_o be_v more_o than_o impertinent_a in_o the_o protestant_n to_o keep_v such_o a_o coyl_n about_o lesser_a matter_n essential_a protestant_n keep_v a_o coyl_n to_o no_o purpose_n about_o matter_n not_o essential_a or_o to_o reduce_v the_o main_a
i_o answer_v admit_v of_o this_o most_o false_a supposition_n these_o doctrine_n be_v not_o teach_v negative_a sectary_n find_v faith_n on_o a_o negative_a no_o faith_n at_o all_o can_v be_v found_v on_o this_o negative_a before_o which_o will_v never_o be_v they_o prove_v their_o contrary_a doctrine_n positive_o reveal_v by_o almighty_a god_n in_o scripture_n for_o this_o principle_n stand_v irrefragable_o sure_a no_o revelation_n no_o faith_n although_o the_o object_n assent_v to_o be_v true_a all_o the_o pain_n therefore_o these_o man_n take_v to_o reduce_v their_o reform_a gospel_n to_o the_o model_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v upon_o several_a respect_n mere_a labour_n lose_v but_o upon_o this_o account_n chief_o it_o church_n they_o can_v show_v one_o of_o their_o negative_n reveal_v to_o any_o ancient_a orthodox_n church_n falter_v most_o that_o they_o can_v show_v one_o negative_a believe_v by_o they_o to_o be_v a_o reveal_v truth_n to_o any_o christian_a society_n in_o the_o world_n it_o be_v pitiful_a to_o hear_v how_o they_o fumble_v in_o this_o discourse_n we_o ask_v how_o they_o prove_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n hold_v no_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n put_v this_o for_o one_o example_n it_o serve_v for_o all_o some_o answer_n they_o find_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o sacrifice_n register_v in_o those_o ancient_a write_n mark_v the_o proof_n they_o find_v it_o not_o ergo_fw-la it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v catholic_n as_o unconcluding_a the_o inference_n of_o sectary_n unconcluding_a clear_v sight_v as_o other_o find_v that_o doctrine_n express_o assert_v but_o because_o protestant_n be_v please_v to_o deny_v all_o they_o must_v and_o upon_o their_o own_o word_n be_v think_v the_o man_n of_o more_o credit_n well_o but_o suppose_v the_o doctrine_n be_v not_o register_v in_o those_o ancient_a record_n be_v this_o consequence_n good_a it_o be_v not_o write_v ergo_fw-la it_o be_v not_o teach_v no_o certain_o unless_o they_o show_v all_o teach_v doctrine_n be_v then_o write_v or_o register_v but_o let_v we_o false_o suppose_v that_o the_o doctrine_n be_v neither_o writ_n nor_o teach_v do_v it_o follow_v that_o the_o contrary_a of_o no_o sacrifice_n now_o believe_v by_o protestant_n be_v a_o truth_n reveal_v to_o that_o church_n or_o teach_v by_o it_o no._n therefore_o they_o be_v here_o drive_v again_o upon_o the_o old_a negative_a and_o thus_o it_o be_v that_o church_n say_v nothing_o of_o a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v hideous_o untrue_a ergo_fw-la protestant_n can_v now_o believe_v no_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v hideous_o fall_v and_o as_o unlucky_a a_o sequel_n as_o this_o that_o church_n say_v not_o whether_o the_o moon_n be_v a_o watery_a body_n full_a of_o rock_n ergo_fw-la protestant_n can_v believe_v the_o contrary_a with_o divine_a faith_n you_o will_v say_v we_o trifle_v now_o for_o that_o church_n be_v perfect_a in_o faith_n and_o either_o hold_v a_o sacrific_a ãâ¦ã_o deny_v it_o i_o answer_v in_o real_a truth_n it_o plain_o and_o undeniable_o hold_v a_o sacrifice_n yet_o must_v withal_o affirm_v though_o we_o false_o suppose_v and_o this_o fall_v supposition_n must_v be_v vigilant_o regard_v that_o it_o only_o negative_o abstract_v from_o such_o doctrine_n yet_o protestant_n be_v far_o of_o from_o prove_v it_o hold_v positive_o the_o contrary_a that_o be_v no_o sacrifice_n which_o yet_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v prove_v if_o they_o believe_v no_o sacrifice_n with_o divine_a faith_n 11._o they_o may_v yet_o reply_v they_o be_v able_a at_o least_o to_o produce_v some_o ancient_a father_n clear_o enough_o assert_v no_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n therefore_o they_o prove_v this_o negative_a and_o so_o they_o can_v do_v other_o i_o utter_o deny_v that_o clear_o enough_o and_o say_v they_o have_v not_o one_o ancient_a father_n ãâ¦ã_o nor_o council_n nor_o any_o approve_a authority_n sacrifice_n no_o ancient_a father_n against_o a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n that_o positive_o deny_v a_o sacrifice_n all_o unanimous_o teach_v the_o contrary_a as_o luther_n himself_o confess_v much_o less_o have_v they_o any_o that_o make_v this_o their_o doctrine_n a_o truth_n reveal_v by_o almighty_a god_n or_o ever_o teach_v by_o any_o universal_a church_n be_v therefore_o these_o suppose_a authority_n of_o sectary_n which_o be_v none_o and_o reason_n also_o for_o no_o sacrifice_n more_o numerous_a and_o strong_a then_o what_o the_o world_n have_v hear_v of_o hitherto_o they_o can_v in_o conscience_n suppose_v they_o proof_n weighty_a enough_o to_o beat_v down_o the_o contrary_n assert_v and_o vndeniable_a doctrine_n not_o only_o of_o father_n but_o of_o a_o whole_a church_n they_o can_v suppose_v they_o powerful_a enough_o to_o build_v up_o such_o a_o new_a negative_a of_o protestant_a religion_n especial_o whilst_o they_o see_v before_o their_o eye_n the_o torrent_n of_o antiquity_n against_o they_o and_o our_o answer_n return_v to_o every_o trivial_a objection_n they_o make_v o_o but_o they_o can_v solve_n all_o we_o object_n and_o we_o must_v take_v their_o word_n because_o they_o say_v so_o we_o also_o tell_v they_o we_o solve_n what_o they_o object_n and_o yet_o be_v not_o believe_v do_v you_o not_o see_v here_o most_o pitiful_a do_n and_o controversy_n make_v endless_a by_o this_o proceed_v when_o each_o party_n say_v what_o it_o please_v and_o gain_n be_v no_o credit_n from_o the_o other_o a_o judge_n my_o good_a friend_n and_o a_o infallible_a judge_n be_v here_o necessary_a to_o decide_v matter_n between_o we_o but_o thus_o far_o evident_a reason_n judge_v and_o tell_v we_o you_v though_o you_o can_v solve_n all_o we_o say_v for_o the_o affirmative_a of_o a_o sacrifice_n you_o be_v to_o seek_v for_o a_o positive_a proof_n of_o your_o vnproved_a yet_o believe_v negative_a there_o be_v no_o sacrifice_n and_o the_o like_a i_o say_v of_o your_o other_o negative_n chap._n ix_o of_o the_o mean_n leave_v by_o almighty_a god_n to_o interpret_v scripture_n true_o one_o passage_n more_o of_o scripture_n prove_v infallible_a teacher_n be_v quote_v 1._o we_o come_v now_o to_o solve_n more_o full_o the_o objection_n propose_v chap._n 7._o n._n 2._o it_o be_v to_o this_o sense_n a_o protestant_n deliver_v what_o he_o conceive_v to_o be_v the_o mean_v of_o scripture_n so_o the_o catholic_n do_v also_o and_o can_v do_v no_o more_o both_o of_o they_o therefore_o be_v glosser_n scripture_n the_o difficulty_n propose_v again_o concern_v the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n the_o only_a difficulty_n be_v to_o know_v who_o gloss_n better_a here_o be_v the_o state_n of_o the_o question_n 2._o to_o go_v on_o ground_o we_o may_v with_o our_o adversary_n leave_v suppose_v that_o god_n have_v not_o put_v a_o bible_n into_o the_o hand_n of_o christian_n to_o cause_v eternal_a debate_n concern_v the_o doctrine_n deliver_v in_o it_o and_o if_o this_o be_v a_o truth_n we_o may_v second_o suppose_v debate_n god_n desirous_a of_o unity_n in_o faith_n give_v we_o not_o scripture_n to_o cause_v eternal_a debate_n that_o his_o wise_a providence_n so_o earnest_o desirous_a of_o unity_n in_o faith_n among_o christian_n have_v afford_v some_o mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v right_o attain_v to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o his_o sacred_a word_n for_o no_o man_n can_v imagine_v that_o god_n intention_n be_v that_o we_o only_o read_v without_o arrive_v to_o the_o sense_n of_o what_o we_o read_v or_o which_o be_v worse_a that_o we_o fall_v into_o error_n by_o our_o read_n scripture_n providence_n have_v afford_v mean_n whereby_o we_o may_v understand_v scripture_n this_o therefore_o providence_n have_v prevent_v by_o one_o mean_n or_o other_o if_o careless_o we_o do_v not_o reject_v it_o we_o may_v three_o suppose_v that_o god_n regular_o speak_v reveal_n to_o no_o private_a man_n the_o deep_a sense_n of_o scripture_n when_o he_o read_v and_o perhaps_o understand_v it_o not_o by_o private_a illustration_n new_a enthusiasm_n or_o the_o ministry_n of_o angel_n therefore_o mean_n private_a illustration_n no_o usual_a mean_n some_o other_o way_n be_v appoint_v by_o providence_n to_o come_v to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o what_o he_o read_v the_o reason_n be_v true_a religion_n require_v a_o true_a interpreter_n of_o the_o book_n which_o find_v religion_n otherwise_o god_n will_v have_v only_o careless_o as_o it_o be_v throw_v scripture_n among_o christian_n and_o bid_v they_o guess_v as_o well_o as_o they_o can_v at_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o they_o have_v no_o other_o mean_n to_o know_v his_o mean_v these_o thing_n premise_v 3._o i_o say_v first_o the_o holy_a book_n of_o scripture_n neither_o do_v self_n scripture_n can_v interpret_v its_o self_n nor_o can_v so_o interpret_v itself_o as_o to_o bring_v man_n dissgnt_v in_o faith_n to_o a_o accord_n or_o acquiescency_n in_o high_a point_n of_o controversy_n the_o assertion_n be_v evident_a for_o can_v the_o book_n clear_o interpret_v its_o own_o mean_v catholic_n arian_n protestant_n
heart_n and_o tell_v we_o they_o have_v do_v what_o be_v possible_a to_o convert_v we_o to_o drive_v we_o from_o superstition_n we_o sectary_n can_v say_v to_o what_o they_o will_v convert_v we_o and_o draw_v we_o to_o the_o purity_n of_o their_o new_a gospel_n they_o only_o give_v word_n without_o substance_n for_o to_o what_o will_v they_o convert_v we_o will_v they_o have_v we_o believe_v the_o general_n receive_v doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n we_o be_v convert_v to_o this_o before_o protestant_n appear_v in_o the_o world_n do_v they_o desire_v to_o convert_v we_o to_o a_o belief_n of_o their_o new_a negative_n these_o be_v at_o most_o uncertain_a inferior_a truth_n no_o way_n essential_a to_o christian_a religion_n put_v negative_n our_o positive_a doctrine_n weigh_v with_o sectary_n negative_n the_o case_n by_o a_o suppose_a impossibility_n that_o our_o contrary_a positives_n be_v only_o inferior_a truth_n like_o protestant_n negative_n they_o may_v notwithstanding_o most_o just_o hang_v in_o the_o balance_n with_o they_o and_o will_v certain_o outweigh_v they_o because_o a_o more_o ample_a and_o universal_a church_n own_o be_v them_o all_o therefore_o they_o can_v drive_v at_o when_o they_o pretend_v to_o convert_v we_o be_v that_o we_o carry_v protestancy_n they_o only_z careser_fw-ge the_o exterior_a form_n of_o protestancy_n about_o we_o the_o exterior_a form_n of_o protestancy_n in_o our_o demeanour_n though_o we_o still_o remain_v catholic_n in_o hart_n they_o care_v not_o that_o be_v as_o i_o say_v now_o they_o will_v convert_v we_o to_o be_v plain_a hypocrite_n 19_o from_o this_o and_o the_o precedent_n discourse_v it_o follow_v itself_o a_o fallible_a religion_n can_v defend_v itself_o that_o whosoever_o embrace_v a_o fallible_a religion_n which_o may_v be_v fall_v can_v neither_o defend_v his_o own_o nor_o impugn_v another_o upon_o any_o ground_a principle_n much_o less_o can_v he_o persecute_v his_o adversary_n to_o death_n or_o imprisonment_n though_o he_o other_o nor_o the_o professor_n of_o it_o persecute_v other_o mantain_n a_o contrary_a religion_n in_o like_a manner_n fallible_a the_o reason_n hereof_o be_v clear_n because_o the_o defense_n of_o a_o religion_n that_o be_v fallible_a and_o the_o opposition_n make_v against_o another_o answerable_o weak_a and_o fallible_a can_v go_v beyond_o the_o strength_n evident_a the_o reason_n be_v evident_a of_o that_o last_o ground_n whereon_o the_o defense_n or_o impugnation_n ultimate_o resolve_v have_v their_o foot_n but_o if_o the_o religion_n be_v fallible_a and_o uncertain_a the_o last_o ground_n whereon_o the_o whole_a machine_n either_o of_o proof_n or_o opposition_n stand_v must_v needs_o be_v a_o distasteful_a opinative_a conjecture_n which_o without_o certitude_n or_o satisfaction_n be_v as_o scorn_n a_o defender_n of_o a_o fallible_a religion_n can_v preserve_v himself_o from_o scorn_n unfit_a and_o forceles_a to_o convince_v another_o of_o a_o contrary_a belief_n as_o to_o preserve_v itself_o from_o the_o scorn_n and_o contempt_n of_o he_o though_o he_o profess_v no_o more_o but_o a_o faith_n that_o be_v fallible_a put_v the_o case_n that_o a_o pelagian_a and_o a_o protestant_a be_v hard_o at_o a_o hot_a dispute_n the_o question_v propose_v be_v whether_o of_o these_o two_o religion_n we_o suppose_v they_o both_o fallible_a be_v the_o better_a with_o what_o proof_n or_o principle_n can_v this_o fallible_a protestant_a assault_n his_o fallible_a adversary_n when_o he_o know_v he_o can_v go_v one_o step_v further_o than_o to_o what_o be_v pure_o fallible_a if_o he_o interpret_v scripture_n that_o be_v fallible_a if_o he_o quote_v father_n both_o they_o and_o he_o be_v fallible_a if_o he_o cite_v council_n the_o definition_n with_o he_o be_v fallible_a if_o he_o cry_v up_o his_o own_o religion_n as_o have_v the_o upperhand_n in_o probability_n he_o only_o throw_v his_o single_a vote_n into_o the_o vrâ_n which_o when_o it_o be_v examine_v come_v to_o no_o more_o but_o his_o own_o sic_fw-la videtur_fw-la or_o self_n fallible_a unjust_o he_o can_v neither_o convince_v his_o adversary_n nor_o persecute_v he_o but_o most_o unjust_o conceit_n and_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o as_o he_o can_v prove_v his_o religion_n against_o his_o adversary_n so_o he_o can_v but_o must_v unjust_o persecute_v he_o if_o he_o refuse_v to_o embrace_v that_o which_o can_v be_v prove_v but_o most_o certain_o his_o proof_n go_v not_o beyond_o the_o bound_n of_o uncertainty_n and_o therefore_o can_v oblige_v his_o adversary_n to_o believe_v he_o and_o thus_o these_o two_o combatant_n may_v wink_v and_o fight_v to_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n without_o end_v one_o controversy_n or_o fall_v on_o any_o thing_n like_o a_o certain_a principle_n 20._o i_o will_v say_v here_o a_o strange_a word_n and_o think_v it_o very_o true_a will_v a_o learned_a atheist_n write_v a_o large_a volume_n as_o a_o atheist_n may_v say_v as_o much_o against_o god_n as_o against_o the_o existency_n of_o god_n or_o a_o learned_a jew_n against_o jesus_n christ_n they_o may_v prove_v as_o much_o by_o a_o rove_a fallible_a talk_n ground_v on_o no_o principle_n against_o these_o great_a verity_n of_o christian_a faith_n as_o ever_o protestant_n have_v yet_o prove_v against_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n church_n protestant_n can_v say_v against_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n for_o their_o new_a mode_n of_o writing_n be_v a_o long_a loose_a wearisome_a discourse_n without_o reduce_v either_o proof_n for_o their_o own_o religion_n or_o opposition_n make_v against_o catholic_n doctrine_n to_o any_o thing_n like_o a_o receive_a principle_n mark_v this_o in_o all_o particular_a controversy_n you_o will_v find_v mere_a uncertain_a conjecture_n to_o be_v the_o last_o ground_n whereon_o either_o their_o proof_n or_o argument_n against_o we_o stand_v most_o unsettle_a yet_o it_o shall_v be_v otherwise_o for_o whoever_o will_v venture_v to_o impugn_v a_o religion_n that_o be_v hold_v by_o the_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n infallible_a must_v strike_v home_o and_o reach_v to_o sound_v principle_n before_o he_o touch_v it_o much_o less_o break_v it_o a_o piece_n sectary_n may_v say_v they_o be_v able_a at_o least_o to_o defend_v christian_a religion_n in_o general_n own_a purpose_n their_o defense_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o in_o general_n be_v to_o no_o purpose_n by_o all_o the_o world_n for_o the_o rest_n of_o protestancy_n it_o may_v go_v whether_o you_o will_v nec_fw-la seritur_fw-la nec_fw-la metitur_fw-la they_o be_v not_o solicitous_a my_o god_n be_v we_o come_v to_o this_o pass_v now_o what_o must_v all_o the_o disturbance_n of_o sectary_n their_o schism_n and_o rebellion_n make_v against_o a_o church_n their_o gloss_n on_o scripture_n and_o the_o whole_a machine_n of_o protestancy_n end_v thus_o in_o a_o non_fw-la probatur_fw-la it_o can_v be_v prove_v be_v that_o only_a now_o assert_v defensible_a to_o wit_n the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n that_o precise_o take_v be_v no_o man_n religion_n and_o need_v no_o defense_n 21._o some_o other_o objection_n yet_o remain_v but_o be_v all_o solve_v upon_o the_o principle_n now_o establish_v one_o be_v if_o every_o doctrine_n define_v by_o the_o church_n be_v fundamental_a the_o church_n lay_v its_o own_o foundation_n contra_fw-la there_o be_v fundamental_a faith_n in_o the_o church_n before_o scripture_n be_v write_v do_v scripture_n therefore_o lie_v new_a foundation_n of_o church_n scripture_n declare_v anew_o the_o antecedent_n believe_v doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n faith_n because_o it_o declare_v anew_o that_o antecedent_n own_a doctrine_n thus_o we_o say_v the_o church_n declare_v the_o ancient_a objective_n faith_n of_o forego_v christian_n ever_o implicit_o at_o least_o believe_v and_o not_o otherwise_o a_o second_o objection_n less_o to_o the_o purpose_n the_o teach_v church_n either_o believe_v in_o that_o instant_a sht_v define_v a_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o do_v not_o if_o she_o do_v it_o be_v necessary_a before_o the_o definition_n new_o make_v if_o not_o she_o define_v something_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o be_v not_o before_o necessary_a to_o answer_v the_o objection_n i_o may_v ask_v whether_o st._n john_n when_o he_o write_v this_o proposition_n the_o word_n be_v make_v flesh_n believe_v that_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n before_o he_o write_v it_o or_o no_o if_o yes_o it_o be_v of_o necessity_n to_o be_v believe_v before_o if_o not_o he_o deliver_v something_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o be_v not_o so_o before_o in_o one_o short_a word_n here_o be_v the_o solution_n to_o no_o real_a difficulty_n the_o church_n at_o least_o implicit_o believe_v before_o what_o definition_n the_o church_n believ'_v implicit_o before_o she_o define_v but_o more_o explicit_o after_o for_o she_o own_o definition_n it_o define_v yet_o may_v and_o do_v more_o explicit_o believe_v the_o same_o mystery_n in_o that_o very_a instant_a she_o define_v because_o god_n speak_v that_o truth_n more_o clear_o
ergo_fw-la i_o must_v relinquish_v christianity_n if_o a_o angel_n preach_v against_o it_o the_o reason_n be_v the_o lesser_a light_n yield_v to_o the_o great_a probability_n submit_v to_o certainty_n and_o my_o fallible_a though_o high_o probable_a assent_v can_v but_o yield_v to_o the_o infallible_a assertion_n of_o a_o angel_n if_o he_o speak_v contrary_a to_o it_o these_o few_o consideration_n premise_v we_o must_v insist_v more_o large_o on_o this_o subject_n and_o demonstrate_v that_o there_o be_v live_n and_o infallible_a teacher_n of_o religion_n in_o some_o one_o society_n of_o christian_n or_o other_o which_o be_v direct_o opposite_a to_o mr._n poole_n who_o hold_v that_o no_o man_n be_v so_o high_o privilege_v by_o almighty_a god_n as_o to_o have_v subjective_a infallibility_n or_o to_o teach_v infallible_o though_o perhaps_o they_o may_v deliver_v truth_n as_o it_o be_v by_o chance_n but_o not_o infallible_o as_o teacher_n i_o say_v as_o teacher_n for_o by_o what_o i_o can_v learn_v by_o mr._n poole_n and_o other_o protestant_n they_o think_v all_o do_v when_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o objective_a doctrine_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n be_v infallible_a which_o yet_o they_o can_v know_v without_o a_o infallible_a teacher_n and_o therefore_o in_o say_v this_o they_o speak_v only_o fallible_o but_o admit_v they_o know_v so_o much_o they_o be_v never_o the_o better_a for_o it_o unless_o they_o joint_o own_o some_o oracle_n some_o certain_a master_n who_o by_o divine_a assistance_n interpret_n scripture_n without_o error_n and_o as_o exact_o convey_n into_o our_o heart_n god_n write_v reveal_v verity_n when_o any_o doubt_n arise_v as_o if_o the_o apostle_n teach_v we_o these_o teacher_n be_v they_o can_n we_o find_v they_o out_o that_o circumscribe_v our_o range_a fancy_n and_o put_v a_o limit_n to_o our_o swerve_a thought_n while_o we_o often_o read_v and_o seldom_o understand_v those_o great_a secret_n which_o god_n have_v lay_v up_o in_o the_o book_n of_o sctipture_n without_o they_o as_o we_o see_v by_o too_o sad_a experience_n our_o weak_a reason_n and_o strong_a fancy_n pervert_v all_o and_o produce_v monster_n of_o heresy_n out_o of_o scripture_n itself_o whereof_o more_o hereafter_o the_o first_o discourse_n of_o infallible_a teacher_n and_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n the_o first_o chapter_n there_o be_v infallible_a teacher_n of_o true_a christian_a religion_n 1._o before_o i_o prove_v the_o assertion_n i_o will_v glad_o learn_v of_o our_o adversary_n who_o make_v all_o man_n fallible_a whether_o for_o these_o thousand_o year_n the_o world_n ever_o have_v in_o it_o any_o christian_n who_o hear_v the_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n true_o teach_v and_o infallible_o believe_v it_o if_o they_o disow_v such_o infallible_a believer_n they_o must_v joint_o deny_v all_o infallible_a faith_n and_o consequent_o say_v that_o though_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n innumerable_a verity_n yes_o and_o for_o this_o end_n to_o beget_v infallible_a faith_n in_o our_o heart_n yet_o no_o man_n can_v lay_v hold_n on_o they_o nor_o yield_v to_o they_o by_o any_o other_o assent_n but_o what_o be_v fallible_a and_o may_v be_v false_a methinks_v therefore_o faith_n god_n infallible_a revelation_n require_v a_o infallible_a assent_n of_o faith_n a_o infallible_a verity_n reveal_v to_o we_o forcible_o require_v a_o answerable_a and_o correspondent_a infallible_a assent_n of_o faith_n in_o we_o for_o to_o say_v god_n speak_v infallible_o to_o i_o and_o that_o i_o either_o will_v not_o or_o can_v infallible_o believe_v he_o be_v in_o a_o word_n to_o tell_v he_o that_o his_o certain_a truth_n may_v lie_v close_o where_o they_o be_v in_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n they_o may_v rest_v there_o without_o be_v lay_v up_o or_o lodge_v in_o my_o hart_n as_o infallible_a own_a and_o believe_v truth_n most_o contrary_a be_v those_o golden_a word_n of_o the_o apostle_n 1._o thess_n 2._o v._n 12._o to_o this_o wild_a doctrine_n therefore_o we_o thank_v god_n without_o intermission_n because_o when_o you_o receive_v the_o word_n of_o god_n which_o you_o hear_v from_o we_o you_o receive_v it_o not_o as_o the_o word_n of_o man_n but_o as_o it_o true_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n who_o effectual_o work_v in_o you_o that_o believe_v observe_v well_o he_o who_o receive_v the_o deliver_v word_n of_o god_n as_o it_o be_v true_o god_n word_n and_o not_o man_v he_o that_o have_v in_o his_o hart_n the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n and_o by_o the_o cooperation_n of_o grace_n yield_v a_o assent_n to_o it_o as_o to_o the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n can_v but_o believe_v what_o god_n speak_v and_o as_o he_o speak_v but_o god_n speak_v infallible_o therefore_o he_o believe_v infallible_o or_o if_o he_o reach_v not_o so_o high_a but_o falter_v with_o a_o assent_n that_o be_v fallible_a he_o believe_v not_o god_n nor_o his_o word_n as_o it_o true_o be_v god_n word_n who_o never_o do_v nor_o can_v speak_v any_o thing_n fallible_o now_o if_o on_o the_o other_o side_n our_o adversary_n grant_v that_o christian_n hear_v the_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o believe_v it_o infallible_o they_o also_o must_v admit_v of_o a_o subjective_a infallibility_n at_o least_o in_o such_o believer_n and_o this_o truth_n scripture_n clear_o point_v at_o in_o these_o and_o the_o like_a undeniable_a place_n obvious_a to_o all_o i_o know_v who_o i_o believe_v and_o be_o certain_a let_v the_o house_n of_o israël_n certain_o know_v although_o we_o or_o angel_n from_o heaven_n etc._n etc._n faith_n be_v a_o conviction_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d or_o a_o strong_a argument_n of_o teacher_n belief_n that_o be_v infallible_a suppose_v infallible_a teacher_n what_o appear_v not_o etc._n etc._n but_o these_o i_o wave_v because_o know_v to_o every_o one_o let_v we_o now_o proceed_v to_o the_o teacher_n of_o christian_a religion_n and_o prove_v our_o assertion_n 2._o to_o go_v on_o clear_o i_o will_v know_v whether_o there_o have_v not_o always_o be_v now_o be_v and_o ever_o will_v be_v among_o these_o true_a and_o infallible_a believer_n some_o pastor_n doctor_n or_o teacher_n who_o authorize_v by_o christ_n be_v by_o duty_n both_o to_o instruct_v christian_n in_o case_n they_o swerve_v from_o truth_n and_o also_o to_o reduce_v alien_n from_o christ_n to_o a_o true_a belief_n of_o his_o sacred_a doctrine_n certain_o mr._n poole_n will_v own_v such_o pastor_n in_o the_o world_n if_o not_o what_o be_v minister_n for_o in_o england_n or_o why_o do_v he_o assume_v to_o himself_o this_o office_n of_o teach_v whilst_o he_o endeavour_v to_o reclaim_v a_o seduce_a captain_n from_o his_o apostasy_n as_o he_o call_v it_o and_o be_v it_o possible_a what_o after_o such_o a_o sectary_n the_o harsh_a doctrine_n of_o sectary_n acknowledgement_n shall_v we_o hear_v this_o unheard_a harsh_a and_o most_o haeretical_a assertion_n that_o all_o these_o pastor_n who_o be_v to_o unbeguile_v soul_n may_v be_v beguile_v themselves_o or_o teach_v false_a doctrine_n and_o that_o not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o among_o they_o all_o be_v so_o high_o privilege_v as_o to_o instruct_v with_o certainty_n if_o all_o be_v fallible_a and_o none_o teach_v certain_o the_o blind_a lead_v the_o blind_a the_o scholar_n be_v as_o good_a as_o his_o master_n at_o least_o none_o can_v in_o prudence_n learn_v of_o any_o if_o this_o persuasion_n live_v in_o he_o he_o that_o teach_v i_o may_v as_o well_o err_v as_o i_o who_o be_o to_o learn_v if_o a_o unskilful_a traveller_n inquire_v the_o way_n to_o a_o unknown_a place_n of_o one_o know_v it_o no_o better_a than_o he_o that_o ask_v he_o travel_n on_z with_o no_o security_n and_o this_o be_v our_o very_a case_n among_o so_o many_o byway_n so_o many_o maze_n of_o sect_n and_o schism_n as_o now_o swarm_v in_o the_o world_n and_o like_a cobweb_n intricate_a thousand_o of_o soul_n in_o their_o journey_n we_o be_v post_v on_o as_o fast_o as_o time_n can_v drive_v we_o to_o a_o place_n yet_o unknown_a a_o long_a eternity_n the_o direct_a thread_n that_o safe_o draw_v we_o out_o of_o these_o labirinth_n be_v sure_a firm_a and_o infallible_a faith_n we_o ask_v to_o learn_v this_o of_o our_o new_a doctor_n and_o not_o one_o can_v certain_o say_v such_o be_v the_o way_n this_o infallible_o be_v the_o faith_n that_o wind_v we_o out_o of_o error_n and_o most_o assure_o lead_v s_o to_o heaven_n or_o if_o any_o say_v so_o much_o he_o speak_v only_o fallible_o 3._o and_o here_o be_v the_o summary_n of_o protestant_n comfortless_a comfortless_a protestant_n doctrine_n comfortless_a doctrine_n they_o have_v pastor_n that_o talk_v but_o teach_v nothing_o certain_o they_o have_v infallible_a verity_n lock_v up_o in_o scripture_n but_o none_o can_v open_v that_o book_n or_o convey_v they_o with_o assurance_n into_o man_n heart_n they_o hear_v god_n speak_v but_o none_o
say_v it_o be_v the_o church_n ought_v to_o be_v certain_a and_o infallible_a it_o seem_v enough_o say_v some_o that_o this_o faith_n be_v teach_v upon_o a_o rational_a evidence_n which_o evidence_n final_o resolve_v come_v to_o no_o more_o but_o to_o a_o moral_a certainty_n these_o as_o i_o be_o inform_v ground_n themselves_o on_o this_o principle_n that_o all_o the_o assurance_n we_o can_v have_v of_o christian_a religion_n have_v for_o its_o whole_a foundation_n moral_a certainty_n only_o and_o it_o seem_v a_o prop_n firm_a enough_o to_o support_v it_o more_o it_o can_v have_v 6._o the_o objection_n contain_v two_o part_n to_o the_o first_o i_o answer_v if_o divine_a faith_n be_v in_o the_o world_n reason_n teacher_n divine_a faith_n must_v have_v a_o infallibie_n teacher_n convince_v that_o the_o object_n of_o it_o be_v propound_v by_o a_o certain_a and_o infallible_a teacher_n and_o then_o most_o when_o point_n fundamental_a lie_n under_o dispute_n and_o be_v in_o controversy_n i'faith_o therefore_o require_v two_o thing_n essential_o to_o omit_v other_o necessary_n a_o object_n which_o be_v god_n revelation_n and_o a_o proposition_n of_o this_o object_n make_v by_o some_o teacher_n to_o christian_n which_o doctrine_n the_o apostle_n ratify_v rom._n 10._o 15._o how_o shall_v they_o hear_v without_o a_o preacher_n by_o virtue_n of_o this_o proposition_n whether_o we_o call_v it_o cause_v or_o a_o essential_a condition_n the_o elicit_v act_n of_o faith_n follow_v in_o a_o believer_n and_o intellectual_o lay_v as_o it_o be_v hold_v both_o on_o god_n revelation_n and_o the_o thing_n reveal_v observe_v now_o well_o god_n revelation_n none_n doubt_v it_o be_v certain_a and_o infallible_a divine_a faith_n which_o rest_v on_o this_o motive_n and_o proceed_v from_o grace_n be_v also_o certain_a and_o infallible_a the_o only_a difficulty_n remain_v concern_v this_o proponent_n of_o faith_n object_n and_o it_o be_v whether_o he_o that_o direct_v i_o and_o endeavour_n right_o to_o settle_v my_o faith_n upon_o god_n infallible_a revelation_n do_v his_o work_n with_o assurance_n fallible_o or_o infallible_o 7._o i_o say_v first_o god_n infallible_a revelation_n avail_n nothing_o in_o order_n to_o faith_n unless_o christian_n by_o their_o faith_n lie_v hold_v on_o the_o certainty_n thereof_o or_o own_o it_o as_o infallible_a and_o the_o assure_a ground_n of_o their_o assent_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o god_n speak_v infallible_o to_o christian_n for_o this_o end_n that_o his_o infallible_a word_n may_v have_v influence_n into_o faith_n and_o support_v in_o with_o certainty_n if_o therefore_o this_o reveal_v word_n be_v not_o certain_o propose_v as_o it_o be_v infallible_a if_o it_o be_v not_o due_o apply_v to_o a_o believer_n understanding_n under_o its_o apply_v the_o object_n of_o faith_n must_v be_v infallible_o apply_v own_o notion_n of_o certainty_n that_o strength_n of_o infallibility_n lie_v as_o it_o be_v dead_a without_o operation_n and_o profit_v belief_n no_o more_o than_o food_n do_v a_o body_n into_o which_o it_o can_v enter_v the_o similitude_n be_v fit_a for_o as_o food_n though_o apt_a to_o strengthen_v a_o body_n be_v just_a as_o if_o it_o be_v not_o unless_o it_o be_v due_o apply_v so_o god_n certain_a revelation_n though_o most_o proportionate_a to_o strengthen_v a_o soul_n in_o faith_n yet_o in_o order_n to_o this_o effect_n it_o lose_v all_o efficacy_n while_o a_o due_a application_n of_o its_o infallibility_n be_v want_v 8._o to_o illustrate_v more_o this_o necessary_a truth_n i_o say_v second_o when_o a_o revelation_n lie_v dark_o in_o scripture_n as_o it_o often_o do_v in_o high_a point_n of_o controversy_n according_a to_o the_o measure_n or_o degree_n of_o certitude_n which_o the_o proponent_n of_o faith_n give_v to_o the_o revelation_n and_o say_v god_n speak_v thus_o a_o assent_n answerable_o follow_v with_o like_a certitude_n in_o the_o hearer_n and_o not_o a_o strong_a if_o therefore_o the_o proponent_n only_o say_v doubtful_o i_o think_v god_n speak_v as_o i_o preach_v but_o be_o not_o certain_a propound_v god_n revelation_n be_v receive_v according_a as_o it_o be_v propound_v doubtful_a also_o be_v the_o assent_n give_v to_o this_o preach_v if_o he_o say_v what_o i_o teach_v be_v probable_a the_o assent_n can_v be_v no_o more_o but_o probable_a if_o final_o he_o true_o say_v i_o teach_v infallible_o what_o be_v reveal_v the_o assent_n answer_v and_o be_v infallible_a the_o reason_n be_v clear_a for_o as_o no_o eye_n can_v see_v colour_n in_o darkness_n before_o light_n make_v they_o visible_a yea_o and_o according_a to_o the_o measure_n of_o light_n it_o see_v we_o they_o so_o no_o intellectual_a eye_n can_v discover_v a_o dark_a revelation_n before_o he_o borrow_v light_a from_o his_o teacher_n and_o as_o the_o light_n be_v less_o or_o more_o so_o he_o see_v we_o that_o object_n less_o or_o more_o perfect_o a_o dubious_a and_o uncertain_a proposal_n therefore_o make_v of_o a_o certain_a revelation_n when_o it_o do_v not_o clear_o manifest_v itself_o be_v like_o a_o glimmer_a light_n and_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v apply_v the_o objective_a infallibility_n thereof_o with_o assurance_n to_o man_n intellectual_a faculty_n which_o yet_o seek_n after_n certainty_n in_o matter_n of_o belief_n this_o need_v no_o proof_n for_o he_o who_o propose_v only_o doubful_o a_o revelation_n which_o be_v certain_a in_o itself_o both_o in_o actu_fw-la signato_fw-la and_o exercito_fw-la say_v no_o more_o but_o timid_o thus_o much_o perhaps_o i_o declare_v faith_n a_o timide_a proposal_n of_o divine_a revelation_n beget_v no_o more_o but_o a_o doubtful_a faith_n what_o god_n speak_v and_o perhaps_o i_o do_v not_o for_o my_o declaration_n only_o doubful_o guess_v at_o the_o certainty_n of_o the_o revelation_n and_o it_o be_v against_o the_o nature_n of_o all_o doubt_n to_o convey_v certainty_n into_o any_o understanding_n as_o long_a therfote_n as_o the_o infallibility_n of_o a_o revelation_n stand_v remote_a from_o i_o for_o want_v of_o a_o undoubted_a application_n make_v by_o a_o infallible_a proponent_n it_o can_v no_o more_o transfuse_v certainty_n into_o faith_n than_o fire_n at_o a_o great_a distance_n warm_a that_o be_v no_o more_o then_o if_o it_o be_v not_o certain_a in_o itself_o or_o not_o at_o all_o in_o be_v whence_o i_o conclude_v that_o a_o certain_a revelation_n if_o obscure_a in_o scripture_n require_v a_o certain_a proposition_n because_o it_o little_a avail_n i_o to_o know_v this_o truth_n that_o if_o god_n speak_v he_o speak_v infallible_o unless_o hîc_fw-la &_o nunc_fw-la in_o these_o circumstance_n when_o he_o speak_v to_o i_o for_o my_o salvation_n i_o yield_v my_o certain_a assent_n to_o the_o infallibility_n of_o his_o word_n which_o can_v be_v do_v unless_o i_o have_v assurance_n from_o my_o teacher_n that_o he_o speak_v as_o i_o ought_v to_o believe_v infallible_o upon_o these_o undeniable_a principle_n i_o say_v three_o our_o faith_n sectary_n can_v have_v no_o divine_a faith_n sectary_n can_v do_v no_o more_o but_o doubtful_o guess_v at_o what_o they_o believe_v and_o consequent_o as_o protestant_n never_o yet_o have_v nor_o can_v have_v divine_a certain_a and_o infallible_a faith_n i_o prove_v the_o assertion_n all_o faith_n which_o have_v no_o other_o certitude_n than_o what_o be_v derive_v from_o those_o who_o propound_v the_o object_n of_o it_o id_fw-la est_fw-la god_n revelation_n uncertain_o and_o doubtful_o be_v no_o more_o but_o waver_v opinative_a and_o doubtful_a but_o the_o faith_n of_o protestant_n be_v evident_o such_o because_o no_o man_n or_o society_n of_o man_n among_o they_o can_v without_o doubt_n and_o fear_v infallible_o say_v god_n speak_v as_o i_o preach_v and_o i_o infallible_o preach_v as_o god_n speak_v for_o if_o he_o aver_v thus_o much_o with_o truth_n he_o propound_n the_o object_n of_o his_o faith_n infallible_o and_o therefore_o be_v so_o far_o infallible_a if_o he_o do_v infallible_o they_o can_v propose_v faith_n infallible_o not_o his_o preach_n must_v be_v final_o resolve_v into_o his_o own_o timid_n weak_a and_o waver_a opinion_n which_o weigh_v come_v to_o no_o more_o but_o this_o levity_n i_o hope_v well_o and_o think_v i_o preach_v what_o god_n have_v infallible_o reveal_v yet_o be_o not_o certain_a because_o all_o i_o say_v for_o aught_o i_o know_v be_v fallible_a 9_o if_o you_o will_v see_v this_o truth_n far_o evidence_v do_v no_o more_o but_o ask_v of_o any_o protestant_n why_o for_o example_n he_o believe_v that_o all_o the_o church_n on_o earth_n be_v fallible_a that_o christ_n be_v only_o figurative_o in_o the_o eucharist_n that_o faith_n only_o justify_v that_o there_o be_v two_o sacrament_n and_o no_o more_o etc._n etc._n his_o first_o refuge_n perhaps_o will_v be_v to_o scripture_n but_o demand_v again_o whether_o scripture_n in_o plain_a and_o express_a term_n deliver_v these_o suppose_a doctrine_n if_o he_o be_v not_o more_o than_o
time_n any_o infallible_a church_n on_o earth_n even_o in_o fundamental_o all_o therefore_o we_o have_v now_o to_o direct_v we_o be_v only_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n without_o other_o proponent_n and_o every_o man_n private_a reason_n contra._n it_o be_v evident_a that_o scripture_n make_v no_o man_n infallible_a both_o arian_n and_o other_o read_v it_o and_o yet_o gross_o err_v in_o point_n most_o essential_a deny_v therefore_o a_o church_n unerrable_a in_o essential_o and_o say_v bold_o that_o as_o arian_n have_v already_o err_v in_o some_o fundamental_o so_o other_o may_v before_o this_o day_n have_v whole_o err_v and_o out_v both_o christ_n and_o creed_n with_o every_o article_n of_o christian_a religion_n for_o weak_a reason_n alone_o be_v insufficient_a to_o preserve_v christianity_n in_o its_o purity_n as_o i_o have_v show_v above_o whereof_o also_o more_o hereafter_o chap._n v._n a_o word_n with_o some_o late_a sectary_n concern_v moral_a certainty_n 1._o here_o we_o come_v to_o examine_v the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o objection_n propose_v above_o n._n 5._o and_o thus_o fleet_n mr._n still_v fleet_n some_o late_a man_n discourse_v concern_v the_o certainty_n of_o christian_a religion_n they_o say_v first_o and_o most_o true_o that_o the_o ultimate_a motive_n whereon_o faith_n rely_v be_v god_n infallible_a testimony_n with_o all_o that_o none_o can_v question_v the_o fallibility_n of_o this_o reveal_v testimony_n when_o it_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v and_o make_v know_v to_o we_o the_o only_a question_n therefore_o be_v how_o it_o come_v to_o be_v make_v know_v or_o discover_v in_o order_n to_o those_o thing_n certainty_n protestant_n doctrine_n about_o moral_a certainty_n which_o be_v immediate_o reveal_v they_o say_v second_o moral_a certainty_n may_v be_v a_o sufficient_a foundation_n for_o the_o most_o firm_a assent_n if_o the_o matter_n to_o be_v believe_v be_v the_o infallible_a truth_n of_o a_o doctrine_n upon_o suitable_a evidence_n though_o we_o have_v now_o but_o moral_a certainty_n of_o that_o evidence_n the_o assent_n may_v yet_o be_v firm_a to_o such_o a_o doctrine_n as_o infallible_a they_o say_v three_o moral_a certainty_n may_v be_v as_o great_a as_o mathematical_a and_o physical_a suppose_v as_o little_a reason_n to_o doubt_v in_o moral_a thing_n as_o to_o their_o nature_n as_o in_o mathematical_a and_o physical_a as_o to_o they_o here_o brief_o be_v their_o doctrine_n some_o further_a explication_n of_o it_o will_v perhaps_o more_o opportune_o have_v place_n while_o we_o make_v our_o exception_n against_o it_o and_o 2._o my_o first_o exception_n be_v these_o author_n do_v not_o sufficient_o explain_v what_o they_o will_v have_v here_o understand_v by_o moral_a certainty_n wherein_o there_o be_v a_o great_a latitude_n one_o degree_n of_o it_o exclude_v all_o rational_a doubt_n certainty_n degree_n of_o moral_a certainty_n and_o thus_o we_o say_v he_o who_o never_o see_v constantinople_n may_v yet_o upon_o the_o indubitable_a testimony_n of_o so_o many_o witness_n who_o have_v see_v it_o affirm_v without_o fear_n there_o be_v or_o have_v be_v such_o a_o city_n in_o the_o world_n an_o other_o degree_n of_o this_o certitude_n reach_v not_o so_o high_a as_o we_o see_v in_o school_n opinion_n some_o philosopher_n tell_v you_o it_o be_v moral_o certain_a that_o sublunary_a body_n as_o fire_n and_o water_n be_v compose_v of_o matter_n and_o form_n that_o accident_n be_v real_o distinct_a from_o substance_n and_o motion_n yet_o now_o there_o be_v some_o that_o deny_v it_o and_o hold_v as_o they_o think_v a_o contrary_a philosophy_n more_o moral_o certain_a therefore_o when_o we_o come_v to_o apply_v this_o moral_a certainty_n to_o disputable_a matter_n we_o do_v seldom_o or_o never_o agree_v about_o it_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o these_o very_a man_n we_o now_o treat_v with_o will_v say_v what_o they_o judge_v god_n know_v that_o that_o part_n of_o protestant_a religion_n wherein_o it_o differ'_v from_o all_o christian_n be_v upon_o moral_a certainty_n true_a yet_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n oppose_v they_o and_o avouch_v it_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o degree_n of_o probability_n for_o it_o that_o therefore_o which_o be_v here_o mean_v by_o moral_a certitude_n must_v if_o these_o author_n speak_v to_o the_o purpose_n be_v a_o certainty_n whereof_o no_o man_n can_v rational_o doubt_v thus_o much_o suppose_v 3._o i_o say_v first_o and_o by_o this_o assertion_n you_o may_v discover_v the_o grand_a cheat_n of_o these_o novellist_n christian_n discover_v a_o grand_a cheat_n of_o navellist_n discover_v religion_n as_o it_o be_v fancy_v and_o various_o profess_v by_o innumerable_a who_o go_v under_o that_o name_n and_o notion_n have_v so_o little_a of_o this_o great_a moral_a certainty_n for_o it_o that_o it_o be_v a_o haeresy_n to_o allow_v it_o a_o mean_a probability_n why_o arian_n pelagian_o eutychian_o donatist_n socinian_n and_o all_o other_o condemn_v heretic_n call_v themselves_o christian_n and_o profess_v some_o part_n of_o christian_a religion_n true_o but_o have_v they_o i_o beseech_v you_o a_o great_a moral_a certainty_n for_o the_o other_o part_n of_o their_o error_n and_o heresy_n false_o vent_v by_o they_o as_o christ_n doctrine_n you_o will_v say_v no._n but_o they_o have_v it_o for_o the_o fundamental_o of_o christian_a religion_n whereof_o no_o man_n ever_o doubt_v and_o thus_o much_o they_o defend_v upon_o that_o certitude_n admit_v of_o this_o as_o true_a though_o i_o hope_v prorestant_o grant_v that_o arian_n do_v deny_v fundamental_a doctrine_n what_o be_v it_o to_o the_o purpose_n to_o tell_v we_o all_o condemn_v heretic_n and_o protestant_n question_n these_o man_n wave_v the_o main_a question_n with_o they_o have_v moral_a certainty_n for_o one_o part_n of_o christian_a religion_n whereof_o none_o ever_o doubt_v and_o to_o give_v we_o nothing_o of_o this_o high_a certitude_n for_o the_o other_o part_n which_o be_v in_o controversy_n and_o specifical_o belong_v to_o protestant_n have_v these_o man_n therefore_o come_v home_o to_o the_o dfficulty_n they_o will_v not_o have_v here_o misspend_v time_n in_o prove_v what_o need_v no_o proof_n viz._n that_o the_o general_n doctrine_n own_v by_o all_o christian_n as_o be_v a_o belief_n in_o one_o god_n or_o of_o christ_n a_o redeemer_n etc._n etc._n have_v at_o least_o moral_a certainty_n for_o it_o but_o they_o shall_v have_v show_v that_o arianism_n as_o arianism_n or_o which_o have_v be_v to_o the_o purpose_n that_o protestancy_n as_o protestancy_n stand_v so_o firm_o build_v on_o high_a moral_a certainty_n that_o none_o can_v prudent_o doubt_v of_o protestancy_n protestant_n under_o the_o general_a name_n of_o christian_n persuade_v nothing_o for_o protestancy_n it_o now_o this_o they_o fraudulent_o wave_v and_o only_o put_v we_o of_o with_o a_o general_a word_n of_o the_o certainty_n of_o christian_a religion_n as_o if_o protestancy_n hide_v under_o that_o specious_a name_n have_v safety_n and_o sanctuary_n enough_o or_o as_o if_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o say_v the_o part_n of_o christian_a faith_n universal_o agree_v on_o be_v certain_a ergo_fw-la protestancy_n as_o protestancy_n go_v along_o with_o it_o upon_o equal_a certitude_n alas_o this_o be_v that_o which_o only_o require_v proof_n and_o be_v the_o thing_n we_o absolute_o deny_v 4._o again_o and_o here_o be_v my_o second_o exception_n these_o author_n can_v apply_v their_o moral_a certainty_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o any_o religion_n that_o bear_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n at_o least_o it_o be_v neither_o appliable_a to_o catholic_n nor_o protestant_n for_o proof_n hereof_o note_v first_o that_o moral_a certainty_n two_o reflection_n make_v on_o moral_a certainty_n certainty_n take_v in_o what_o height_n you_o please_v be_v a_o act_n of_o the_o judicative_a power_n in_o man_n subjective_o settle_v in_o his_o mind_n who_o have_v it_o and_o ever_o fall_v on_o a_o determinate_a object_n for_o in_o object_n à _fw-la parte_fw-la rei_fw-la there_o be_v neither_o probability_n nor_o moral_a certainty_n every_o thing_n imaginable_a be_v either_o in_o itself_o real_a and_o stable_a or_o not_o independent_a of_o any_o moral_a assertion_n as_o be_v clear_a for_o shall_v one_o say_v now_o it_o be_v moral_o certain_a that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o city_n as_o rome_n in_o the_o world_n rome_n be_v or_o be_v not_o independent_a of_o what_o be_v assert_v moral_o certain_a note_n second_o though_o the_o great_a moral_a certainty_n false_a moral_a certainty_n may_v be_v false_a usual_o exclude_v a_o rational_a doubt_n in_o order_n to_o what_o be_v assert_v certain_a yet_o in_o rigour_n it_o may_v be_v false_a and_o therefore_o ever_o imply_v some_o weak_a degree_n of_o fear_n of_o anxiety_n and_o suspicion_n to_o the_o contrary_n have_v any_o one_o say_v a_o few_o day_n before_o the_o burn_a of_o london_n little_a then_o foresee_v that_o sad_a disaster_n that_o that_o noble_a city_n will_v not_o in_o so_o strange_a a_o
manner_n be_v consume_v with_o fire_n he_o will_v have_v be_v think_v to_o have_v utter_v a_o truth_n moral_o certain_a yet_o the_o contrary_a doleful_a effect_n prove_v it_o untrue_a and_o the_o like_a may_v happen_v now_o while_o we_o upon_o moral_a certainty_n say_v rome_n or_o constantinople_n be_v city_n in_o be_v these_o ground_n suppose_v 5._o i_o say_v first_o whoever_o when_o he_o affirm_n that_o christian_a religion_n be_v only_o moral_o certain_a and_o have_v for_o the_o object_n of_o his_o affirmation_n that_o which_o essential_o religion_n moral_a certainty_n only_o destroy_n the_o be_v of_o christian_a religion_n constitute_v religion_n i_o mean_v true_a divine_a and_o supernatural_a faith_n high_o wrong_v christian_n religion_n yea_o and_o destroy_v the_o very_a be_v and_o essence_n of_o it_o i_o prove_v it_o the_o certainty_n of_o divine_a faith_n be_v as_o far_o above_o and_o distant_a from_o all_o the_o degree_n of_o moral_a certitude_n which_o may_v be_v false_a as_o heaven_n be_v from_o earth_n and_o more_o therefore_o he_o who_o allow_v no_o great_a certainty_n to_o true_a faith_n then_o moral_a which_o may_v be_v false_a destroy_v both_o certainty_n certainty_n of_o faith_n far_o above_o moral_a certainty_n the_o life_n and_o essence_n of_o christian_a religion_n that_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n far_o surpass_v all_o the_o degree_n of_o moral_a certitude_n be_v demonstrable_a upon_o principle_n grant_v as_o well_o by_o orthodox_n christian_n as_o by_o our_o adversary_n who_o say_v that_o true_a faith_n dot_v not_o only_o affirm_v that_o what_o god_n reveal_v be_v most_o certain_a for_o thus_o much_o suppose_v a_o god_n we_o know_v by_o science_n be_v there_o no_o faith_n but_o by_o faith_n we_o affirm_v without_o fear_n at_o all_o god_n speak_v thus_o and_o thus._n he_o reveal_v that_o the_o divine_a word_n take_v flesh_n that_o christ_n die_v for_o we_o that_o there_o be_v a_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o one_o divine_a essence_n etc._n etc._n such_o truth_n we_o already_o own_v as_o deliver_v by_o one_o who_o neither_o can_v nor_o will_v deceive_v we_o 6._o hence_o i_o argue_v the_o sole_a and_o adequate_a object_n of_o divine_a and_o supernatural_a faith_n be_v god_n infinite_a veracity_n which_o actual_o speak_v to_o we_o and_o be_v liable_a to_o no_o error_n i'faith_o then_o if_o it_o be_v divine_a tend_v unto_o no_o other_o object_n neither_o be_v the_o now_o infuse_a habit_n of_o it_o though_o fortify_v with_o a_o thousand_o illustration_n enable_v to_o rest_n upon_o any_o other_o motive_n in_o this_o present_a state_n what_o therefore_o this_o infinite_a veracity_n actual_o reveal_n that_o faith_n lay_v hold_v on_o it_o can_v believe_v more_o or_o less_o now_o i_o subsume_v but_o this_o infinite_a veracity_n when_o it_o be_v due_o propose_v transfuse_v more_o do_v god_n veracity_n transfuse_v more_o certainty_n into_o faith_n than_o the_o motive_n of_o moral_a certainty_n can_v do_v certainty_n into_o the_o elicit_v act_n of_o faith_n then_o any_o moral_a certainty_n derive_v from_o inferior_a motive_n can_v have_v for_o all_o moral_a certainty_n be_v at_o least_o capable_a of_o falsity_n and_o may_v deceive_v we_o god_n infallible_a veracity_n can_v be_v false_a nor_o deceive_v if_o faith_n rest_v upon_o that_o motive_n and_o if_o it_o rest_v not_o there_o it_o be_v no_o faith_n at_o all_o it_o be_v therefore_o absolute_o impossible_a if_o god_n speak_v and_o i_o believe_v he_o as_o he_o speak_v that_o all_o the_o power_n in_o heaven_n can_v falsify_v this_o faith_n i'faith_o if_o it_o rest_v not_o on_o god_n veracity_n be_v not_o faith_n act_n or_o separate_a a_o most_o high_a infallibility_n from_o it_o contrariwise_o there_o be_v no_o moral_a certainty_n but_o may_v by_o all_o the_o principle_n it_o have_v be_v false_a and_o fallible_a yea_o and_o often_o be_v so_o 7._o from_o this_o undoubted_a ground_n i_o infer_v also_o science_n supernatural_a faith_n more_o certain_a than_o metaphysical_a science_n that_o supernatural_a faith_n be_v more_o certain_a and_o infallible_a than_o all_o the_o metaphysical_a science_n which_o nature_n can_v give_v we_o it_o be_v true_a metaphysical_a science_n have_v more_o of_o the_o evidence_n and_o therefore_o exclude_v all_o indeliberate_a fear_n or_o doubt_v to_o the_o contrary_n for_o no_o man_n can_v so_o much_o as_o indeliberate_o doubt_v whether_o a_o whole_a city_n be_v great_a than_o one_o house_n but_o for_o absolute_a certainty_n and_o infallible_a adhesion_n faith_n yet_o surpass_v it_o the_o reason_n motive_n the_o energy_n of_o faith_n motive_n be_v because_o the_o infinite_a veracity_n of_o god_n which_o only_o support_v faith_n majori_fw-la vi_fw-la with_o great_a force_n energy_n and_o necessity_n transfuse_v into_o it_o a_o supereminent_a infallibility_n supereminent_a i_o say_v and_o above_o all_o the_o certainty_n which_o principle_n of_o nature_n can_v afford_v as_o therefore_o this_o infinite_a veracity_n surpass_v all_o create_a certainty_n so_o faith_n which_o rely_v on_o it_o go_v beyond_o all_o natural_a and_o inferior_a certainty_n upon_o this_o principle_n we_o see_v first_o how_o divine_o the_o apostle_n speak_v licet_fw-la nos_fw-la etc._n etc._n although_o we_o or_o angel_n from_o heaven_n preach_v contrary_a etc._n etc._n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v and_o how_o well_o st._n chrysostome_n deliver_v himself_o when_o he_o say_v hom._n 12._o ponder_v those_o word_n add_v hebr._n 11._o fides_n est_fw-la argumentum_fw-la etc._n etc._n that_o he_o hold_v they_o more_o certain_a than_o the_o thing_n he_o see_v with_o his_o eye_n these_o truth_n and_o great_a truth_n they_o be_v can_v subsist_v unless_o faith_n be_v strong_a in_o certitude_n than_o all_o the_o principle_n in_o nature_n and_o consequent_o far_v more_o strong_a than_o moral_a certainty_n be_v which_o may_v be_v false_a now_o with_o such_o a_o assent_n the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n believe_v therefore_o a_o faith_n only_o moral_o certain_a belong_v not_o to_o it_o if_o protestant_n disow_v it_o they_o have_v no_o faith_n no_o nor_o so_o much_o as_o a_o belief_n moral_o certain_a whereof_o more_o present_o we_o see_v second_o how_o the_o very_a essence_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v destroy_v if_o we_o make_v faith_n no_o more_o but_o moral_o certain_a which_o be_v what_o i_o intend_v to_o prove_v 8._o perhaps_o these_o author_n will_v tell_v we_o when_o they_o confute_v religion_n found_v on_o moral_a certainty_n confute_v assert_v christian_a religion_n to_o be_v found_v on_o moral_a certainty_n their_o assertion_n fall_v not_o immediate_o upon_o the_o assent_n of_o divine_a faith_n which_o be_v firm_a and_o certain_a but_o rather_o upon_o the_o object_n of_o it_o antecedent_o apply_v to_o we_o before_o we_o believe_v whereof_o we_o can_v have_v no_o great_a assurance_n than_o what_o be_v moral_a and_o it_o be_v no_o wonder_n for_o say_v they_o there_o can_v be_v have_v no_o great_a than_o moral_a certainty_n of_o the_o main_a foundation_n of_o all_o religion_n which_o be_v the_o be_v of_o god_n and_o the_o soul_n immortality_n to_o quarrel_v therefore_o with_o moral_a certainty_n be_v madness_n when_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o religion_n be_v capable_a of_o no_o more_o by_o the_o way_n if_o this_o be_v madness_n i_o see_v very_o little_a wisdom_n in_o some_o who_o to_o oppugn_v the_o church_n infallibility_n prove_v as_o they_o suppose_v by_o motive_n of_o credibility_n only_o moral_o certain_a ring_v out_o nothing_o but_o peal_n of_o impossibility_n and_o say_v it_o can_v be_v that_o the_o assent_n to_o a_o matter_n believe_v rise_v high_o or_o stand_v firm_a than_o the_o assent_n which_o be_v give_v to_o the_o testimony_n whereon_o we_o believe_v but_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n be_v the_o thing_n believe_v upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o motive_n at_o most_o but_o moral_o certain_a therefore_o we_o can_v believe_v this_o with_o a_o strong_a degree_n of_o certainty_n than_o those_o motive_n give_v we_o which_o afford_v at_o most_o but_o moral_a certainty_n if_o this_o discourse_n be_v good_a i_o argue_v thus_o ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la no_o great_a certainty_n have_v christian_n now_o antecedent_o to_o their_o actual_a belief_n that_o god_n speak_v to_o they_o by_o either_o scripture_n or_o church_n then_o that_o god_n be_v in_o be_v but_o the_o very_a be_v of_o god_n be_v only_o know_v by_o moral_a certainty_n ergo_fw-la that_o he_o speak_v to_o christian_n can_v be_v know_v antecedent_o to_o belief_n by_o any_o great_a certitude_n than_o what_o be_v moral_a and_o may_v deceive_v they_o how_o then_o i_o beseech_v you_o come_v the_o elicit_v act_n of_o supernatural_a faith_n unto_o such_o a_o height_n of_o certainty_n as_o not_o to_o credit_v a_o angel_n if_o he_o preach_v against_o it_o upon_o what_o motive_n stand_v it_o so_o firm_a when_o no_o other_o certainty_n support_v it_o but_o only_o what_o be_v moral_a and_o may_v be_v false_a the_o medium_fw-la
know_v not_o the_o object_n whereon_o it_o rely_v and_o therefore_o can_v be_v certain_a answer_n it_o be_v a_o catechresis_n or_o a_o abuse_n in_o speech_n to_o say_v that_o either_o faith_n or_o any_o other_o intellectual_a operation_n know_v its_o object_n the_o understanding_n inform_v by_o these_o vital_a act_n know_v if_o we_o speak_v proper_o yet_o if_o we_o go_v on_o in_o that_o vulgar_a language_n significant_a enough_o object_n faith_n can_v no_o more_o scientifical_o prove_v or_o know_v its_o object_n than_o science_n as_o science_n can_v believe_v its_o object_n i_o say_v faith_n as_o faith_n no_o more_o scientifical_o know_v or_o prove_v its_o object_n than_o science_n as_o science_n believe_v what_o it_o know_v this_o prove_v that_o certain_o believe_v whilst_o it_o rest_v immediate_o upon_o god_n revelation_n which_o be_v most_o ample_o prove_v by_o the_o preambulatory_a motive_n now_o touch_v on_o neither_o can_v faith_n scientifical_o know_v or_o prove_v its_o object_n without_o lose_v a_o essential_a predicate_v which_o be_v obscurity_n all_o therefore_o who_o destroy_v not_o the_o very_a nature_n of_o faith_n must_v allow_v it_o the_o great_a certainty_n under_o heaven_n certain_a i'faith_o both_o obscure_a and_o certain_a and_o withal_o grant_v as_o the_o apostle_n do_v that_o it_o be_v argumentum_fw-la non_fw-la apparentium_fw-la of_o a_o dark_a and_o obscure_a tendency_n 14._o you_o will_v reply_v again_o the_o mode_n then_o and_o tendency_n of_o faith_n unto_o its_o object_n be_v here_o suppose_a obscure_a and_o that_o previous_a judgement_n of_o credibility_n after_o all_o possible_a weigh_v of_o those_o motive_n which_o do_v manifest_v the_o credibility_n of_o this_o truth_n god_n speak_v by_o the_o church_n be_v no_o more_o but_o moral_o certain_a ergo_fw-la the_o belief_n of_o that_o truth_n stand_v still_o waver_v upon_o uncertainty_n i_o answer_v if_o these_o motive_n have_v a_o infallible_a connexion_n with_o divine_a revelation_n that_o be_v if_o they_o clear_o convince_v that_o god_n can_v but_o the_o facto_fw-la speak_v to_o christian_n after_o so_o many_o sign_n and_o wonder_n the_o judgement_n previous_a to_o faith_n be_v metaphysical_o certain_a however_o give_v it_o a_o lesser_a certainty_n we_o must_v yet_o say_v with_o the_o prophet_n testimonia_fw-la tua_fw-la credibilia_fw-la believe_v the_o motive_n bring_v reason_n to_o a_o invariable_a state_n of_o believe_v facta_fw-la sunt_fw-la nimis_fw-la these_o motive_n well_o consider_v bring_v reason_n to_o a_o invariable_a state_n of_o believe_v in_o so_o much_o that_o none_o can_v disbelieve_v without_o sin_n and_o madness_n again_o we_o must_v say_v that_o judgement_n which_o thorough_o penetrat'_v they_o evacuat'_v both_o doubt_n and_o fear_v to_o the_o contrary_a and_o far_o exceed_v all_o degree_n of_o probability_n which_o give_v reason_n the_o freedom_n to_o alter_v a_o opinion_n when_o strong_a proof_n come_v against_o it_o but_o no_o real_a proof_n whatever_o be_v capable_a to_o overthrow_n judgement_n no_o real_a proof_n can_v weaken_v this_o judgement_n the_o certainty_n of_o this_o judgement_n though_o fallacy_n may_v puzzle_v it_o call_v it_o then_o as_o you_o please_v moral_a or_o metaphysical_a evidence_n it_o have_v prove_v its_o own_o strength_n for_o never_o any_o without_o it_o since_o christianity_n begin_v either_o right_o believe_v in_o christ_n or_o church_n 15._o this_o judgement_n therefore_o which_o like_o a_o interior_a voice_n suppose_v the_o exterior_a proposition_n of_o the_o church_n summon_n we_o to_o hear_v or_o like_o a_o light_n that_o discover_n god_n own_o language_n deliver_v by_o revelation_n make_v the_o language_n once_o dark_a clear_a enough_o to_o we_o now_o be_v thus_o manifest_v we_o lay_v hold_v on_o it_o and_o yield_v assent_n to_o the_o revelation_n for_o itself_o and_o not_o for_o the_o antecedent_n motive_n and_o because_o this_o revelation_n be_v without_o dispute_n more_o infallible_a than_o any_o truth_n in_o nature_n it_o can_v but_o answerable_o as_o i_o say_v above_o impart_v and_o contribute_v a_o strong_a certainty_n to_o faith_n than_o the_o most_o evident_a principle_n do_v to_o any_o science_n upon_o this_o strong_a fortress_n then_o christian_a religion_n stand_v firm_a which_o undoubted_o imply_v a_o great_a certainty_n then_o only_o moral_a and_o i_o think_v our_o adversary_n will_v say_v so_o too_o certain_a sectary_n own_o a_o faith_n more_o than_o moral_o certain_a who_o though_o they_o take_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n upon_o moral_a certainty_n yet_o they_o believe_v the_o particular_a reveal_v mystery_n contain_v in_o that_o book_n with_o a_o far_o sure_a assent_n than_o what_o be_v only_o moral_a moral_a certainty_n therefore_o necessary_o help_n be_v to_o faith_n though_o faith_n faith_n instance_n how_o moral_a certainty_n help_n be_v too_o faith_n ultimate_o rely_v not_o on_o it_o thus_o you_o know_v the_o will_n love_v good_a either_o real_a or_o apparent_a yet_o need_n be_v not_o to_o love_v the_o cognition_n which_o represent_v goodness_n for_o that_o be_v only_o conditio_fw-la applicans_fw-la a_o condition_n apply_v the_o object_n to_o the_o power_n but_o no_o cause_n of_o love_n i_o may_v also_o adhere_v to_o a_o doctrine_n in_o st._n austin_n for_o st._n augustine_n authority_n upon_o the_o moral_a certain_a word_n of_o one_o who_o tell_v i_o this_o great_a doctor_n say_v so_o why_o therefore_o may_v i_o not_o induce_v by_o far_o strong_a motive_n to_o believe_v this_o truth_n god_n speak_v by_o his_o church_n adhere_v only_o to_o his_o revelation_n without_o touch_v on_o the_o motive_n which_o serve_v well_o as_o condition_n to_o apply_v that_o object_n to_o the_o power_n yet_o want_v the_o strength_n of_o a_o formal_a object_n to_o support_v faith_n but_o more_o of_o this_o subject_a in_o another_o treatise_n where_o we_o shall_v show_v that_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n at_o least_o unevident_a in_o respect_n of_o the_o material_a object_n be_v not_o so_o much_o a_o speculative_a as_o a_o prudent_a submissive_a and_o practical_a certainty_n chap._n vi_o i'faith_o only_o moral_o certain_a be_v no_o faith_n protestant_n have_v no_o moral_a certainty_n of_o protestant_a religion_n 1._o let_v we_o here_o suppose_v contrary_a to_o truth_n that_o all_o religion_n bring_v to_o a_o just_a trial_n come_v to_o no_o more_o but_o to_o a_o high_a moral_a certainty_n which_o though_o it_o imply_v no_o absolute_a impossibility_n of_o be_v false_a yet_o be_v so_o strong_a that_o none_o consider_v the_o great_a evidence_n we_o have_v for_o christianity_n can_v without_o madness_n practical_o doubt_v or_o hold_v it_o otherwise_o then_o it_o be_v most_o moral_o certain_a put_v the_o case_n then_o that_o we_o arrive_v to_o this_o degree_n of_o certitude_n only_o you_o will_v ask_v why_o be_v not_o such_o a_o faith_n steadfast_a enough_o and_o very_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n thus_o far_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o some_o neoterik_v make_v faith_n certain_a and_o strip_v it_o of_o all_o further_a infallibility_n i_o answer_v a_o faith_n only_o moral_o certain_a be_v no_o faith_n and_o prove_v my_o assertion_n that_o whereon_o all_o moral_a certainty_n imaginable_a essential_o depend_v be_v fallible_a and_o may_v deceive_v we_o that_o fallible_a that_o whereon_o faith_n rely_v be_v infallible_a that_o whereon_o moral_a certainty_n depend_v be_v fallible_a whereon_o true_a faith_n essential_o depend_v which_o be_v divine_a revelation_n be_v infallible_a and_o can_v deceive_v ergo_fw-la what_o ever_o ground_n be_v a_o moral_a certainty_n only_o which_o may_v deceive_v be_v as_o unproportionate_a to_o uphold_v true_a faith_n as_o revelation_n own_v as_o divine_a be_v unfit_a to_o ground_v a_o fallible_a opinion_n as_o long_o therefore_o as_o the_o object_n of_o pure_a moral_a certainty_n become_v not_o god_n revelation_n which_o can_v never_o be_v so_o long_a faith_n can_v rely_v on_o it_o or_o if_o it_o do_v rest_n here_o it_o mistake_v its_o object_n and_o call_v tbat_v revelation_n which_o be_v none_o the_o ultimate_a reason_n of_o this_o discourse_n stand_v principle_n two_o sure_a principle_n firm_a upon_o these_o two_o principle_n 1._o all_o moral_a certainty_n may_v be_v false_a 2._o god_n revelation_n because_o it_o be_v infallible_a as_o god_n essential_o exclude_v that_o weak_a degree_n of_o certitude_n and_o can_v be_v false_a which_o be_v to_o say_v in_o plain_a term_n god_n neither_o do_v nor_o can_v speak_v any_o thing_n only_o moral_o certain_a 2._o that_o all_o moral_a certainty_n may_v be_v false_a be_v evident_a for_o invent_v the_o strong_a imaginable_a as_o this_o be_v distinguish_v from_o physical_a or_o metaphysical_a certainty_n and_o say_v what_o you_o will_v within_o that_o compass_n viz._n rome_n and_o constantinople_n be_v now_o city_n in_o be_v or_o that_o when_o one_o in_o a_o large_a city_n sitt'_v imprison_v at_o noonday_n and_o hear_v no_o body_n yet_o say_v most_o sure_o all_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o this_o place_n be_v neither_o dead_a nor_o asleep_a
such_o a_o assertion_n though_o most_o moral_o certain_a be_v capable_a of_o falsity_n for_o god_n may_v have_v destroy_v all_o those_o man_n or_o give_v they_o over_o to_o a_o strange_a unheard_a of_o drowsiness_n that_o be_v not_o impossibility_n if_o it_o be_v so_o why_o because_o the_o assertion_n only_o stand_v upon_o these_o negative_n or_o some_o like_a foundation_n never_o yet_o be_v see_v such_o a_o effect_n as_o this_o secundary_a cause_n never_o yet_o concur_v to_o so_o universal_a a_o sleep_n or_o mortality_n here_o be_v the_o best_a assurance_n which_o can_v be_v have_v and_o yet_o it_o may_v be_v false_a contrariwise_o suppose_v that_o god_n reveal_n to_o the_o imprison_v party_n this_o certain_a what_o god_n reveal_v be_v always_o most_o certain_a truth_n due_o propose_v all_o the_o man_n of_o this_o city_n be_v not_o dead_a his_o belief_n rest_v on_o this_o revelation_n be_v so_o certain_a that_o no_o power_n in_o heaven_n can_v falsify_v it_o where_o you_o see_v a_o vast_a disparity_n in_o order_n to_o infallibility_n between_o faith_n and_o moral_a certainty_n the_o one_o certainty_n difference_n between_o faith_n and_o moral_a certainty_n because_o of_o its_o weak_a motive_n may_v be_v fall_v the_o other_o strong_o uphold_v by_o revelation_n can_v be_v falsify_v perhaps_o you_o will_v say_v at_o least_o we_o know_v not_o that_o god_n speak_v to_o we_o but_o only_o upon_o moral_a certainty_n of_o this_o more_o present_o here_o the_o reply_n be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o all_o we_o convince_v now_o be_v that_o faith_n if_o any_o be_v in_o the_o world_n must_v final_o rest_v on_o god_n infallible_a revelation_n and_o consequent_o that_o no_o motive_n of_o moral_a certainty_n have_v strength_n enough_o to_o support_v it_o now_o by_o what_o mean_v it_o come_v at_o last_o to_o be_v settle_v in_o this_o centre_n of_o god_n infallible_a veracity_n be_v another_o question_n thus_o it_o must_v rest_n or_o as_o our_o adversary_n confess_v lose_v the_o essence_n of_o infallible_a faith_n 3._o brief_o we_o shall_v now_o make_v good_a the_o other_o assertion_n in_o the_o title_n and_o show_v though_o moral_a certainty_n be_v as_o it_o be_v not_o a_o prop_n strong_a enough_o to_o certainty_n protestant_n religion_n have_v not_o moral_a certainty_n support_v christian_a religion_n yet_o protestant_n have_v no_o degree_n of_o it_o for_o their_o pretend_a religion_n i_o prove_v this_o truth_n by_o protestancy_n we_o must_v either_o understand_v those_o prudential_n motive_n which_o induce_v man_n to_o believe_v the_o specifical_a and_o particular_a doctrine_n of_o protestant_n such_o be_v miracle_n antiquity_n great_a conversion_n &c._n &c._n or_o rather_o the_o very_a tenant_n and_o doctrine_n actual_o believe_v by_o they_o for_o example_n that_o all_o pastor_n may_v err_v in_o deliver_v christian_a doctrine_n that_o there_o be_v two_o sacrament_n only_o or_o what_o else_o you_o will_n if_o we_o speak_v of_o motive_n this_o religion_n be_v so_o naked_a that_o it_o can_v show_v you_o so_o much_o as_o one_o as_o be_v large_o demonstrate_v in_o the_o 8._o 9_o and_o 10._o ensue_a chapter_n whether_o to_o avoid_v a_o unnecessary_a repetition_n the_o reader_n be_v remit_v waive_v therefore_o at_o present_a a_o further_a proof_n hereof_o i_o argue_v thus_o against_o the_o moral_a certainty_n inducement_n protestant_n doctrine_n without_o rational_a inducement_n of_o their_o doctrine_n a_o doctrine_n broach_v without_o previous_a rational_a inducement_n who_o very_a professor_n be_v and_o be_v no_o more_o but_o fallible_a and_o which_o at_o its_o first_o rise_n or_o appearance_n in_o the_o world_n seem_v a_o mere_a paradox_n to_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o christian_n and_o yet_o thorough_o examine_v be_v hold_v still_o by_o this_o far_o great_a number_n most_o know_v and_o learned_a false_a and_o improbable_a can_v be_v a_o doctrine_n moral_o certain_a protestancy_n be_v thus_o conse_o fallible_a and_o both_o at_o its_o argument_n a_o convince_v argument_n rise_n be_v and_o be_v still_o oppose_v not_o only_o by_o the_o vast_a number_n of_o catholic_n but_o by_o all_o other_o heretic_n also_o as_o fall_v and_o improbable_a ergo_fw-la it_o be_v not_o a_o doctrine_n moral_o certain_a that_o a_o doctrine_n so_o mean_o think_v of_o and_o universal_o decry_v can_v be_v thus_o certain_a be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o very_a notion_n of_o moral_a certainty_n which_o though_o not_o absolute_o infallible_a yet_o when_o the_o ground_n and_o motive_n of_o it_o be_v perfect_o know_v it_o pass_v for_o a_o uncontradict_v truth_n and_o free_a be_v man_n from_o doubt_n destructive_a of_o such_o a_o degree_n of_o certainty_n thus_o we_o say_v moral_o rome_n and_o constantinople_n be_v now_o city_n in_o be_v all_o the_o inhabitant_n of_o china_n be_v not_o dead_a these_o and_o the_o like_a assertion_n pass_v for_o current_n moral_a truth_n without_o opposition_n without_o contradiction_n if_o therefore_o protestant_a religion_n argement_n the_o reason_n of_o the_o argement_n be_v in_o such_o a_o measure_n moral_o certain_a that_o vast_a multitude_n of_o christian_n whereof_o innumerable_a be_v pious_a conscientious_a and_o learned_a can_v never_o hold_v it_o as_o they_o do_v false_a and_o improbable_a no_o verity_n moral_o certain_a ever_o meet_v be_v a_o verity_n moral_o certain_a be_v never_o so_o long_a and_o universal_o oppose_v as_o protestancy_n be_v with_o such_o a_o strong_a contradiction_n if_o you_o say_v this_o opposition_n arise_v out_o of_o malice_n you_o speak_v not_o probable_o and_o more_o just_o draw_v on_o yourselves_o the_o like_a censure_n for_o begin_v so_o strange_a a_o religion_n if_o you_o say_v again_o these_o learned_a man_n penetrate_v not_o too_o well_o the_o depth_n of_o this_o new_a doctrine_n you_o talk_v at_o random_n their_o knowledge_n be_v not_o inferior_a to_o you_o what_o you_o see_v they_o see_v and_o perhaps_o more_o charge_v not_o therefore_o ignorance_n on_o they_o whereof_o yourselves_o be_v more_o likely_a guilty_a 4._o yet_o some_o reply_v may_v be_v here_o expect_v one_o be_v protestant_n have_v moral_a assurance_n of_o their_o bible_n because_o all_o say_v it_o be_v god_n word_n ergo_fw-la they_o have_v assurance_n religion_n moral_a assurance_n of_o the_o bible_n be_v no_o assurance_n of_o true_a religion_n of_o their_o religion_n also_o the_o antecedent_n be_v bad_a and_o the_o consequence_n worse_o arian_n pelagian_o and_o all_o heretic_n be_v as_o moral_o assure_v of_o their_o bible_n as_o any_o protestant_n have_v they_o i_o pray_v you_o as_o great_a certainty_n of_o those_o pestilent_a heresy_n prove_v as_o they_o think_v out_o of_o the_o bible_n you_o say_v no_o because_o they_o interpret_v amiss_o and_o you_o do_v not_o learned_o answer_v but_o who_o make_v your_o interpretation_n better_o than_o they_o they_o have_v that_o book_n and_o spend_v their_o private_a judgement_n on_o it_o you_o have_v no_o more_o unless_o therefore_o your_o book_n or_o judgement_n be_v better_a than_o they_o you_o be_v altogether_o as_o uncertain_a of_o your_o particular_a doctrine_n as_o they_o of_o they_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o arian_n protestant_n gloss_n no_o more_o scripture_n than_o the_o gloss_n of_o arian_n you_o have_v not_o one_o sole_a express_v text_n of_o scripture_n for_o protestancy_n you_o may_v add_v your_o own_o gloss_n and_o make_v it_o speak_v protestancy_n but_o these_o gloss_n be_v no_o more_o scripture_n nor_o more_o moral_o certain_a than_o those_o of_o arian_n pelagian_o &c._n &c._n therefore_o a_o moral_a assurance_n of_o the_o bible_n which_o be_v easy_o abuse_v give_v no_o man_n moral_a certainty_n of_o sound_a doctrine_n but_o of_o this_o subject_n hereafter_o 5._o a_o second_o objection_n as_o what_o be_v falso_n may_v be_v by_o error_n judge_v moral_o certain_a so_o often_o what_o be_v true_a may_v not_o be_v hold_v moral_o certain_a therefore_o though_o protestancy_n want_v that_o high_a moral_a certainty_n now_o require_v yet_o it_o may_v be_v true_a i_o answer_v but_o if_o it_o want_v moral_a certainty_n it_o have_v it_o not_o which_o be_v all_o we_o prove_v at_o present_a again_o though_o it_o may_v be_v true_a which_o be_v impossible_a so_o also_o it_o may_v be_v fall_v now_o protestant_n i_o hope_v do_v not_o believe_v a_o mere_a possibility_n protestancy_n sectary_n can_v not_o believe_v the_o actual_a truth_n of_o protestancy_n only_o nor_o the_o may_v be_v of_o truth_n for_o many_o thing_n be_v not_o which_o may_v be_v but_o they_o believe_v more_o the_o actual_a suppose_a truth_n of_o protestancy_n and_o this_o they_o can_v do_v without_o moral_a certainty_n of_o that_o which_o they_o hold_v actual_o true_a 6._o a_o three_o objection_n and_o it_o be_v more_o to_o the_o purpose_n our_o argument_n now_o propose_v prove_v too_o much_o and_o therefore_o prove_v nothing_o for_o its_o best_a force_n lie_v in_o this_o one_o assertion_n viz._n that_o a_o doctrine_n or_o religion_n which_o be_v
austin_n learned_o consider_n lib._n 22._o civitat_fw-la cap._n 5._o chief_o at_o those_o word_n discourse_n st._n augustine_n discourse_n si_fw-mi rem_fw-la credibilem_fw-la crediderunt_fw-la if_o man_n say_v he_o believe_v a_o thing_n credible_a he_o speak_v of_o the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a and_o the_o like_a be_v of_o any_o other_o mystery_n in_o faith_n videant_fw-la quam_fw-la sint_fw-la stolidi_fw-la se_fw-la what_o fool_n those_o be_v who_o will_v not_o believe_v si_fw-mi autem_fw-la res_fw-la incredibilis_fw-la est_fw-la if_o the_o thing_n be_v incredible_a this_o be_v most_o incredible_a yea_o and_o the_o strange_a miracle_n of_o all_o that_o that_o which_o be_v deem_v incredible_a gain_v belief_n the_o whole_a world_n over_o the_o argument_n be_v convince_a and_o prove_v as_o well_o that_o those_o after_o conversion_n wrought_v upon_o infidel_n by_o roman_a evangelical_n preacher_n be_v admirable_a and_o true_o miraculous_a million_o have_v be_v convert_v by_o they_o these_o numerous_a multitude_n therefore_o of_o believer_n be_v either_o draw_v on_o by_o foolery_n if_o so_o christian_n foolery_n can_v not_o induce_v million_o to_o contemn_v the_o world_n and_o become_v good_a christian_n they_o be_v mad_a and_o here_o lie_v the_o miracle_n say_v st._n austin_n viz._n that_o foolery_n can_v induce_v so_o many_o to_o contemn_v the_o world_n and_o become_v good_a christian_n or_o contrariwise_o they_o believe_v this_o roman_a catholic_n church_n upon_o weighty_a rational_a motive_n if_o so_o why_o be_v not_o our_o protestant_n oblige_v to_o believe_v as_o they_o do_v upon_o the_o same_o prudent_a inducement_n if_o they_o tell_v we_o the_o church_n teach_v a_o other_o doctrine_n when_o these_o great_a conversion_n be_v make_v than_o it_o teach_v now_o they_o do_v not_o only_o most_o unlearned_o suppose_v what_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v yea_o can_v be_v prove_v because_o utter_o false_a but_o also_o speak_v not_o one_o word_n to_o the_o purpose_n for_o both_o our_o progenitor_n in_o england_n and_o innumerable_a other_o be_v draw_v from_o error_n by_o popish_a preacher_n and_o even_o in_o this_o present_a age_n the_o like_a glorious_a conversion_n be_v and_o have_v be_v wrought_v by_o these_o bless_a man_n labour_n miraculous_a why_o these_o conversion_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v miraculous_a and_o they_o only_o now_o if_o you_o ask_v upon_o what_o account_v such_o conversion_n be_v to_o be_v esteem_v miraculous_a this_o one_o instance_n answer_v you_o imagine_v you_o see_v a_o little_a flock_n of_o sheep_n or_o lamb_n send_v into_o a_o desert_n full_a of_o ravenous_a wolf_n withal_o that_o these_o lamb_n though_o at_o first_o many_o be_v devour_v yet_o at_o length_n render_v the_o wolf_n so_o tame_a and_o so_o abate_v their_o rage_n that_o they_o become_v like_o lamb_n mild_a and_o submissive_a will_v you_o not_o say_v that_o such_o a_o work_n be_v prodigious_a and_o above_o the_o force_n of_o nature_n this_o be_v our_o very_a case_n behold_v say_v our_o saviour_n luc._n 10._o i_o send_v you_o as_o lamb_n among_o wolf_n and_o these_o you_o must_v subdue_v it_o be_v do_v behold_v say_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n i_o send_v my_o preacher_n still_o abroad_o to_o the_o remote_a part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o have_v change_v wolf_n into_o lamb_n that_o be_v i_o have_v make_v infidel_n once_o rebellious_a to_o christ_n subject_a to_o his_o law_n the_o vicious_a i_o have_v make_v virtuous_a and_o bring_v thousand_o of_o they_o to_o no_o other_o religion_n but_o popery_n this_o work_n with_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n grace_n be_v do_v et_fw-la est_fw-la mirabile_fw-la in_o oculis_fw-la nostris_fw-la and_o it_o be_v admirable_a have_v our_o protestant_n make_v such_o change_n or_o draw_v so_o many_o infidel_n to_o their_o new_a faith_n they_o will_v have_v talk_v of_o wonder_n but_o because_o catholic_n conversion_n why_o protestant_n flight_n miracle_n and_o conversion_n gain_v they_o to_o the_o old_a religion_n all_o be_v nothing_o so_o it_o be_v they_o have_v no_o miracle_n and_o therefore_o slight_v they_o no_o conversion_n and_o thersore_n undervalue_v they_o a_o strange_a proceed_n those_o very_a wonder_n which_o induce_v the_o world_n to_o become_v christian_a because_o they_o yet_o eminent_o appear_v in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n must_v lie_v under_o contempt_n those_o ancient_a proof_n of_o christianity_n be_v now_o proofle_n those_o primitive_a evidence_n of_o miracle_n conversion_n &c._n &c._n the_o church_n be_v in_o fault_n for_o show_v they_o can_v be_v see_v by_o these_o late_a man_n who_o yet_o have_v eye_n to_o discern_v the_o book_n of_o scripture_n by_o its_o own_o light_n and_o majesty_n and_o by_o the_o way_n mark_v the_o paradox_n the_o exterior_a word_n of_o a_o bible_n for_o of_o these_o sectary_n a_o paradox_n of_o sectary_n we_o only_o speak_v be_v evidence_n enough_o for_o scripture_n yet_o those_o glorious_a work_n now_o mention_v be_v forsooth_o no_o evidence_n of_o this_o church_n the_o very_a majesty_n of_o the_o style_n ascertain_n these_o man_n that_o god_n speak_v by_o that_o sacred_a book_n yet_o all_o the_o perceptible_a miraculous_a majesty_n which_o the_o church_n show_v we_o can_v persuade_v they_o that_o he_o speak_v by_o this_o visible_a audible_a and_o most_o know_a oracle_n of_o truth_n a_o bible_n well_o know_v its_o true_a upon_o other_o ground_n to_o be_v most_o sacred_a discover_v its_o divinity_n and_o immediate_o prove_v who_o write_v it_o yet_o a_o church_n so_o glorious_o mark_v say_v nothing_o who_o direct_v it_o be_v this_o reason_n or_o religion_n think_v you_o can_v reason_n produce_v this_o unreasonable_a thought_n in_o any_o that_o the_o wise_a providence_n of_o god_n have_v permit_v so_o eminent_a so_o numerous_a so_o pious_a so_o learned_a and_o so_o long_o stand_v a_o multitude_n of_o christian_n as_o catholic_n have_v be_v and_o yet_o be_v to_o be_v cheat_v into_o error_n even_o whilst_o they_o evidence_n their_o faith_n by_o such_o proof_n and_o motive_n as_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n manifest_v christian_n religion_n what_o shall_v we_o think_v that_o miracle_n conversion_n of_o soul_n cast_v out_o of_o devil_n sanctity_n of_o life_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v once_o convince_a argument_n of_o christianity_n be_v now_o show_v to_o countenance_v a_o falsity_n to_o judge_v so_o be_v the_o most_o improbable_a improbable_o sectary_n judge_v improbable_o thought_n that_o ever_o enter_v a_o christian_n hart_n yea_o and_o impossible_a unless_o we_o hold_v that_o god_n can_v leave_v of_o to_o be_v goodness_n itself_o or_o make_v falsehood_n more_o apparent_o evident_a than_o truth_n the_o whole_a world_n over_o which_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v a_o gross_a error_n 8._o other_o argument_n we_o have_v for_o a_o great_a certainty_n then_o moral_a previous_o evidence_v the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n before_o we_o believe_v whereof_o more_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n it_o be_v now_o sufficient_a to_o say_v that_o our_o protestant_n grant_v thus_o much_o first_o because_o religion_n protestant_n grant_v evidence_n of_o credibility_n to_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n the_o more_o learned_a of_o they_o allow_v salvation_n to_o those_o who_o live_v and_o die_v in_o this_o faith_n but_o most_o sure_a it_o be_v that_o save_v faith_n have_v at_o least_o moral_a evidence_n and_o certainty_n for_o it_o 2._o whilst_o they_o talk_v of_o no_o man_n know_v what_o evidence_n manifest_v christian_n religion_n in_o general_n they_o only_o plead_v for_o our_o catholic_n faith_n and_o speak_v not_o a_o word_n in_o behalf_n of_o protestancy_n the_o reason_n be_v if_o both_o these_o religion_n be_v not_o true_a that_o motive_n evidence_v true_a religion_n inseparable_o follow_v that_o but_o the_o one_o only_o the_o motive_n which_o evidence_n true_a religion_n inseparable_o follow_v that_o and_o can_v belong_v as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v to_o the_o other_o which_o be_v false_a therefore_o they_o or_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o show_v they_o but_o protestancy_n can_v show_v so_o much_o as_o one_o prudent_a motive_n for_o itself_o as_o will_v most_o clear_o appear_v in_o the_o 10._o chapter_n ergo_fw-la what_o evidence_n there_o be_v for_o true_a christian_a faith_n catholic_n have_v it_o or_o there_o be_v none_o in_o the_o world_n for_o any_o religion_n chap._n ix_o a_o short_a digression_n concern_v the_o shuffle_n of_o protestant_n in_o this_o matter_n 1._o here_o i_o can_v but_o reflect_v on_o the_o slight_a endeavour_n of_o some_o late_a sectary_n who_o offer_v at_o endeavour_n mr._n stillingfleet_v weak_a endeavour_n much_o in_o a_o empty_a title_n call_v the_o protestant_n way_n of_o resolve_v faith_n yet_o in_o prosecute_a the_o matter_n they_o handle_v it_o so_o unlucky_o that_o no_o man_n here_o be_v a_o word_n more_o speak_v in_o behalf_n of_o protestanism_n then_o of_o arianism_n or_o of_o what_o ever_o other_o haeresy_n motive_n and_o reason_n they_o give_v none_o for_o protestant_a
doctrine_n as_o protestancy_n as_o they_o ought_v to_o have_v do_v in_o the_o first_o place_n after_o so_o glorious_a a_o title_n 2._o to_o prove_v what_o be_v say_v have_v patience_n to_o hear_v some_o few_o parergon_n there_o be_v say_z they_o in_o the_o question_n of_o resolve_v faith_n these_o three_o question_n to_o be_v resolve_v first_o why_o i_o believe_v those_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a which_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o book_n call_v scripture_n 2._o why_o i_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o that_o book_n to_o be_v divine_a 3._o why_o i_o believe_v the_o book_n themselves_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n mark_v here_o a_o shuffle_n and_o remember_v once_o more_o the_o title_n the_o protestant_n way_n of_o resolve_v faith_n be_v it_o so_o be_v it_o the_o protestant_n way_n yes_o sure_o then_o the_o question_n here_o propose_v and_o the_o answer_v return_v be_v most_o pertinent_a to_o help_v on_o protestant_n in_o their_o resolve_v faith_n that_o be_v to_o make_v protestancy_n explicate_v these_o author_n wave_n what_o they_o shall_v explicate_v evident_o credible_a by_o clear_a and_o rational_a motive_n you_o will_v say_v they_o be_v so_o and_o i_o say_v they_o be_v no_o more_o to_o that_o purpose_n of_o protestant_n resolve_v faith_n or_o give_v of_o prudent_a motive_n for_o protestancy_n then_o if_o such_o a_o religion_n have_v never_o be_v in_o the_o world_n i_o prove_v my_o assertion_n the_o arian_n will_v say_v i_o believe_v protestant_n arian_n believe_v scripture_n as_o much_o as_o protestant_n those_o thing_n to_o be_v true_a which_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n i_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n in_o that_o book_n to_o be_v divine_a i_o believe_v the_o book_n themselves_o to_o be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n and_o this_o i_o do_v upon_o as_o good_a ground_n as_o you_o protestant_n if_o not_o on_o better_a for_o if_o you_o admit_v of_o these_o verity_n upon_o the_o great_a evidence_n which_o thing_n of_o that_o nature_n be_v capable_a of_o so_o do_v i_o too_o but_o say_v i_o beseech_v you_o what_o more_o advantage_n have_v you_o upon_o this_o concession_n for_o your_o particular_a religion_n than_o i_o have_v for_o i_o for_o let_v these_o book_n be_v true_a let_v they_o contain_v divine_a doctrine_n let_v we_o believe_v the_o revelation_n in_o they_o to_o be_v sacred_a yet_o both_o you_o and_o i_o be_v to_o seek_v which_o of_o we_o have_v the_o better_a religion_n and_o this_o can_v be_v decide_v by_o owe_v three_o truth_n whereof_o no_o christian_n ever_o doubt_v why_o therefore_o do_v you_o when_o it_o be_v your_o particular_a task_n to_o resolve_v protestant_n faith_n never_o meddle_v with_o the_o question_n but_o be_v time_n in_o prove_v that_o which_o when_o it_o be_v prove_v help_n be_v you_o no_o more_o than_o all_o other_o christian_n who_o be_v contrary_a to_o you_o in_o belief_n will_v you_o see_v this_o clear_o 3._o i_o free_o grant_v that_o those_o thing_n in_o scripture_n be_v true_a they_o be_v divine_a the_o book_n themselves_o be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n but_o next_o ask_v what_o be_v this_o to_o protestant_a religion_n or_o how_o be_v the_o resolution_n of_o protestant_n faith_n advance_v upon_o the_o own_n these_o verity_n nothing_o at_o all_o and_o the_o reason_n be_v for_o rhough_o all_o christian_n acknowledge_v in_o general_a scripture_n to_o be_v most_o divine_a yet_o they_o be_v at_o endless_a dispute_n concern_v the_o doctrine_n of_o it_o now_o no_o man_n i_o hope_v faith_n to_o have_v scripture_n in_o our_o hand_n give_v no_o assurance_n of_o true_a faith_n will_v say_v because_o he_o have_v this_o book_n in_o his_o hand_n or_o own_v it_o as_o god_n word_n that_o therefore_o he_o right_o believe_v the_o particular_a necessary_a doctrine_n in_o it_o for_o be_v this_o true_a know_a haeretik_n will_v be_v as_o sound_v in_o faith_n as_o any_o to_o conclude_v then_o the_o roman_a catholic_n inquire_v not_o here_o after_o any_o general_a proof_n of_o scripture_n he_o prove_v that_o before_o protestant_n be_v bear_v but_o he_o urge_v for_o motive_n protestant_n what_o catholic_n require_v of_o protestant_n and_o rational_a inducement_n whereby_o protestancy_n as_o protestancy_n be_v evidence_v to_o have_v any_o ressemblance_n with_o the_o primitive_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o bless_a apostle_n know_a mark_n and_o cognisance_n of_o truth_n must_v manifest_v this_o particular_a doctrine_n and_o not_o a_o general_a talk_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o scripture_n which_o every_o arian_n and_o haeretick_n will_v own_v be_v there_o no_o such_o thing_n as_o a_o protestant_n in_o be_v 4._o they_o hold_v on_o in_o this_o proofle_n strain_v and_o tell_v we_o how_o moral_a certainty_n be_v assurance_n enough_o that_o christian_a religion_n be_v infallible_o true_a be_v it_o so_o it_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o we_o inquire_v not_o in_o this_o place_n after_o the_o moral_a evidence_n of_o christian_a religion_n in_o general_n which_o as_o it_o profess_v by_o condemn_a heretic_n unevidence_v protestancy_n unevidence_v have_v none_o but_o we_o ask_v for_o the_o moral_a certainty_n whereby_o protestancy_n be_v evidence_v this_o be_v not_o so_o much_o as_o speak_v of_o though_o the_o title_n of_o resolve_v protestant_n faith_n require_v a_o direct_a answer_n to_o this_o difficulty_n they_o say_v again_o there_o can_v be_v no_o great_a than_o moral_a certainty_n for_o the_o main_a foundation_n of_o all_o religion_n and_o the_o chief_a be_v the_o existency_n and_o be_v of_o god_n the_o assertion_n be_v falss_o as_o i_o can_v demonstrate_v be_v it_o now_o pertinent_a to_o handle_v that_o question_n but_o let_v it_o pass_v give_v we_o i_o beseech_v you_o as_o much_o moral_a certainty_n of_o protestant_a religion_n as_o all_o acknowledge_v for_o the_o existency_n of_o a_o deity_n and_o we_o be_v satisfy_v but_o of_o this_o we_o hear_v not_o a_o word_n we_o have_v talk_v enough_o of_o the_o moral_a certainty_n of_o christian_a difficulty_n they_o answer_v not_o to_o the_o difficulty_n religion_n which_o answer_v not_o to_o the_o title_n of_o resolve_v protestant_n faith_n 5._o they_o say_v three_o suppose_v god_n give_v the_o must_v infallible_a evidence_n of_o any_o religion_n some_o who_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o religion_n can_v have_v no_o more_o than_o moral_a certainty_n of_o it_o transeat_fw-la totum_fw-la at_o present_a what_o make_v it_o for_o protestancy_n we_o here_o ask_v why_o protestant_n believe_v as_o they_o do_v why_o they_o adhere_v to_o their_o new_a faith_n and_o prefer_v that_o before_o all_o other_o religion_n rational_a motive_n can_v be_v produce_v or_o not_o we_o hitherto_o hear_v of_o none_o and_o therefore_o suspect_v yea_o know_v very_o well_o there_o be_v none_o for_o it_o 6._o they_o say_v fourthly_a moral_a certainty_n yield_v we_o sufficient_a general_n protestant_n altogether_o in_o general_n assurance_n that_o christian_a religion_n be_v infallible_o true_a what_o religion_n be_v infallible_o true_a upon_o moral_a certainty_n be_v it_o arianism_n or_o pelagianism_n no._n be_v it_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n no._n be_v it_o protestancy_n yes_o then_o produce_v rational_a motive_n which_o may_v ground_v a_o moral_a certainty_n more_o of_o this_o religion_n then_o of_o any_o other_o sect_n and_o we_o acquiesce_v but_o this_o you_o can_v do_v 7._o they_o say_v five_o where_o there_o be_v evident_a credibility_n in_o religion_n and_o prove_v nothing_o for_o their_o religion_n the_o matter_n propound_v there_o do_v arise_v upon_o man_n a_o obligation_n to_o believe_v very_o good_a to_o believe_v what_o give_v we_o this_o evident_a credibility_n of_o protestancy_n and_o something_o be_v say_v to_o the_o purpose_n hereof_o yet_o we_o have_v no_o news_n nor_o be_v like_a to_o have_v and_o consequent_o protestant_n can_v be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v as_o they_o do_v after_o some_o other_o parergons_n 8._o they_o say_v sixthly_a the_o last_o resolution_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o into_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o instrument_n of_o conveyance_n but_o into_o the_o infallibility_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v thereby_o convey_v to_o we_o shall_v we_o eternal_o have_v these_o empty_a word_n and_o no_o substance_n you_o talk_v here_o of_o a_o infallibility_n of_o doctrine_n and_o we_o will_v have_v the_o riddle_n expound_v be_v it_o the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n or_o you_o or_o arianism_n what_o for_o god_n sake_n avail_n it_o to_o hear_v a_o noise_n of_o infallible_a doctrine_n and_o not_o to_o know_v who_o right_o profess_v it_o your_o doctrine_n therefore_o of_o protestancy_n be_v to_o be_v evidence_v this_o be_v all_o we_o look_v for_o 9_o they_o say_v seventh_o if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v true_a and_o divine_a than_o all_o the_o promise_v make_v be_v accomplish_v now_o that_o be_v one_o of_o the_o great_a that_o his_o spirit_n shall_v lead_v his_o apostle_n into_o all_o truth_n very_o
true_a but_o what_o be_v this_o for_o protestant_a doctrine_n we_o ask_v still_o by_o what_o sign_n and_o mark_n of_o truth_n do_v these_o new_a man_n prove_v their_o particular_a faith_n to_o be_v apostolical_a here_o only_o lie_v the_o difficulty_n never_o touch_v on_o by_o they_o admit_v therefore_o at_o present_a that_o they_o have_v in_o their_o hand_n the_o infallible_a record_n of_o god_n word_n they_o be_v far_o of_o yet_o from_o prove_v their_o particular_a doctrine_n of_o protestancy_n to_o be_v scripture_n or_o the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n this_o be_v the_o sole_a controvert_v question_n between_o we_o 10._o they_o final_o end_v thus_o much_o may_v suffice_v in_o general_a concern_v the_o protestant_a way_n of_o resolve_v faith_n very_o little_a it_o seem_v serve_v their_o turn_n who_o hitherto_o never_o general_n loct_v labour_n to_o talk_v of_o christian_a religion_n in_o general_n meddle_v with_o that_o resolution_n but_o have_v lose_v their_o labour_n by_o a_o talk_n in_o general_n of_o christian_a religion_n which_o no_o more_o concern_v protestancy_n than_o it_o do_v the_o worst_a of_o heretic_n and_o after_o this_o manner_n they_o hold_v on_o in_o another_o chapter_n entitle_v the_o sense_n of_o father_n in_o this_o controversy_n where_o justin_n martyr_n irenaeus_n and_o clemens_n purpose_n father_n cite_v to_o no_o purpose_n of_o alexandria_n be_v cite_v but_o to_o what_o purpose_n god_n only_o know_v be_v they_o quote_v to_o evidence_n any_o thing_n like_o protestancy_n no._n the_o whole-discours_n of_o these_o learned_a father_n look_n another_o way_n and_o never_o medles_a with_o this_o novelty_n read_v they_o as_o they_o be_v either_o in_o these_o author_n with_o all_o the_o advantage_n of_o their_o gloss_n on_o they_o or_o rather_o in_o the_o original_n as_o i_o have_v do_v exact_o you_o will_v find_v they_o so_o great_a stranger_n to_o this_o new_a haeresy_n that_o they_o never_o think_v of_o it_o to_o transcribe_v again_o their_o whole_a discourse_n will_v prove_v tedious_a read_v justins_n word_n in_o these_o author_n part._n 1._o chap._n 9_o page_n 264._o and_o add_v to_o they_o the_o reflection_n make_v page_n 265._o what_o part_n say_v they_o be_v there_o now_o of_o our_o resolution_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o here_o in_o that_o be_v in_o justins_n testimony_n assert_v i_o answer_v nothing_o at_o all_o as_o will_v appear_v by_o your_o own_o question_n and_o answer_v whole_o irrelative_a to_o protestancy_n thus_o than_o you_o go_v on_o if_o you_o ask_v why_o you_o believe_v there_o be_v such_o man_n in_o the_o protestant_n justin_n make_v nothing_o for_o protestant_n world_n as_o these_o prophet_n whereof_o justin_n speak_v answer_n the_o continuance_n of_o their_o book_n and_o common_a fame_n sufficient_o attest_v it_o be_v be_v so_o what_o be_v this_o to_o protestancy_n can_v any_o one_o probable_o infer_v because_o he_o believe_v there_o be_v such_o man_n in_o the_o world_n as_o prophet_n apostles_n or_o evangelist_n therefore_o he_o have_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o inference_n weak_a inference_n these_o prophet_n no._n for_o both_o arian_n and_o pelagian_o yield_v assent_v to_o that_o general_a truth_n and_o so_o do_v catholic_n also_o be_v all_o these_o right_n in_o faith_n upon_o that_o account_n precise_o toy_n no_o more_o than_o be_v protestant_n 3._o if_o you_o ask_v say_v you_o why_o you_o believe_v they_o to_o be_v true_a prophet_n answ_n the_o excellency_n of_o their_o doctrine_n join_v with_o the_o fulfil_n of_o prophecy_n and_o work_a miracle_n abundant_o prove_v it_o prove_v what_o for_o god_n sake_n no_o more_o but_o this_o that_o those_o prophet_n teach_v excellent_a doctrine_n and_o wrought_v miracle_n do_v it_o therefore_o follow_v that_o protestant_n arian_n and_o other_o heretic_n teach_v such_o doctrine_n or_o work_v miracle_n no._n herein_o lie_v the_o difficulty_n not_o so_o much_o as_o glance_v at_o or_o touch_v on_o and_o thus_o alex._n nor_o clemens_n alex._n they_o run_v on_o to_o no_o purpose_n for_o many_o page_n with_o testimony_n draw_v out_o of_o irenaeus_n and_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n which_o no_o more_o relate_v to_o protestancy_n then_o those_o first_o word_n of_o genesis_n do_v in_o the_o beginning_n god_n create_v heaven_n and_o earth_n nay_o more_o clemens_n cite_v they_o but_o confute_v they_o by_o these_o author_n page_n 273._o express_o confute_v our_o sectary_n whilst_o he_o require_v two_o thing_n necessary_a to_o attain_v to_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o true_a faith_n in_o christ_n ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d and_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d the_o enquiry_n and_o discovery_n of_o it_o the_o enquiry_n be_v a_o impulse_n of_o the_o mind_n say_v these_o man_n for_o find_v truth_n out_o by_o sign_n which_o be_v proper_a to_o it_o discovery_n be_v the_o end_n and_o rest_v of_o this_o enquiry_n which_o lie_v in_o the_o comprehension_n of_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v proper_o knowledge_n a_o most_o true_a and_o admirable_a expression_n clemens_n according_a to_o these_o author_n proce_v thus_o now_o the_o sign_n by_o which_o truth_n be_v discover_v be_v either_o precedent_n concomitant_a or_o subsequent_a the_o precedent_a sign_n whereby_o we_o discover_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v the_o prophecy_n declare_v his_o come_n the_o concomitant_a be_v the_o testimony_n concern_v his_o birth_n the_o subsequent_a sign_n be_v those_o miracle_n which_o be_v publish_v and_o manifest_o show_v to_o the_o world_n after_o his_o ascension_n etc._n etc._n most_o true_a and_o divine_a doctrine_n which_o be_v entire_o for_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n and_o against_o protestant_n why_o we_o inquire_v after_o the_o precedent_a sign_n whereby_o their_o new_a religion_n be_v discover_v we_o ask_v for_o subsequent_a sign_n which_o be_v public_o know_v to_o the_o world_n soon_o after_o the_o broach_n of_o their_o new_a faith_n and_o yet_o can_v hear_v of_o any_o show_v by_o these_o new_a man_n in_o confirmation_n of_o their_o faith_n final_o we_o urge_v for_o miracle_n and_o other_o prudential_n motive_n evidencing_a protestant_a religion_n in_o the_o ensue_a chapter_n but_o find_v none_o read_v it_o and_o give_v a_o impartial_a judgement_n chap._n x._o protestant_n have_v no_o rational_a motive_n whereby_o their_o new_a faith_n be_v evidence_v to_o be_v so_o much_o as_o probable_a 1._o to_o prove_v the_o assertion_n we_o here_o friendly_a demand_n whether_o when_o scripture_n father_n and_o the_o best_a authority_n of_o former_a age_n assert_v that_o the_o mark_n and_o cognisance_n of_o god_n reveal_v truth_n be_v as_o follow_v antiquity_n a_o lawful_a mission_n unity_n efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n universality_n miracle_n succession_n of_o bishop_n sanctity_n yes_o and_o the_o very_a name_n of_o catholic_a etc._n etc._n my_o demand_n i_o say_v be_v whether_o our_o new_a man_n will_v own_v these_o old_a sign_n as_o lawful_a and_o approve_a manifestation_n of_o truth_n or_o disow_v they_o if_o this_o late_a they_o be_v compel_v to_o show_v they_o unfit_a or_o forceles_a argument_n for_o the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n and_o consequent_o be_v oblige_v to_o produce_v other_o more_o clear_a and_o persuasive_a for_o their_o suppose_a true_a religion_n which_o be_v impossible_a on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o they_o shall_v please_v to_o own_v they_o as_o lawful_a cognisance_n of_o truth_n my_o task_n be_v to_o prove_v that_o they_o have_v neither_o the_o complexum_fw-la of_o all_o these_o motive_n together_o nor_o so_o much_o as_o one_o of_o they_o in_o particular_a for_o protestancy_n 2._o antiquity_n grant_v to_o popery_n for_o at_o least_o a_o antiquity_n protestant_n want_v antiquity_n thousand_o year_n and_o upward_a protestant_n have_v not_o those_o two_o brethren_n of_o iniquity_n luther_n and_o calvin_n first_o bring_v this_o religion_n forth_o as_o be_v evident_a by_o all_o know_a history_n before_o their_o day_n no_o man_n can_v show_v i_o so_o much_o as_o one_o town_n village_n or_o household_n of_o protestant_n 3._o lawful_a mission_n most_o just_o and_o without_o dispute_v want_v a_o lawful_a mission_n be_v want_v challenge_v by_o catholic_n doctor_n these_o two_o wretched_a man_n have_v not_o no_o more_o have_v their_o follower_n inquire_v after_o it_o you_o will_v find_v they_o all_o unsent_a preacher_n contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n rom._n 10_o how_o shall_v they_o preach_v unless_o they_o be_v send_v they_o never_o have_v licence_n to_o talk_v as_o they_o do_v but_o by_o their_o own_o will_n and_o unknown_a spirit_n which_o as_o well_o authorize_v james_n nayler_n to_o be_v christ_n as_o they_o to_o be_v lawful_a and_o apostolical_a preacher_n say_v i_o beseech_v you_o when_o the_o bless_a apostle_n first_o teach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o by_o their_o preach_v turn_v idolatry_n out_o of_o the_o world_n do_v they_o only_a word_n it_o mission_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v send_v and_o show_v their_o mission_n
or_o without_o commission_n talk_v of_o a_o new_a gospel_n no._n as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o say_v our_o saviour_n joan._n 20._o so_o i_o send_v you_o and_o they_o evidence_v their_o call_v to_o the_o great_a work_n they_o have_v in_o hand_n by_o clear_a and_o undoubted_a miracle_n which_o prove_v forcible_a persuasive_a argument_n and_o strong_o wrought_v upon_o the_o most_o obdurate_a heart_n yer_z fifteen_o hundred_o year_n after_o our_o novellist_n appear_v broach_v a_o new_a gospel_n aim_n at_o no_o les_fw-fr a_o matter_n then_o to_o pull_v down_o the_o idolatrous_a babel_n of_o popery_n so_o they_o style_v our_o ancient_a church_n and_o we_o must_v take_v their_o word_n for_o all_o they_o say_v though_o they_o neither_o show_v letter-missive_n or_o patent_n to_o warrant_v their_o doctrine_n no_o nor_o one_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v it_o so_o destitute_a they_o be_v both_o of_o ordinary_a and_o extraordinary_a mission_n some_o will_v say_v though_o they_o preach_v without_o mission_n they_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n and_o the_o ancient_a miracle_n without_o need_n of_o new_a one_o be_v wrought_v to_o confirm_v scripture-doctrin_n which_o be_v now_o pure_o proof_n sectary_n word_n it_o without_o proof_n teach_v in_o the_o reform_a church_n and_o not_o in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n thus_o most_o pitiful_o mr._n poole_n pag._n 195._o where_o you_o se_fw-mi first_o a_o unlearned_a beg_v the_o question_n 2._o every_o arian_n licence_v to_o assert_v for_o himself_o what_o mr._n poole_n too_o simple_o assume_v here_o without_o proof_n 3._o this_o be_v most_o falss_o doctrine_n for_o no_o man_n yet_o ever_o lawful_o preach_v true_a christian_a doctrine_n no_o not_o christ_n himself_o without_o a_o mission_n sicut_fw-la misit_fw-la i_o pater_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o when_o he_o bless_a lord_n first_o establish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christianity_n contrary_a both_o to_o jew_n and_o infidel_n he_o do_v it_o not_o by_o word_n only_o without_o commission_n nor_o prove_v the_o verity_n of_o his_o gospel_n by_o the_o ancient_n and_o long_a since_o pase_v miracle_n wrought_v among_o the_o jew_n as_o these_o man_n do_v their_o doctrine_n by_o the_o primitive_a miracle_n of_o christianity_n which_o belong_v not_o to_o they_o but_o he_o evidence_v it_o and_o confirm_v it_o by_o new_a manifest_a gospel_n protestant_n oblige_v to_o show_n undoubted_a mark_n and_o sign_n when_o they_o preach_v a_o new_a gospel_n miracle_n visible_a sign_n and_o wonder_n and_o thus_o our_o protestant_n shall_v have_v do_v when_o they_o first_o publish_v their_o new_a unheard_a of_o learning_n and_o by_o it_o attempt_v to_o throw_v down_o that_o long_a stand_a church_n of_o popery_n undoubted_a miracle_n unquestioned_a sign_n of_o truth_n shall_v as_o we_o read_v of_o the_o primitive_a apostle_n mark_v 16._o 20._o have_v follow_v they_o also_o but_o in_o lieu_n of_o these_o what_o have_v you_o unwarrant_v talk_n mere_a proofle_n word_n of_o uncommission_v man_n miraculous_a word_n indeed_o if_o able_a to_o subvert_v a_o ancient_a church_n to_o pull_v down_o popery_n and_o build_v up_o protestancy_n 4._o unity_n in_o doctrine_n most_o know_a and_o remarkable_a doctrine_n no_o unity_n of_o doctrine_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n they_o have_v none_o witness_n those_o innumerable_a sect_n which_o now_o swarm_v among_o they_o and_o this_o new_a faith_n have_v produce_v of_o arminian_o zwinglian_o brownist_n independent_o etc._n etc._n and_o now_o our_o late_a quaker_n be_v sprout_v out_o of_o it_o the_o last_o spring_n perhaps_o though_o no_o body_n know_v of_o this_o reform_a gospel_n i_o need_v not_o to_o say_v much_o on_o this_o point_n a_o serious_a thought_n cast_v upon_o the_o different_a procedure_n of_o a_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n will_v lay_v division_n the_o blessing_n of_o unity_n and_o curse_v of_o division_n open_a the_o great_a blessing_n of_o unity_n in_o the_o one_o and_o the_o contrary_a curse_n of_o division_n in_o the_o other_o observe_v well_o catholic_n you_o shall_v find_v like_o right_a noble_a man_n stand_v upon_o a_o long_a continue_a pedigree_n on_o their_o ancient_a tradition_n on_o their_o never_o interrupt_a succession_n of_o pope_n of_o prince_n of_o bishop_n of_o people_n unite_v in_o one_o belief_n you_o look_v on_o protestant_n like_o new_a upstart_n unfortunate_o divide_v in_o their_o very_a first_o progenitor_n luther_n and_o calvin_n that_o beget_v they_o in_o discord_n and_o this_o spirit_n of_o division_n as_o a_o ghost_n do_v and_o will_v haunt_v they_o to_o the_o world_n end_n if_o they_o last_v so_o long_o catholic_n you_o will_v find_v like_o deep_a and_o silent_a water_n run_v together_o in_o one_o channel_n concentre_v in_o one_o principle_n settle_v on_o one_o rock_n the_o church_n infallibility_n you_o see_v protestant_n not_o only_o destroy_v both_o rock_n and_o centre_n but_o also_o so_o giddy_o unconstant_a unconstant_n sectary_n unconstant_n to_o their_o own_o tenant_n that_o you_o have_v they_o at_o a_o stand_v not_o where_o and_o this_o often_o shift_a have_v undo_v they_o once_o the_o 39_o article_n be_v point_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n now_o they_o be_v no_o more_o so_o once_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n now_o with_o many_o protestant_n he_o be_v the_o first_o patriarch_n once_o he_o be_v a_o horn_a beast_n now_o more_o than_o one_o of_o our_o new_a man_n take_v of_o his_o horn_n and_o make_v he_o rational_a once_o rome_n be_v the_o whore_n of_o babylon_n now_o with_o most_o it_o be_v pure_a yes_o and_o orthodox_n in_o fundamental_o once_o our_o bishop_n be_v all_o idolater_n unlawful_a pastor_n now_o they_o be_v so_o legitimate_a that_o our_o new_a man_n must_v either_o derive_v their_o ordination_n from_o they_o or_o have_v none_o at_o all_o and_o thus_o unsteedy_o they_o dance_v up_o and_o down_o say_v and_o unsay_v now_o yea_o now_o no_o as_o the_o fancy_n take_v they_o and_o they_o must_v do_v so_o until_o they_o have_v a_o firm_a ground_n of_o unity_n to_o set_v foot_v on_o 5._o mr_n pool_n page_n 201._o to_o impugn_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o impertinent_a mr._n pool_n instance_n of_o pagan_n and_o devil_n against_o unity_n be_v impertinent_a church_n tell_v we_o we_o that_o both_o pagan_n and_o devil_n have_v it_o yet_o in_o the_o very_a next_o page_n complain_v much_o of_o the_o want_n of_o unity_n in_o his_o protestant_a brethren_n methinks_v unreasonable_o enough_o for_o if_o unity_n be_v so_o proper_a to_o pagan_n and_o devil_n the_o more_o protestant_n be_v divide_v the_o better_a it_o be_v for_o they_o because_o further_o of_o from_o the_o spirit_n of_o these_o agree_a monster_n but_o say_v mr._n poole_n unity_n without_o verity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v regard_v i_o answer_v every_o one_o know_v so_o much_o but_o what_o be_v that_o to_o our_o present_a purpose_n where_o we_o sole_o treat_v of_o unity_n and_o assert_v it_o with_o the_o nicene_n father_n to_o be_v a_o grace_n or_o dowry_n of_o the_o church_n a_o badge_n or_o cognisance_n of_o truth_n and_o this_o our_o protestant_n must_v acknowledge_v who_o i_o hope_v will_v grant_v some_o large_a christian_a society_n agree_v at_o least_o in_o fundamental_o church_n protestant_n hold_v some_o unity_n laudable_a in_o the_o church_n which_o they_o call_v the_o catholic_n church_n i_o ask_v therefore_o whether_o such_o a_o unity_n extend_v to_o all_o christian_n be_v not_o laudable_a and_o a_o good_a mark_n of_o truth_n if_o so_o why_o be_v pagan_n and_o devil_n introduce_v to_o slight_v the_o church_n unity_n if_o not_o we_o have_v now_o not_o one_o laudable_a unite_a catholic_n church_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n what_o follow_v in_o mr._n pool_n 203._o page_n objection_n mr._n pole_n simple_a objection_n concern_v division_n between_o dominican_n and_o jesuit_n &c_n &c_n be_v so_o profound_o simple_a that_o no_o man_n patience_n can_v so_o much_o as_o hear_v it_o every_o puny_a know_v these_o difference_n be_v not_o in_o faith_n but_o opinion_n only_o i_o pass_v by_o such_o trifle_n 6._o efficacy_n in_o doctrine_n a_o undeniable_a mark_n of_o doctrine_n no_o efficacy_n in_o doctrine_n the_o catholic_n church_n our_o protestant_n have_v not_o observe_v my_o proof_n it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o these_o man_n come_v but_o late_o into_o the_o vineyard_n of_o the_o church_n sure_a after_o the_o eleven_o hour_n and_o find_v it_o as_o they_o say_v in_o a_o sad_a condition_n overgrow_v with_o weed_n of_o popish_a error_n pester_v with_o arian_n and_o grecian_a heretic_n oppose_v by_o heathen_n and_o infidel_n do_v what_o our_o new_a zealot_n shall_v have_v do_v all_o these_o need_v the_o light_n of_o this_o new_a gospel_n to_o shine_v upon_o they_o and_o who_o will_v not_o have_v expect_v before_o this_o day_n great_a conversion_n wrought_v among_o so_o many_o stray_a soul_n by_o these_o new_a zelots_n popery_n ere_o now_o shall_v have_v be_v dissipate_v arian_n reclaim_v
thousand_o of_o infidel_n convert_v to_o christ_n david_n courage_n long_o ago_o shall_v have_v defeat_v some_o one_o or_o other_o of_o these_o conversion_n sectary_n ill_a success_n in_o conversion_n massy_a body_n chief_o that_o of_o popery_n but_o the_o ill_a success_n they_o have_v have_v in_o such_o conversion_n prove_v they_o if_o not_o downright_a coward_n at_o least_o unlucky_a combatant_n popery_n hold_v still_o its_o posture_n maugre_o their_o weak_a attempt_n against_o it_o and_o i_o never_o year_n what_o one_o bless_a man_n do_v in_o the_o space_n of_o eleven_o year_n yet_o hear_v of_o good_a do_v upon_o arian_n or_o other_o ancient_a heretic_n by_o these_o man_n labour_n now_o touch_v the_o conversion_n of_o infidel_n stranger_n to_o christ_n the_o assertion_n of_o thomas_n bosius_n tom._n 1._o de_fw-fr signis_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la lib._n 6._o cap._n 3._o signo_fw-la 20._o be_v remarkable_a viz._n that_o one_o bless_a man_n of_o our_o age_n st._n francis_n xaverius_n reduce_v more_o to_o the_o catholic_n faith_n in_o the_o space_n of_o eleven_o year_n only_o then_o all_o the_o protestant_n in_o the_o world_n add_v to_o they_o what_o other_o sectary_n soever_o have_v gain_v of_o infidel_n to_o their_o heresy_n since_o the_o begin_n of_o christianity_n my_o god_n have_v the_o bless_a apostle_n be_v as_o slow_a in_o root_a out_n idolaty_n as_o our_o late_a master_n yet_o be_v lazy_a about_o so_o noble_a a_o work_n the_o dumb_a idol_n of_o the_o gentile_n will_v have_v preach_v against_o they_o and_o still_o stand_v unshaken_a but_o god_n give_v these_o first_o powerful_a preacher_n and_o their_o catholic_n follower_n a_o vigorous_a spirit_n the_o efficacy_n of_o doctrine_n a_o illustrious_a character_n or_o mark_n of_o truth_n which_o to_o this_o day_n the_o church_n wear_v and_o manife_v to_o the_o world_n sectary_n never_o have_v it_o 7._o you_o will_v say_v they_o have_v yet_o gain_v many_o to_o their_o protestant_n few_o infidel_n reduce_v by_o protestant_n protestant_a profession_n what_o history_n relate_v they_o i_o beseech_v you_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o reduce_v infidel_n if_o we_o mention_v other_o who_o progenitor_n at_o least_o be_v catholic_n you_o may_v bold_o say_v it_o they_o with_o the_o help_n of_o secular_a power_n have_v pervert_v many_o a_o poor_a soul_n by_o preach_v liberty_n which_o corrupt_a nature_n as_o easy_o follow_v as_o a_o stone_n fall_v downward_o i'faith_o only_o justify_v good_a work_n be_v of_o no_o value_n fast_v be_v superstition_n mortification_n be_v popery_n the_o use_n of_o pennace_n be_v needle_n and_o yet_o worse_o may_v modesty_n speak_v it_o if_o the_o wife_n will_v not_o &c._n &c._n tenant_n more_o fit_a for_o devil_n than_o doctor_n to_o preach_v yet_o christian_n have_v hear_v such_o libertins_n talk_n follower_n how_o haresy_n have_v gain_v follower_n 8._o may_v i_o upon_o this_o occasion_n say_v my_o thought_n concern_v those_o poor_a soul_n draw_v from_o we_o to_o protestanism_n since_o the_o unhappy_a breach_n begin_v in_o england_n i_o conceive_v it_o thus_o a_o certain_a indifferent_a careless_a education_n a_o careless_a humour_n first_o bring_v in_o by_o haeresy_n homebred_a education_n humour_n of_o have_v this_o or_o that_o religion_n any_o or_o none_o haeresy_n first_o bring_v it_o in_o and_o it_o tend_v to_o atheism_n get_v they_o some_o company_n homebred_a education_n that_o see_v we_o little_a abroad_o as_o it_o must_v needs_o happen_v to_o they_o that_o live_v in_o a_o ileland_n have_v bring_v number_n pénal_a law_n ignorance_n perverse_a in_o some_o deplorable_a in_o other_o but_o above_o all_o liberty_n increase_v the_o number_n in_o more_o the_o penal_a law_n and_o the_o fear_n of_o lose_v a_o temporal_a fortune_n have_v force_v in_o very_a many_o ignorance_n peevish_o perverse_a in_o some_o and_o deplorable_a in_o other_o great_o increase_v the_o number_n but_o above_o all_o that_o liberty_n now_o mention_v to_o do_v and_o believe_v what_o every_o man_n list_v a_o sauce_n that_o suit_n best_o with_o unsettle_a stomach_n we_o may_v call_v it_o luther_n ratsbain_n have_v allure_v innumerable_a in_o one_o of_o these_o class_n you_o will_v find_v they_o except_o perhaps_o some_o of_o the_o more_o learned_a who_o conscience_n i_o touch_v not_o god_n only_a know_v what_o gripe_v they_o feel_v for_o mislead_v other_o and_o wrong_v themselves_o but_o what_o will_v you_o it_o be_v interest_n their_o fat_a benefice_n that_o timely_o follow_v the_o low_a fortune_n they_o be_v bear_v to_o hold_v they_o fast_o it_o must_v be_v a_o powerful_a grace_n that_o can_v so_o much_o as_o stir_v they_o much_o more_o that_o can_v draw_v they_o from_o their_o haeresy_n 9_o set_a these_o class_n aside_o the_o church_n in_o england_n will_v i_o think_v be_v very_o empty_a of_o company_n protestancy_n sew_v of_o the_o more_o able_a be_v in_o love_n with_o protestancy_n there_o be_v few_o or_o none_o among_o the_o able_a sort_n that_o be_v much_o in_o love_n with_o protestancy_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o religion_n yet_o more_o we_o find_v by_o experience_n that_o when_o those_o first_o sort_n of_o man_n now_o name_v have_v some_o feel_n of_o god_n and_o eternity_n when_o the_o second_o step_n out_o of_o england_n and_o see_v the_o practice_n of_o catholic_n religion_n in_o neighbour_a country_n when_o the_o three_o dare_v loose_a a_o little_a mammon_n for_o god_n when_o the_o four_o hot_a spirit_n be_v somewhat_o cool_v and_o the_o poor_a beguile_v get_v open_a their_o eye_n when_o the_o five_o have_v do_v with_o youth_n and_o liberty_n of_o the_o six_o i_o say_v nothing_o but_o god_n help_v they_o experience_n i_o say_v learn_v we_o that_o all_o of_o they_o draw_v near_o to_o catholic_n religion_n so_o far_o at_o least_o as_o to_o judge_v well_o and_o honourable_o of_o it_o protestant_n many_o at_o their_o death_n become_v catholic_n few_o or_o none_o turn_v to_o be_v protestant_n and_o we_o see_v not_o a_o few_o turn_v good_a old_a papist_n when_o they_o come_v to_o die_v man_n deal_v then_o most_o serious_o though_o i_o never_o yet_o hear_v of_o any_o that_o have_v live_v catholic_n desert_n his_o faith_n upon_o scruple_n as_o not_o be_v in_o a_o right_a belief_n or_o die_v a_o protestant_n 10._o universality_n which_o the_o very_a name_n of_o catholic_n time_n protestant_n have_n no_o universality_n of_o time_n imply_v and_o the_o apostle_n creed_n allow_v of_o be_v no_o mark_n of_o protestant_a religion_n if_o we_o relate_v to_o time_n not_o one_o age_n ever_o since_o christ_n come_v into_o the_o world_n can_v produce_v so_o much_o as_o one_o slender_a family_n of_o protestant_n before_o luther_n this_o point_n have_v be_v often_o place_n nor_o place_n press_v but_o never_o yet_o have_v answer_n for_o place_n it_o be_v as_o mean_o poor_a for_o take_v this_o religion_n in_o the_o great_a latitude_n as_o it_o be_v make_v up_o of_o all_o those_o jar_a and_o dissent_v people_n that_o go_v under_o the_o notion_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n it_o only_o creep'_v up_o and_o down_o in_o some_o few_o corner_n of_o our_o northern_a world_n without_o lustre_n or_o glory_n and_o if_o we_o speak_v more_o strict_o of_o protestant_n in_o england_n i_o mean_v the_o 39_o article_v man_n i_o believe_v a_o good_a large_a village_n will_v hold_v most_o of_o they_o mr._n poole_n have_v no_o good_a like_n to_o the_o long_a duration_n and_o amplitude_n of_o religion_n and_o therefore_o disdainful_o kik'_v at_o both_o with_o his_o pagan-instance_n be_v it_o not_o pitiful_a to_o misspend_v time_n on_o such_o intolerable_a trifle_n i_o will_v do_v so_o no_o more_o and_o therefore_o be_o with_o good_a reason_n force_v to_o wave_v most_o of_o mr._n pool_n noobjection_n 11._o to_o the_o amplitude_n of_o catholic_n religion_n we_o may_v here_o well_o anex_v the_o continue_a succession_n of_o bishop_n protestant_n have_v no_o succession_n of_o bishop_n bishop_n the_o sanctity_n and_o purity_n of_o our_o catholic_n doctrine_n both_o be_v mark_n of_o truth_n and_o evident_a in_o the_o roman_a church_n protestant_n can_v lay_v no_o claim_n to_o succession_n and_o therefore_o i_o challenge_v they_o as_o tertullian_n do_v the_o ancient_a heretic_n de_fw-fr prescript_n cap._n 32._o edant_fw-la origines_fw-la ecclesiarum_fw-la suarum_fw-la evolvant_fw-la ordinem_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la suorum_fw-la let_v they_o show_v we_o the_o origin_n of_o their_o church_n and_o declare_v the_o order_n of_o their_o bishop_n let_v they_o say_v who_o they_o be_v where_o they_o live_v who_o know_v they_o what_o good_a they_o do_v luther_n no_o protestant_a bishop_n or_o pastor_n before_o luther_n in_o the_o church_n sustinete_fw-la i_o &_o ego_fw-la loquar_fw-la have_v patience_n and_o '_o ill_o tell_v you_o they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o bishop_n one_o pastor_n one_o doctor_n or_o one_o preacher_n before_o the_o day_n of_o unfortunate_a luther_n whereas_o the_o catholic_n church_n
my_o name_n and_o catholic_n my_o surname_n that_o indeed_o name_v i_o but_o this_o declare_v what_o i_o be_o and_o in_o both_o these_o we_o catholic_n glory_n chap._n xi_o argument_n draw_v from_o reason_n against_o protestant_n upon_o the_o consideration_n of_o these_o declare_a motive_n 1._o we_o have_v see_v already_o both_o the_o weakness_n and_o different_a two_o church_n very_o different_a strength_n the_o obscurity_n and_o glory_n of_o two_o different_a church_n protestant_n and_o catholic_n the_o first_o pitiful_o naked_a the_o other_o rich_o adorn_v with_o such_o noble_a mark_n of_o truth_n as_o force_v reason_n to_o give_v a_o final_a sentence_n and_o say_v if_o religion_n be_v in_o the_o world_n it_o must_v be_v find_v among_o those_o christian_n who_o demonstrate_v it_o credible_a with_o most_o urgent_a and_o convince_a motive_n but_o this_o catholic_n religion_n only_a do_v and_o not_o protestancy_n for_o protestant_n i_o assert_v it_o bold_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o rational_a motive_n much_o les_fw-fr the_o complexum_fw-la of_o all_o now_o relate_v that_o work_v upon_o prudence_n and_o antecedent_o to_o their_o new_a faith_n make_v they_o believe_v as_o they_o do_v if_o they_o have_v any_o such_o my_o earnest_a petition_n be_v to_o hear_v of_o they_o or_o see_v they_o clear_o lay_v forth_o to_o the_o reason_n of_o other_o man_n or_o if_o they_o fail_v in_o this_o as_o of_o necessity_n they_o must_v let_v they_o speak_v the_o plain_a truth_n viz._n that_o all_o they_o write_v and_o preach_v be_v lose_v labour_n whilst_o they_o go_v about_o to_o draw_v rational_a man_n to_o a_o religion_n for_o which_o there_o be_v no_o reason_n and_o 2._o here_o i_o answer_v to_o the_o trivial_a talk_n of_o protestant_n pretend_v to_o follow_v reason_n in_o all_o they_o believe_v and_o once_o more_o assert_v they_o have_v nothing_o like_o a_o shadow_n religion_n protestant_n have_v no_o shadow_n of_o reason_n for_o their_o new_a religion_n of_o reason_n previous_a to_o their_o faith_n either_o for_o their_o new_a religion_n in_o general_n or_o any_o particular_a tenent_n in_o it_o to_o prove_v my_o assertion_n we_o must_v distinguish_v between_o the_o prudent_a inducement_n that_o draw_v one_o to_o believe_v and_o the_o elicit_v act_n of_o faith_n itself_o these_o inducement_n precede_n faith_n and_o be_v proper_o the_o object_n of_o discourse_n i'faith_o sole_o rely_v on_o god_n reveal_v testimony_n without_o the_o mixture_n of_o reason_n for_o its_o motive_n the_o previous_a motive_n well_o ponder_v bring_v with_o they_o a_o obligation_n of_o believe_v and_o not_o faith_n itself_o for_o no_o man_n say_v i_o be_o oblige_v to_o believe_v because_o i_o believe_v but_o therefore_o i_o believe_v because_o antecedent_o to_o my_o faith_n i_o find_v myself_o oblige_v upon_o prudent_a reason_n to_o believe_v as_o i_o do_v thus_o much_o suppose_v 3._o make_v a_o search_n into_o all_o the_o motive_n imaginable_a that_o may_v prudent_o induce_v a_o seeker_n after_o truth_n to_o embrace_v protestant_a religion_n you_o shall_v find_v nothing_o propose_v to_o reason_n that_o have_v the_o appearance_n of_o reason_n in_o it_o for_o example_n ask_v first_o in_o general_n upon_o what_o motive_n extrinsical_a to_o their_o faith_n do_v these_o man_n own_o protestancy_n as_o the_o only_a true_a and_o pure_a religion_n why_o dare_v they_o so_o bold_o prefer_v it_o before_o the_o faith_n of_o the_o long_o stand_v catholic_n church_n yea_o or_o before_o that_o of_o their_o homebred_a sectary_n of_o quaker_n and_o independent_o silence_n will_v prove_v the_o best_a answer_n they_o can_v show_v no_o motive_n at_o all_o perhaps_o we_o may_v hear_v they_o say_v they_o reject_v the_o ancient_a church_n because_o of_o its_o error_n and_o novelty_n if_o so_o they_o first_o lamentable_o beg_v the_o question_n and_o suppose_v that_o which_o be_v yet_o to_o be_v prove_v 2._o they_o answer_v not_o to_o the_o difficulty_n for_o grant_v which_o be_v utter_o false_a that_o the_o church_n have_v err_v we_o ask_v not_o here_o for_o argument_n to_o refute_v those_o error_n but_o inquire_v after_o rational_a and_o persuasive_a motive_n whereby_o truth_n be_v prove_v to_o stand_v on_o the_o protestant_a side_n a_o poor_a better_o a_o poor_a comfort_n to_o learn_v that_o my_o religion_n be_v not_o good_a unless_o sectary_n prove_v they_o to_o be_v better_o comfort_n god_n know_v it_o be_v for_o i_o to_o hear_v from_o a_o protestant_n that_o my_o religion_n be_v not_o right_o unless_o upon_o weighty_a reason_n he_o convince_v i_o that_o he_o be_v better_a for_o say_v i_o if_o the_o old_a religion_n be_v naught_o this_o new_a one_o may_v be_v worse_o and_o more_o erroneous_a sectary_n be_v therefore_o oblige_v to_o bring_v in_o palpable_a evidence_n whereby_o their_o religion_n be_v positive_o demonstrate_v credible_a and_o only_o the_o best_a which_o shall_v never_o be_v do_v 4._o if_o yet_o to_o answer_v the_o difficulty_n they_o take_v post_n difficulty_n recourse_n to_o scripture_n clear'_v not_o the_o difficulty_n to_o scripture_n for_o proof_n of_o their_o religion_n they_o be_v out_o of_o the_o way_n and_o at_o the_o conclusion_n before_o they_o put_v the_o premise_n for_o in_o this_o place_n we_o make_v no_o inquiry_n after_o their_o formal_a act_n of_o faith_n nor_o the_o immediate_a object_n thereof_o we_o know_v well_o their_o answer_n but_o only_a quaker_n protestant_n have_v no_o motive_n to_o believe_v contrary_a to_o the_o church_n or_o contrary_a to_o the_o quaker_n ask_v for_o the_o rational_a motive_n perceptible_a by_o all_o that_o preced_n faith_n and_o prudent_o oblige_v they_o to_o believe_v contrary_a both_o to_o the_o ancient_a church_n and_o their_o own_o honest_a quaker_n and_o this_o if_o the_o reply_v be_v pertinent_a must_v be_v evidence_v before_o they_o talk_v of_o a_o new_a faith_n ground_v on_o scripture_n have_v the_o primitive_a christian_n when_o they_o leave_v of_o judaisme_n and_o believe_v christ_n be_v ask_v why_o they_o receive_v christ_n doctrine_n and_o prefer_v that_o before_o their_o old_a religion_n they_o will_v have_v answer_v the_o blind_a se_fw-mi the_o lame_a walk_n the_o dead_a arise_v etc._n etc._n we_o behold_v strange_a wonder_n with_o our_o eye_n which_o powerful_o work_v upon_o reason_n and_o can_v but_o proceed_v from_o god_n when_o therefore_o our_o protestant_n desert_v the_o ancient_a church_n and_o teach_v a_o new_a faith_n contrary_a to_o it_o certain_o some_o visible_a apparent_a wonder_n inducement_n a_o new_a religion_n must_v have_v sign_n of_o truih_n and_o weighty_a inducement_n some_o persuasive_a sign_n of_o truth_n shall_v have_v usher_v it_o in_o and_o sound_v the_o trumpet_n before_o these_o new_a preacher_n all_o convince_v by_o reason_n shall_v have_v cry_v out_o here_o be_v antiquity_n here_o be_v unity_n in_o doctrine_n here_o we_o see_v the_o pedigree_n of_o our_o ancient_a church_n show_v forth_o now_o and_o not_o before_o our_o eye_n behold_v most_o glorious_a and_o undoubted_a miracle_n god_n certain_o speak_v by_o these_o new_a man_n etc._n etc._n but_o when_o we_o look_v about_o we_o and_o find_v nothing_o to_o countenance_v this_o unknown_a faith_n which_o like_o a_o stranger_n come_v among_o we_o when_o we_o hear_v a_o novelty_n preach_v without_o either_o sign_n motive_n or_o inducement_n to_o make_v it_o credible_a when_o we_o see_v a_o new_a religion_n bring_v give_v word_n only_o give_v in_o by_o uncommission_v man_n upon_o their_o bare_a parole_n and_o unproved_a fancy_n only_o what_o can_v we_o think_v but_o that_o both_o arian_n and_o pelagian_o yea_o and_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n have_v evidence_v as_o strong_o their_o old_a error_n by_o a_o verbal_a vent_n of_o they_o as_o protestant_n do_v now_o their_o new_a gospel_n for_o beside_o word_n you_o have_v nothing_o to_o warrant_v it_o 5._o perhaps_o they_o will_v say_v they_o be_v a_o part_n of_o christianity_n arian_n old_a motive_n no_o more_o for_o protestant_n then_o for_o arian_n and_o therefore_o the_o old_a motive_n belong_v to_o they_o i_o answer_v no_o more_o than_o to_o arian_n or_o pelagian_o who_o go_v as_o well_o under_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n as_o protestant_n do_v o_o but_o their_o religion_n now_o profess_v be_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n i_o dare_v swear_v it_o the_o arian_n and_o our_o modern_a quaker_n will_v yet_o principle_n a_o claim_n to_o the_o primitive_a faith_n no_o receive_a principle_n say_v as_o bold_o they_o believe_v exact_o the_o very_a doctrine_n which_o pure_a scripture_n teach_v but_o there_o be_v ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d a_o vast_a distance_n between_o say_v and_o prove_v what_o be_v say_v by_o a_o rational_a satisfactory_a and_o receive_a principle_n i_o say_v therefore_o their_o bare_a assertion_n of_o hold_v the_o primitive_a faith_n which_o we_o utter_o deny_v be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v either_o a_o probable_a or_o convince_a principle_n for_o
this_o religion_n that_o it_o must_v be_v either_o further_o prove_v by_o rational_a ground_n or_o it_o be_v whole_o forceles_a and_o fall_v to_o nothing_o 6._o they_o say_v again_o they_o have_v three_o evident_a principle_n answer_v 3._o principle_n of_o protestant_n answer_v to_o ground_v their_o new_a faith_n on_o first_o what_o god_n speak_v be_v true_a 2._o god_n pure_a and_o uncorrupted_a word_n be_v in_o their_o hand_n 3._o they_o know_v what_o god_n speak_v in_o this_o word_n i_o answer_v the_o first_o principle_n be_v certain_a the_o second_o more_o than_o doubtful_a the_o three_o on_o which_o all_o rely_v and_o touch_v more_o upon_o their_o faith_n then_o on_o any_o rational_a antecedent_n motive_n evidence_v it_o be_v demonstrative_o improbable_a for_o upon_o no_o proof_n upon_o no_o receive_a principle_n by_o the_o light_n of_o no_o rational_a motive_n can_v these_o man_n so_o much_o as_o mean_o show_v that_o they_o be_v better_o at_o know_v what_o god_n speak_v in_o scripture_n than_o a_o whole_a ample_a learned_a church_n or_o than_o their_o own_o ancestor_n both_o know_v of_o old_a and_o believe_v for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o these_o man_n long_o since_o decease_v hold_v and_o upon_o scripture_n well_o understand_v as_o firm_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n sacred_a body_n in_o the_o eucharist_n as_o a_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o one_o divine_a essence_n the_o first_o protestant_n now_o reject_v the_o pleasure_n protestant_n reject_v and_o admit_v at_o pleasure_n other_o they_o admit_v and_o why_o upon_o what_o conviction_n upon_o what_o rational_a motive_n do_v they_o take_v and_o leave_v assert_v and_o deny_v as_o they_o listen_v press_v this_o and_o other_o like_o particular_n home_n instead_o of_o reason_n or_o rational_a proof_n you_o shall_v have_v their_o own_o reel_a sentiment_n proof_n sectary_n self-seeming_a no_o proof_n give_v in_o for_o answer_n and_o thus_o forsooth_o it_o be_v they_o read_v scripture_n and_o very_o it_o seem_v to_o they_o it_o ought_v to_o be_v interpret_v as_o they_o will_v have_v it_o i_o ask_v a_o reason_n for_o this_o new_a seem_n against_o the_o old_a receive_v sense_n and_o that_o very_o seem_v which_o be_v in_o question_n you_o have_v proofles_o return_v for_o a_o answer_n observe_v well_o that_o i_o say_v here_o and_o you_o will_v find_v protestancy_n reduce_v to_o fancy_n only_o chap._n xii_o protestant_n for_o want_v of_o rational_a motive_n can_v convert_v a_o infidel_n to_o christian_a faith_n 1._o it_o have_v often_o occur_v to_o i_o if_o by_o a_o suppose_a heathen_a they_o have_v no_o way_n to_o convince_v a_o heathen_a impossibility_n schoolman_n sometime_o argue_v so_o and_o profitable_o popish_a religion_n be_v utter_o extinguish_v or_o the_o proof_n thereof_o quite_o raze_v out_o of_o all_o man_n memory_n yet_o that_o protestant_n with_o all_o they_o can_v in_o justice_n lie_v claim_v to_o touch_v religion_n shall_v still_o stand_v in_o the_o world_n as_o now_o they_o do_v this_o thought_n i_o say_v have_v more_o than_o once_o seize_v on_o i_o viz._n how_o mean_v how_o poor_a how_o destitute_a and_o naked_a a_o thing_n protestancy_n will_v appear_v to_o be_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o either_o jew_n or_o learned_a heathen_a philosopher_n for_o all_o it_o have_v if_o yet_o it_o have_v so_o much_o be_v a_o borrow_a bible_n from_o other_o but_o no_o miracle_n no_o undobted_a mark_n of_o truth_n no_o certain_a tradition_n no_o succession_n of_o ancient_a bishop_n no_o pastor_n no_o doctor_n in_o fine_a no_o rational_a motive_n if_o this_o supposition_n stand_v can_v enable_v these_o new_a owner_n of_o the_o bible_n to_o say_v with_o assurance_n this_o book_n be_v god_n own_o word_n and_o in_o this_o or_o this_o sense_n god_n speak_v by_o it_o 2._o to_o clear_v the_o matter_n further_o imagine_v that_o a_o learned_a philosopher_n no_o christian_a curious_a to_o learn_v protestant_n a_o short_a dialogue_n between_o a_o philosopher_n and_o a_o protestant_n what_o christian_a religion_n be_v as_o we_o now_o suppose_v it_o only_o among_o protestant_n and_o other_o sectary_n shall_v for_o better_a satisfaction_n address_v himself_o to_o so_o wise_a a_o man_n as_o mr._n poole_n who_o i_o suppose_v will_v tell_v the_o heathen_a that_o god_n be_v to_o be_v adore_v in_o a_o certain_a religion_n the_o philosopher_n will_v answer_v i_o do_v so_o for_o my_o religion_n be_v to_o follow_v principle_n of_o nature_n to_o live_v a_o moral_a life_n to_o submit_v to_o the_o government_n i_o be_o under_o to_o do_v as_o i_o will_v be_v do_v by_o and_o here_o be_v all._n o_o say_v mr._n poole_n sir_n you_o have_v yet_o great_a matter_n to_o look_v after_o you_o must_v believe_v in_o christ_n if_o you_o will_v be_v save_v who_o be_v this_o christ_n demand'_v the_o philosopher_n poole_n he_o be_v god_n and_o man_n bear_v of_o a_o virgin_n and_o one_o that_o manifest_v himself_o by_o a_o most_o holy_a life_n wrought_v many_o miracle_n dye_v for_o we_o all_o arise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n and_o afterward_o ascend_v to_o heaven_n phil._n a_o strange_a story_n indeed_o but_o can_v you_o make_v the_o story_n credible_a to_o my_o reason_n poole_n o_o sir_n it_o be_v undoubted_a for_o this_o and_o much_o more_o be_v write_v in_o a_o holy_a book_n we_o call_v scripture_n and_o you_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v it_o phil._n in_o a_o book_n call_v scripture_n here_o be_v no_o reason_n for_o i_o ask_v upon_o what_o motive_n can_v you_o make_v all_o that_o be_v write_v in_o this_o book_n credible_a to_o i_o and_o here_o because_o i_o shall_v instant_o press_v the_o point_n far_a my_o demand_n only_o be_v from_o who_o you_o receive_v scripture_n and_o how_o long_o since_o it_o come_v to_o your_o hand_n we_o have_v it_o say_v mr._n poole_n about_o a_o hundred_o bible_n when_o and_o from_o who_o sectary_n have_v their_o bible_n year_n ago_o partly_o from_o man_n that_o now_o be_v suppose_v forget_v i_o think_v they_o be_v call_v papist_n partly_o from_o other_o heretic_n as_o arian_n grecian_n of_o no_o great_a credit_n for_o they_o be_v contrary_a to_o we_o phil._n and_o be_v it_o possible_a dare_v you_o admit_v of_o this_o strange_a and_o mysterious_a bible_n upon_o no_o strong_a proof_n than_o the_o authority_n of_o heretic_n and_o such_o beguile_a man_n answ_n we_o do_v so_o for_o we_o have_v no_o better_a testimony_n phil._n what_o professor_n of_o christianity_n have_v you_o in_o the_o world_n before_o your_o time_n that_o teach_v true_o and_o pure_o the_o doctrine_n of_o your_o bible_n poole_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n at_o least_o we_o know_v not_o of_o any_o the_o best_a i_o can_v mention_v be_v the_o late_a grecian_n and_o yet_o they_o high_o dissent_v from_o we_o in_o point_n very_o fundamental_a as_o i_o read_v in_o leo_n alatius_fw-la against_o hottinger_n arcudius_n and_o other_o author_n phil._n tell_v i_o once_o more_o have_v you_o no_o professor_n bishop_n no_o pastor_n no_o protestant_a bishop_n of_o your_o protestancy_n before_o these_o last_o hundred_o year_n no_o protestant_a bishop_n no_o pastor_n no_o doctor_n that_o hand_v unto_o you_o this_o bible_n poole_n none_o at_o all_o phil._n that_o be_v pitiful_a and_o make_v i_o suspect_v your_o religion_n however_o since_o these_o last_o hundred_o year_n have_v you_o make_v any_o know_v and_o notable_a conversion_n upon_o infidel_n by_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n of_o your_o bible_n or_o have_v you_o wrought_v undoubted_a miracle_n in_o confirmation_n of_o its_o truth_n answ_n we_o must_v confess_v the_o want_n of_o great_a conversion_n and_o of_o know_a miracle_n also_o phil._n satisfy_v i_o yet_o further_o in_o one_o doubt_n when_o you_o be_v at_o variance_n among_o yourselves_o concern_v the_o difficil_n passage_n of_o this_o book_n which_o be_v many_o difference_n no_o cert_n judge_n to_o reconcile_v difference_n for_o i_o have_v read_v it_o who_o have_v you_o to_o reconcile_v those_o difference_n in_o who_o certain_a judgement_n do_v you_o final_o acquiesce_v answ_n we_o acknowledge_v no_o infallible_a teacher_n no_o certain_a judge_n on_o earth_n every_o man_n give_v his_o private_a sentiment_n concern_v those_o difficulty_n though_o not_o infallible_o and_o it_o be_v not_o in_o our_o power_n to_o do_v more_o phil._n here_o can_v be_v no_o unity_n in_o doctrine_n but_o doctrine_n no_o commission_n to_o teach_v uncertain_a doctrine_n say_v on_o i_o beseech_v you_o tell_v i_o who_o send_v you_o to_o teach_v these_o uncertain_a sentiment_n of_o your_o bible_n from_o who_o have_v you_o commission_n to_o preach_v such_o unsettle_a doctrine_n you_o know_v that_o in_o civil_a affair_n if_o one_o uncommission_v assume_v to_o himself_o the_o title_n of_o legate_n or_o any_o dignity_n in_o a_o commonwealth_n he_o be_v either_o traitor_n tyrant_n or_o both_o you_o call_v yourselves_o legate_n send_v from_o god_n you_o assume_v the_o dignity_n
they_o preach_v and_o teach_v they_o only_o can_v show_v to_o all_o the_o world_n their_o pope_n their_o bishop_n their_o pastor_n their_o doctor_n who_o successive_o have_v teach_v and_o govern_v christ_n flock_n since_o the_o beginning_n of_o christianity_n they_o and_o only_o church_n and_o glorious_a mark_n of_o a_o long_a stand_a church_n they_o show_v you_o a_o church_n mark_v and_o make_v glorious_a by_o innumerable_a know_v and_o undoubted_a miracle_n a_o faith_n seal_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o innumerable_a bless_a martyr_n beautify_v with_o such_o eminent_a sanctity_n and_o holiness_n of_o life_n in_o thousand_o as_o have_v cause_v admiration_n to_o very_a infidel_n and_o draw_v in_o no_o few_o to_o follow_v the_o like_a austerity_n such_o be_v the_o inducement_n which_o plead_v strong_o for_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n and_o no_o other_o they_o full_o convince_v reason_n and_o prove_v that_o if_o god_n as_o i_o note_v above_o can_v conquer_v infidelity_n and_o haeresy_n by_o the_o force_n of_o prudential_a motive_n here_o they_o be_v see_v if_o ever_o he_o speak_v by_o church_n as_o god_n speak_v ancient_o by_o his_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n he_o speak_v now_o by_o the_o church_n the_o mouth_n of_o his_o prophet_n or_o apostle_n he_o speak_v now_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o this_o one_o and_o only_a society_n of_o christian_n yea_o and_o he_o yet_o use_v as_o i_o may_v say_v the_o same_o powerful_a language_n for_o if_o the_o miracle_n of_o our_o bless_a lord_n and_o of_o his_o apostle_n if_o their_o efficacious_a doctrine_n their_o sanctity_n of_o life_n their_o blood_n shed_v be_v conviction_n enough_o to_o infidel_n in_o those_o day_n they_o be_v now_o as_o forceable_a in_o the_o church_n and_o as_o manifest_v to_o our_o sense_n which_o cause_v that_o bless_a man_n richard_n de_fw-fr s._n victore_fw-la lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr trin._n c._n 2._o to_o exclaim_v si_fw-mi error_n est_fw-la quem_fw-la credidimus_fw-la à _fw-la te_fw-la decepti_fw-la sumus_fw-la if_o it_o be_v error_n we_o believe_v it_o be_v you_o who_o have_v deceive_v we_o jis_fw-la enim_fw-la signis_fw-la etc._n etc._n for_o with_o such_o sign_n this_o doctrine_n be_v confirm_v which_o can_v proceed_v from_o none_o but_o you_o only_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o unquestioned_a miracle_n as_o be_v the_o resuscitation_n of_o dead_a man_n more_o since_o the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v raise_v from_o death_n to_o life_n then_o in_o the_o primitive_a age._n to_o deny_v these_o miracle_n be_v be_v to_o deny_v all_o history_n which_o supply_v the_o want_n of_o sense_n in_o those_o who_o see_v they_o not_o to_o owm_n they_o to_o disow_v protestancy_n and_o profess_v plain_a popery_n our_o new_a man_n therefore_o speak_v at_o random_n when_o they_o talk_v of_o i_o know_v not_o what_o abstract_a evidence_n for_o christian_a religion_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o motive_n for_o scripture_n be_v agree_v on_o by_o all_o i_o answer_v above_o church_n no_o evidence_n for_o christian_a religion_n in_o general_n nor_o for_o scripture_n but_o by_o the_o church_n there_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v motive_n for_o christian_a religion_n in_o general_n if_o the_o word_n christian_n comprise_v all_o profess_a heretic_n for_o be_v it_o so_o god_n will_v deceive_v we_o and_o make_v falsehood_n as_o credible_a as_o truth_n no_o motive_n can_v evidence_n scripture_n unless_o they_o first_o evidence_n a_o church_n that_o indubitable_o give_v we_o certain_a scripture_n which_o be_v to_o say_v in_o other_o term_n all_o motive_n as_o well_o for_o the_o verity_n of_o christian_a faith_n as_o scripture_n be_v only_o to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n and_o in_o no_o other_o society_n of_o christian_n if_o protestant_n can_v prove_v their_o faith_n or_o scripture_n by_o so_o much_o as_o a_o likelihood_n of_o either_o these_o now_o name_v know_v sectary_n be_v oblige_v in_o conscience_n to_o make_v their_o motive_n know_v or_o any_o better_a inducement_n they_o be_v oblige_v in_o conscience_n to_o make_v they_o know_v that_o man_n at_o last_o may_v see_v that_o clear_a light_n of_o the_o gospel_n whereof_o they_o endless_o talk_v in_o their_o pulpit_n true_a candour_n and_o sincerity_n can_v but_o speak_v plain_o to_o this_o point_n without_o intricate_a tergiversation_n if_o so_o much_o as_o a_o spark_n of_o zeal_n live_v in_o their_o heart_n and_o rational_a motive_n do_v not_o fail_v they_o we_o expect_v a_o candid_a answer_n chap._n xiii_o protestancy_n for_o want_n of_o rational_a motive_n dishonor_n christ_n and_o make_v way_n for_o any_o new_a coin_a haeresy_n 1._o i_o prove_v the_o assertion_n that_o religion_n high_o christ_n protestancy_n dishonor_n christ_n dishonour_v christ_n which_o must_v of_o necessity_n confess_v that_o a_o false_a erroneous_a church_n be_v more_o eminent_o glorious_a and_o better_o mark_v with_o all_o evident_a sign_n of_o truth_n than_o that_o pure_a orthodox_n religion_n be_v which_o christ_n have_v now_o establish_v in_o the_o world_n but_o protestant_n must_v confess_v thus_o much_o and_o to_o prove_v my_o minor_a ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la i_o need_v no_o more_o but_o two_o principle_n prove_v by_o their_o own_o principle_n certain_a principle_n of_o their_o own_o one_o be_v the_o roman_a catholic_n religion_n have_v be_v at_o least_o for_o a_o thousand_o year_n erroneous_a yea_o some_o say_v antichristian_a it_o still_o contradict'_v the_o primitive_a doctrine_n hold_v a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n etc._n etc._n contrary_a to_o scripture_n such_o doctrine_n give_v sectary_n just_a cause_n as_o they_o say_v to_o leave_v this_o church_n and_o lash_v we_o so_o severe_o as_o they_o have_v do_v to_o pull_v down_o our_o monastery_n to_o banish_v the_o ancient_a clergy_n to_o ruin_v those_o who_o profess_v our_o religion_n they_o be_v not_o mere_a trifle_n nor_o petty_a mistake_n which_o make_v our_o kind_a heart_a countryman_n to_o use_v we_o so_o unkind_o here_o be_v my_o first_o principle_n grant_v by_o protestant_n the_o second_o be_v as_o clear_v viz._n that_o their_o new_a religion_n of_o protestancy_n as_o it_o stand_v now_o reform_v be_v the_o pure_a true_a and_o most_o orthodox_n christian_a religion_n for_o set_v this_o and_o the_o primitive_a church_n aside_o of_o three_o or_o four_o hundred_o year_n continuance_n you_o never_o yet_o have_v say_v they_o any_o society_n of_o man_n that_o teach_v pure_o christ_n doctrine_n no_o god_n wot_v a_o deluge_n of_o popish_a error_n overrun_v christianity_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o until_o these_o late_a man_n bring_v unto_o we_o the_o joyful_a tiding_n of_o their_o refine_a gospel_n 2._o upon_o these_o two_o undeniable_a supposition_n you_o shall_v plain_o see_v what_o a_o eternal_a disgrace_n what_o affront_v protestant_n will_v needs_o put_v upon_o our_o dear_a saviour_n do_v what_o we_o can_v to_o hinder_v they_o he_o bless_a lord_n found_v a_o church_n it_o cost_v he_o dear_a the_o effusion_n of_o his_o sacred_a blood_n and_o promise_v we_o a_o indeficient_a glorious_a church_n to_o be_v raise_v out_o of_o all_o nation_n yet_o after_o all_o these_o ample_a promise_n he_o have_v protestancy_n a_o glorious_a church_n promise_v and_o a_o obscure_a one_o show_v we_o of_o protestancy_n give_v we_o a_o pitiful_a one_o indeed_o no_o better_o a_o thing_n then_o protestancy_n which_o be_v utrer_o disgrace_v obscure_v dishonour_v and_o quite_o put_v down_o by_o the_o majesty_n the_o miracle_n the_o antiquity_n the_o unity_n the_o sanctity_n of_o that_o church_n which_o must_v now_o forsooth_o be_v style_v false_a erroneous_a and_o antichristian_a if_o this_o pass_n for_o current_a doctrine_n you_o have_v with_o it_o sport_n enough_o for_o the_o dishonour_v how_o christ_n be_v dishonour_v devil_n and_o protestant_n only_o make_v it_o who_o upon_o their_o warrant_n may_v most_o just_o reproach_v both_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n and_o thus_o powerful_o plead_v at_o the_o bar_n of_o reason_n saviour_n of_o the_o world_n my_o false_a popish_a antichristian_a church_n have_v stand_v a_o thousand_o year_n in_o error_n truth_n how_o the_o devil_n may_v plead_v and_o most_o rational_o if_o protestant_n speak_v truth_n you_o of_o protestancy_n only_o a_o hundred_o in_o truth_n i_o both_o be_v and_o have_v be_v universal_o spread_v the_o whole_a world_n over_o you_o yet_o see_v we_o little_a out_o of_o some_o few_o corner_n in_o europe_n my_o church_n have_v have_v most_o learned_a general_n council_n you_o never_o any_o i_o produce_v a_o long_a continue_a succession_n of_o pope_n of_o bishop_n of_o pastor_n you_o not_o a_o man_n before_o luther_n i_o be_v glorious_a with_o those_o very_a note_n and_o mark_n of_o truth_n which_o you_o manifest_v in_o your_o own_o sacred_a person_n and_o induce_v infidel_n to_o believe_v you_o your_o late_a congregation_n show_v nothing_o like_o they_o my_o false_a church_n fa_v pray_v contemplat_n convert_v more_o than_o
you_o it_o have_v more_o unity_n in_o faith_n you_o be_v rend_v and_o tear_v apiece_o with_o division_n and_o loe_o great_a god_n here_o be_v that_o glorious_a edifice_n which_o you_o after_o all_o your_o perfect_a idea_n of_o a_o church_n have_v erect_v for_o this_o you_o die_v and_o never_o shed_v your_o blood_n to_o establish_v my_o false_a erroneous_a synagogue_n of_o popery_n permit_v reason_n to_o judge_v in_o this_o case_n and_o say_v whether_o the_o devil_n be_v a_o ill_a advocate_n if_o protestant_n avouch_v truth_n and_o stand_v to_o their_o profess_a doctrine_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n drown_v in_o a_o deluge_n of_o error_n abandon_v the_o first_o verity_n of_o christian_a religion_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o and_o that_o their_o church_n as_o it_o be_v now_o in_o be_v be_v the_o most_o choice_n goodly_a and_o only_o refine_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n 3._o my_o last_o argument_n hint_v at_o in_o the_o title_n be_v heresy_n foundation_n lay_v of_o new_a heresy_n thus_o a_o new_a coin_a haeresy_n without_o motive_n of_o credibility_n may_v be_v as_o well_o or_o better_o defend_v by_o plain_a speak_a scripture_n than_o protestancy_n it_o be_v believe_v i_o the_o easy_a thing_n in_o the_o world_n to_o draw_v haeresy_n out_o of_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n to_o make_v good_a my_o assertion_n read_v first_o st._n hierom_n in_o his_o dialogue_n reflection_n s._n hieroms_n reflection_n adversus_fw-la luciferianos_fw-la paris_n print_n anno_fw-la 1509._o at_o the_o very_a end_n of_o the_o dialogue_n this_o great_a doctor_n then_o to_o reduce_v some_o beguile_v by_o the_o luciferian_o who_o hold_v that_o a_o bishop_n or_o priest_n once_o desert_v their_o faith_n can_v never_o again_o be_v admit_v into_o the_o church_n which_o they_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v by_o that_o text_n of_o st._n matthew_n cap._n 5._o v._n 13._o you_o be_v the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n but_o if_o the_o salt_n have_v lose_v its_o savour_n wherewith_o shall_v it_o be_v salt_v ad_fw-la nihilum_fw-la valet_fw-la ultra_fw-la it_o be_v good_a for_o nothing_o hereafter_o &c._n &c._n st._n hierom_n i_o say_v to_o refute_v these_o have_v a_o excellent_a reflection_n nec_fw-la sibi_fw-la blandiantur_fw-la si_fw-la de_fw-la scripturae_fw-la capitulis_fw-la videntur_fw-la sibi_fw-la assumere_fw-la etc._n etc._n let_v they_o not_o flatter_v themselves_o if_o they_o seem_v to_o assume_v out_o of_o scripture_n scripture_n of_o error_n draw_v from_o scripture_n what_o they_o say_v for_o the_o devil_n have_v speak_v thing_n out_o of_o scripture_n scripture_n god_n know_v do_v not_o consist_v in_o what_o we_o read_v but_o in_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o otherwise_o say_v the_o saint_n possumus_fw-la &_o nos_fw-la &c._n &c._n i_o be_o able_a to_o coin_v a_o new_a opinion_n out_o of_o scripture_n and_o say_v that_o none_o be_v to_o be_v receive_v into_o the_o church_n that_o be_v shoe_n or_o have_v two_o coat_n for_o that_o be_v scripture_n 4._o it_o be_v most_o easy_a to_o go_v on_o with_o this_o true_a reflection_n of_o st._n hierom_n and_o draw_v new_a heresy_n every_o particular_n particular_n hour_n from_o scripture_n one_o will_v say_v the_o sabbath-day_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v sacred_a in_o place_n of_o sunday_n and_o bring_v scripture_n for_o it_o exod._n 20._o 8._o another_o that_o we_o be_v as_o well_o to_o abstain_v from_o eat_v of_o blood_n or_o thing_n strangle_v as_o from_o fornication_n it_o be_v a_o decree_n of_o the_o apostolical_a council_n and_o scripture_n actor_n 15._o 29._o a_o three_o that_o infant_n aae_v not_o to_o be_v baptise_a there_o be_v ground_n for_o it_o matth._n 28._o a_o four_o that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o contend_v in_o law_n but_o quit_v our_o coat_n if_o any_o man_n will_v take_v it_o and_o cloak_n also_o matt._n 5._o a_o five_o that_o no_o euangelical_n preacher_n be_v to_o carry_v gold_n or_o silver_n with_o he_o or_o have_v two_o coat_n matt._n 10._o 7._o 5._o suppose_v that_o a_o new_a sect_n of_o man_n shall_v rise_v up_o up_o a_o new_a sect_n of_o man_n rise_v up_o this_o year_n in_o whole_a multitude_n and_o rigid_o adhere_v to_o the_o exact_a letter_n of_o scripture_n in_o these_o particular_n be_v it_o possible_a to_o convince_v they_o by_o scripture_n it_o be_v impossible_a and_o have_v they_o not_o think_v you_o more_o plain_a text_n of_o god_n word_n for_o these_o tenant_n than_o protestant_n have_v for_o pure_a protestancy_n yea_o most_o evident_o for_o they_o produce_v nothing_o but_o express_v scripture_n without_o gloss_n and_o do_v they_o not_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o admit_v of_o every_o jota_fw-la in_o scripture_n yea_o and_o therefore_o be_v sound_a in_o fundamental_o moreover_n do_v they_o not_o acknowledge_v both_o christ_n and_o scripture_n upon_o the_o same_o tradition_n or_o other_o evidence_n as_o protestant_n do_v yea_o and_o be_v ready_a perhaps_o to_o join_v in_o belief_n with_o they_o when_o they_o see_v scripture_n as_o plain_a for_o any_o protestant_a doctrine_n they_o only_o add_v a_o superstructure_n have_v have_v as_o good_a a_o church_n as_o luther_n have_v of_o these_o article_n and_o have_v they_o not_o as_o good_a a_o church_n as_o luther_n and_o calvin_n have_v a_o year_n after_o their_o new_a preach_v yes_o they_o swarm_v with_o multitude_n of_o follower_n and_o multitude_n make_v a_o church_n why_o then_o be_v not_o the_o belief_n of_o these_o man_n all_o ground_a in_o scripture_n as_o good_a as_o that_o of_o protestant_n i_o think_v it_o be_v of_o two_o evil_n the_o better_a if_o more_o word_n of_o scripture_n can_v more_o advance_v the_o worth_n of_o either_o religion_n but_o i_o tell_v you_o and_o true_o that_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v good_a because_o unreasonable_a and_o they_o be_v therefore_o unreasonable_a because_o no_o man_n reason_n can_v in_o this_o present_a state_n of_o christianity_n whilst_o god_fw-we govern_n u_fw-mi by_o the_o light_n of_o prudence_n fall_v upon_o a_o religion_n or_o believe_v a_o church_n which_o evident_o appear_v religion_n a_o religion_n without_o prudent_a motive_n be_v no_o religion_n naked_a and_o destitute_a of_o all_o rational_a motive_n inductive_a to_o true_a belief_n now_o scripture_n alone_o without_o the_o interpretation_n of_o a_o church_n evidence_v by_o forcible_a motive_n be_v what_o you_o please_v to_o make_v of_o it_o and_o a_o church_n not_o at_o all_o manifest_v by_o rational_a motive_n be_v no_o church_n and_o therefore_o can_v interpret_v scripture_n if_o you_o ask_v why_o we_o say_v that_o protestancy_n be_v so_o bare_a of_o motive_n and_o consequent_o no_o church_n i_o have_v answer_v above_o because_o this_o religion_n never_o have_v nor_o shall_v have_v any_o such_o persuasive_a inducement_n or_o the_o like_a sign_n of_o truth_n for_o it_o as_o christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o bless_a apostle_n manifest_v when_o they_o first_o teach_v the_o world_n and_o by_o virtue_n of_o those_o motive_n gain_v innumerable_a soul_n to_o christianity_n look_v then_o about_o you_o and_o find_v i_o out_o a_o society_n of_o christian_n that_o be_v evidence_v by_o such_o sign_n as_o hold_v a_o strict_a analogy_n with_o those_o of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o you_o have_v the_o true_a church_n but_o this_o be_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n church_n what_o prove_v christianity_n ancient_o prove_v now_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n only_a and_o no_o other_o as_o i_o have_v large_o prove_v dare_v you_o therefore_o own_o the_o true_a christ_n and_o his_o bless_a apostle_n who_o wrought_v miracle_n live_v holy_o preach_v efficacious_o upon_o such_o motive_n you_o must_v also_o own_o this_o true_a church_n upon_o the_o like_a ground_a proof_n be_v miracle_n sanctity_n efficacious_a doctrine_n etc._n etc._n rational_a inducement_n to_o believe_v in_o christ_n they_o be_v now_o both_o powerful_a and_o persuasive_a to_o believe_v this_o church_n to_o deny_v as_o i_o say_v above_o all_o miracle_n to_o this_o church_n even_o the_o great_a as_o be_v the_o raise_v of_o dead_a man_n to_o life_n be_v to_o deny_v sense_n reason_n history_n church_n the_o forceable_a motive_n of_o faith_n can_v be_v take_v from_o our_o church_n and_o all_o authority_n and_o to_o appropriate_v these_o and_o other_o motive_n to_o protestant_n be_v only_o a_o attempt_v plagiary_n which_o can_v be_v do_v it_o be_v true_a these_o man_n glory_v in_o a_o steal_a bible_n and_o it_o be_v all_o they_o can_v pretend_v to_o beside_o the_o bare_a name_n of_o a_o fruitless_a and_o unevidence_v church_n but_o the_o mark_n and_o character_n of_o a_o true_a church_n they_o shall_v never_o have_v nor_o take_v from_o we_o and_o thus_o much_o of_o infallible_a teacher_n and_o the_o motive_n of_o true_a faith_n the_o second_o discourse_n of_o scripture_n the_o first_o chapter_n scripture_n be_v useless_a if_o none_o declare_v infallible_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o 1._o when_o on_o the_o one_o side_n i_o consider_v
how_o useless_a a_o book_n abuse_v these_o impious_a gloss_n be_v lay_v forth_o only_o to_o show_v sectary_n how_o scripture_n may_v be_v abuse_v sole_a scripture_n be_v with_o these_o man_n to_o end_v their_o difference_n yea_o and_o what_o monster_n be_v produce_v out_o of_o it_o by_o those_o that_o pretend_v most_o to_o god_n write_v word_n and_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n think_v you_o that_o these_o sole-scripturists_a these_o arian_n these_o protestant_n these_o anabaptist_n etc._n etc._n be_v so_o various_a so_o opposite_a in_o their_o tenant_n beget_v as_o they_o think_v out_o of_o the_o true_a write_a word_n proceed_v from_o whence_o the_o abuse_n proceed_v of_o god_n be_v it_o for_o want_v of_o wit_n learning_n or_o language_n they_o thus_o differ_v no._n be_v it_o for_o the_o want_n of_o study_n and_o confer_v one_o place_n of_o scripture_n clear_a as_o they_o think_v with_o other_o obscure_a no_o both_o arian_n and_o protestant_n have_v do_v this_o long_a ago_o be_v it_o that_o all_o these_o sectary_n go_v against_o their_o conscience_n or_o wilful_o draw_v god_n word_n to_o a_o perverse_n sense_n he_o never_o speak_v let_v the_o innocent_a cast_v the_o first_o stone_n at_o the_o guilty_a true_o i_o suspect_v it_o in_o some_o yet_o can_v judge_v that_o all_o be_v conscious_a of_o so_o hideous_a a_o impiety_n 6._o the_o true_a reason_n therefore_o be_v these_o sectary_n give_v the_o true_a reason_n be_v give_v after_o the_o reject_v of_o god_n infallible_a church_n the_o oracle_n of_o truth_n will_n by_o no_o more_o than_o half_a a_o ey_fw-mi of_o human_a reason_n dive_v into_o the_o deep_a secret_n of_o god_n eternal_a wisdom_n obscure_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n and_o herein_o they_o neither_o show_v judgement_n nor_o learning_n with_o this_o purblind_a eye_n of_o weak_a reason_n they_o go_v to_o work_v they_o steer_v on_o their_o course_n they_o judge_v they_o determine_v they_o define_v they_o pronounce_v their_o fallible_a sentiment_n on_o these_o high_a mystery_n which_o never_o the_o less_o reason_n alone_o be_v uncapable_a to_o comprehend_v or_o master_n hence_o do_v why_o sectary_n vary_v as_o they_o do_v they_o vary_v as_o they_o do_v hence_o it_o be_v they_o weary_a themselves_o out_o with_o opposite_a frivolous_a interpretation_n of_o god_n word_n which_o be_v but_o one_o whilst_o they_o be_v so_o divide_v in_o their_o tenant_n hence_o it_o be_v that_o almost_o every_o year_n we_o have_v a_o new_a religion_n broach_v in_o england_n such_o a_o jumble_v we_o must_v expect_v such_o endless_a dissension_n among_o they_o and_o it_o be_v a_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n for_o their_o pride_n who_o true_o be_v not_o more_o but_o poor_a scholar_n yet_o disdain_v to_o learn_v of_o a_o good_a master_n that_o be_v willing_a to_o teach_v they_o all_o truth_n 7._o i_o call_v it_o a_o jumble_a for_o from_o scripture_n by_o reason_n of_o its_o les_fw-fr clear_a speak_v arise_v these_o dissension_n and_o though_o it_o be_v quote_v a_o thousand_o time_n say_v no_o scripture_n endless_a confusion_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n more_o now_o then_o it_o do_v sixteen_o hundred_o year_n ago_o and_o therefore_o can_v end_v they_o they_o next_o fall_v upon_o a_o doubtful_a confer_v one_o passage_n of_o the_o bible_n with_o another_o several_a version_n and_o language_n be_v examine_v much_o ado_n they_o make_v and_o all_o be_v to_o know_v what_o god_n speak_v in_o such_o text_n but_o without_o fruit_n for_o their_o difference_n be_v as_o high_a as_o ever_o and_o neither_o party_n gain_n or_o lose_v the_o victory_n since_o scripture_n alone_o nor_o the_o compare_v of_o text_n together_o be_v able_a to_o draw_v either_o side_n from_o their_o preconceive_a opinion_n after_o the_o confer_v of_o place_n they_o be_v hard_a at_o it_o with_o fallible_a explication_n when_o behold_v express_v scripture_n be_v cast_v away_o by_o these_o two_o combatant_n and_o now_o either_o the_o one_o must_v learn_v of_o the_o other_o what_o god_n speak_v in_o scripture_n by_o a_o human_a fallible_a explication_n which_o be_v no_o scripture_n or_o nothing_o be_v conclude_v uncertain_a arian_n and_o protestant_n equal_o uncertain_a who_o be_v then_o to_o be_v hold_v the_o master_n interpreter_n the_o arian_n or_o protestant_n neither_o and_o they_o have_v both_o reason_n for_o it_o for_o neither_o aught_o to_o yield_v in_o their_o own_o principle_n the_o quarrel_n therefore_o go_v on_o and_o be_v endless_a if_o after_o their_o fallible_a explication_n of_o scripture_n they_o proceed_v to_o inference_n this_o follow_v that_o follow_v etc._n etc._n all_o be_v plain_a sophistry_n for_o stand_v upon_o what_o unsteedy_a foundation_n haresy_n stand_v scripture_n vitiate_v with_o a_o fall_v explication_n can_v never_o support_v a_o true_a illation_n and_o upon_o such_o unsteedy_a foundation_n all_o haeresy_n stand_v scripture_n not_o understand_v be_v the_o ground_n doubtful_a collation_n of_o place_n fallible_a explication_n fall_v illation_n be_v the_o superstructure_n they_o have_v no_o more_o and_o thus_o you_o see_v how_o useless_a a_o book_n answer_v why_o scripture_n be_v useless_a in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o haeretick_n a_o question_n propose_v and_o answer_v of_o scripture_n be_v in_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o haeretick_n who_o neither_o can_v tell_v i_o so_o much_o as_o true_o much_o les_fw-fr infallible_o what_o god_n speak_v in_o these_o high_a controvert_v point_n of_o our_o christian_n faith_n 8._o but_o you_o will_v ask_v how_o then_o happen_v it_o that_o mr._n poole_n and_o protestant_n hit_v right_a in_o yield_v a_o assent_n to_o some_o catholic_n verity_n for_o example_n to_o a_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o one_o divine_a essence_n and_o contrary_a to_o arianism_n oversight_n protestant_n acknowledge_v a_o trinity_n by_o oversight_n profess_v the_o son_n to_o be_v consubstantial_a with_o his_o eternal_a father_n in_o one_o divine_a nature_n i_o answer_v they_o light_n upon_o these_o verity_n by_o a_o oversight_n or_o as_o i_o may_v say_v mere_o by_o chance_n by_o oversight_n for_o believe_v it_o have_v luter_n think_v well_o on_o it_o he_o may_v with_o more_o ease_n have_v deny_v these_o high_a mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n than_o the_o real_a change_n of_o bread_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n by_o chance_n for_o as_o by_o chance_n they_o steal_v chance_n or_o by_o chance_n a_o bible_n from_o the_o old_a catholic_n church_n so_o casual_o they_o take_v from_o she_o here_o and_o there_o as_o it_o please_v fancy_n somewhat_o of_o her_o ancient_a tradition_n also_o and_o upon_o this_o ground_n of_o tradition_n or_o the_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n they_o believe_v as_o it_o unaware_o engage_v in_o a_o belief_n they_o labour_v in_o vain_a to_o find_v scripture_n for_o it_o well_o as_o they_o can_v these_o sublime_a mystery_n be_v thus_o unaware_o engage_v in_o a_o belief_n they_o weary_a their_o head_n and_o wear_v out_o their_o bible_n to_o find_v express_v scripture_n for_o it_o which_o can_v be_v find_v because_o forsooth_o they_o will_v believe_v nothing_o upon_o tradition_n or_o the_o church_n infallible_a doctrine_n i_o say_v express_v scripture_n can_v be_v find_v that_o assert_n three_o distinct_a person_n in_o one_o divine_a essence_n or_o the_o word_n to_o be_v consubstantial_a with_o his_o eternal_a father_n therefore_o if_o they_o believe_v these_o verity_n they_o must_v ground_n their_o faith_n not_o upon_o sole_a scripture_n but_o on_o scripture_n explicate_v by_o that_o never_o err_a oracle_n of_o truth_n the_o catholic_n church_n or_o on_o the_o word_n of_o god_n not_o write_v which_o we_o call_v tradition_n you_o see_v arian_n sectary_n must_v own_v the_o church_n interpretation_n or_o become_v arian_n therefore_o how_o our_o protestant_n though_o in_o actu_fw-la signato_fw-la they_o seem_o reject_v tradition_n and_o the_o church_n interpretation_n upon_o scripture_n yet_o in_o actu_fw-la exercito_fw-la they_o own_o both_o and_o must_v necessary_o do_v so_o or_o become_v plain_a arian_n yet_o here_o they_o be_v pinch_v again_o for_o if_o they_o believe_v these_o mystery_n upon_o tradition_n or_o on_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o the_o church_n they_o be_v neither_o papist_n protestant_n in_o do_v so_o they_o be_v neither_o papist_n nor_o protestant_n nor_o protestant_n no_o papist_n for_o papist_n hold_v tradition_n and_o the_o church_n interpretation_n infallible_a no_o protestant_n for_o they_o profess_v to_o believe_v no_o more_o than_o god_n have_v express_v in_o his_o write_a word_n though_o now_o they_o must_v leave_v that_o hold_v and_o believe_v upon_o the_o catholic_n motive_n or_o renounce_v the_o faith_n of_o these_o article_n 9_o if_o mr._n poole_n pretend_v express_v scripture_n for_o these_o high_a verity_n of_o christian_a faith_n the_o sure_a way_n will_v be_v to_o produce_v it_o without_o remit_v i_o to_o other_o author_n or_o add_v his_o fallible_a gloss_n to_o god_n word_n for_o every_o arian_n know_v
well_o to_o distinguish_v between_o express_a scripture_n and_o the_o superaddition_n of_o man_n gloss_n fallible_a explication_n interpretation_n etc._n etc._n now_o if_o doctrine_n when_o sectary_n interpret_v scripture_n true_o they_o borrow_v light_n from_o church_n doctrine_n in_o this_o particular_a mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n mr._n poole_n interpret_n scripture_n true_o it_o be_v not_o god_n know_v his_o skill_n that_o do_v it_o no._n the_o reason_n be_v because_o be_v borrow_v the_o truth_n from_o the_o church_n interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o so_o fight_v against_o a_o arian_n with_o another_o weapon_n where_o by_o the_o way_n observe_v a_o strange_a proceed_n of_o protestant_n who_o when_o they_o dispute_v protestant_n a_o strange_a proceed_n of_o protestant_n out_o of_o scripture_n against_o a_o arian_n they_o will_v have_v the_o church_n interpretation_n good_a against_o he_o and_o his_o naught_o against_o they_o and_o when_o they_o dispute_v by_o scripture_n against_o catholic_n they_o will_v have_v the_o church_n interpretation_n forceles_a against_o themselves_o and_o their_o own_o wretched_a gloss_n powerful_o strong_a against_o the_o church_n be_v there_o ever_o such_o do_n in_o the_o world_n before_o these_o day_n 10._o but_o we_o have_v not_o yet_o say_v all_o concern_v scripture_n interpretation_n of_o scripture_n inference_n out_o of_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o because_o we_o be_v go_v so_o far_o pardon_v a_o further_a trouble_n of_o give_v you_o a_o few_o more_o note_n on_o this_o subject_a they_o will_v show_v you_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o upon_o what_o rotter_a principle_n the_o grand_a cheat_n of_o protestant_a religion_n stand_v for_o want_v of_o infallible_a teacher_n chap._n ii_o the_o fallacy_n of_o protestant_n concern_v scripture_n and_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v discover_v 1._o we_o have_v almost_o see_v enough_o how_o sectary_n either_o through_o malice_n ignorance_n or_o both_o make_v holy_a scripture_n a_o book_n that_o prove_v all_o religion_n like_o wittingtons_n bell_n it_o ring_n be_v out_o what_o fancy_n will_v for_o in_o scripture_n be_v arianism_n if_o we_o believe_v the_o arian_n here_o be_v protestanism_n if_o we_o believe_v protestant_n here_o be_v quakerism_n if_o we_o believe_v quaker_n here_o be_v what_o you_o will_v and_o it_o all_o heretic_n lay_v alike_o claim_v to_o scripture_n and_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o what_o you_o will_v not_o and_o it_o must_v be_v so_o whilst_o these_o man_n have_v a_o bible_n in_o their_o hand_n and_o construe_v all_o as_o they_o plea_n gloss_n as_o they_o plea_n interpret_v as_o they_o plea_n without_o limit_v or_o restraint_n it_o have_v be_v much_o better_o methinks_v if_o such_o sole-scripturists_a have_v never_o read_v scripture_n in_o these_o debate_v point_n of_o religion_n then_o after_o their_o read_n to_o see_v it_o make_v a_o book_n that_o only_o beget_v dissension_n so_o gross_o wrong_v and_o abuse_v it_o be_v yet_o no_o body_n be_v in_o fault_n pure_a scripture_n cry_v the_o arian_n pure_a scripture_n say_v the_o protestant_n nothing_o but_o scripture_n say_v the_o puritan_n and_o there_o be_v no_o redress_n for_o these_o evil_n all_o run_v on_o in_o their_o wilful_a misunderstanding_n scripture_n not_o one_o of_o they_o will_v yield_v to_o another_o nor_o which_o be_v worst_a of_o all_o and_o plain_a perverseness_n seek_v after_o a_o mean_n which_o be_v yet_o offer_v they_o to_o come_v to_o a_o right_a understanding_n of_o it_o 2._o true_o i_o have_v often_o wonder_v at_o our_o protestant_n man_n as_o they_o say_v of_o a_o more_o sober_a temper_n then_o your_o quaker_n and_o puritan_n be_v how_o it_o be_v possible_a scripture_n protestant_n plea_n for_o sole_a scripture_n after_o they_o know_v right_a well_o with_o innumerable_a holy_a father_n this_o plea_n or_o plead_v sole_a scripture_n to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o old_a trick_n of_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n that_o they_o can_v lessen_v themselves_o so_o much_o have_v they_o no_o other_o motive_n to_o retard_v they_o as_o to_o tread_v the_o footstep_n of_o such_o unworthy_a sectary_n and_o patronize_v a_o doctrine_n which_o can_v but_o breed_v dissension_n to_o the_o world_n end_n this_o it_o be_v sole_a scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n sole_a scripture_n speak_v plain_o in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o doctrine_n their_o false_a doctrine_n salvation_n on_o these_o two_o hinge_n chief_a protestant_a religion_n turn_v about_o and_o will_v do_v so_o until_o god_n at_o his_o good_a pleasure_n judge_v it_o time_n to_o turn_v it_o out_o of_o the_o world_n two_o cheat_n they_o be_v and_o great_a one_o as_o i_o shall_v demonstrate_v 3._o mr._n poole_n to_o mend_v the_o matter_n have_v suppose_v position_n mr._n pool_n three_o position_n that_o sole_a scripture_n be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n withal_o that_o there_o be_v enough_o say_v in_o scripture_n to_o end_v all_o controversy_n be_v man_n humble_a and_o studious_a etc._n etc._n seem_v in_o the_o 7._o chap._n of_o his_o nullity_n page_n 226._o to_o ground_n protestant_n religion_n on_o these_o three_o position_n the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n be_v and_o may_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 2._o that_o in_o the_o substantial_o of_o faith_n those_o book_n be_v uncorrupted_a 3._o that_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n may_v be_v sufficient_o understand_v in_o necessary_a point_n there_o be_v no_o arian_n but_o will_v most_o easy_o admit_v of_o these_o three_o proposition_n how_o then_o be_v they_o all_o true_a can_v they_o more_o establish_v protestant_a religion_n than_o arianism_n for_o a_o principle_n common_a to_o two_o advers._fw-la party_n can_v consider_v mere_o as_o a_o principle_n agree_v on_o by_o both_o more_o advantage_n the_o cause_n of_o one_o than_o the_o other_o if_o therefore_o a_o arian_n assent_n to_o these_o proposition_n they_o ground_n no_o more_o protestant_a religion_n than_o they_o do_v arianism_n proposition_n mr._n poole_n want_v a_o four_o proposition_n the_o truth_n be_v mr._n poole_n be_v high_o want_v in_o a_o four_o proposition_n which_o if_o prove_v will_v have_v do_v he_o more_o service_n than_o the_o other_o three_o and_o it_o shall_v have_v be_v to_o this_o sense_n see_v scripture_n speak_v plain_o all_o doctrine_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n certain_o it_o ought_v to_o teach_v protestancy_n plain_o i_o mean_v the_o particular_a tenant_n of_o protestant_n as_o these_o stand_n in_o opposition_n to_o catholic_n doctrine_n for_o if_o these_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n scripture_n have_v deliver_v they_o plain_o or_o if_o it_o have_v not_o do_v so_o we_o must_v conclude_v they_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n thus_o much_o premise_v we_o will_v show_v you_o in_o the_o ensue_a discourse_n how_o slippery_a and_o fallacious_a protestant_a doctrine_n be_v as_o it_o relate_v to_o scripture_n and_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n 4._o the_o first_o proposition_n no_o infallible_a church_n no_o scripture_n no_o infallible_a church_n no_o certainty_n of_o true_a scripture_n assurance_n of_o true_a and_o uncorrupt_a scripture_n to_o make_v my_o assertion_n good_a against_o protestant_n i_o will_v only_o propose_v this_o plain_a question_n from_o what_o man_n of_o credit_n and_o integrity_n have_v the_o first_o protestant_n their_o bible_n it_o bible_n from_o who_o have_v protestant_n there_o bible_n be_v not_o drop_v down_o from_o heaven_n into_o their_o pulpit_n with_o assurance_n of_o its_o purity_n or_o certainty_n that_o no_o change_n be_v make_v in_o it_o contrary_a to_o truth_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n be_v they_o jew_n infidel_n turk_n arian_n or_o grecian_a haeretik_n that_o give_v they_o scripture_n too_o perfidious_a to_o be_v trust_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o such_o consequence_n too_o unfaithsul_n either_o to_o preserve_v true_a scripture_n by_o they_o till_o luther_n quit_v his_o cell_n or_o then_o to_o put_v into_o his_o hand_n a_o bible_n uncorrupt_a in_o every_o point_n be_v they_o catholic_n let_v our_o adversary_n shame_v the_o devil_n and_o speak_v truth_n it_o be_v from_o they_o they_o have_v their_o bible_n together_o with_o the_o original_n but_o these_o papist_n these_o very_a catholic_n if_o we_o may_v credit_v scripture_n catholic_n in_o protestant_n principles_n can_v be_v rely_v on_o for_o scripture_n protestant_n have_v not_o only_o corrupt_v the_o write_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n but_o also_o through_o malice_n or_o ignorance_n have_v gross_o err_v a_o thousand_o year_n together_o and_o change_v the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n they_o have_v secret_o wrought_v into_o man_n heart_n a_o false_a belief_n of_o the_o chutches_n infallibility_n of_o a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n of_o transubstantiation_n invocation_n of_o saint_n and_o such_o like_a error_n admit_v of_o this_o supposition_n who_o be_v there_o among_o protestant_n that_o shall_v dare_v to_o look_v on_o his_o bible_n with_o good_a assurance_n of_o its_o scripture_n if_o
papist_n err_v in_o doctrine_n they_o may_v more_o easy_o have_v err_v in_o corrupt_a scripture_n purity_n or_o say_v it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o not_o corrupt_v by_o these_o err_a papist_n for_o these_o man_n who_o err_v in_o doctrine_n may_v as_o well_o have_v insinuate_v error_n into_o the_o book_n of_o scripture_n they_o have_v time_n enough_o to_o do_v it_o these_o man_n who_o change_v the_o ancient_a primitive_a faith_n of_o christianity_n may_v as_o perfidiouf_o have_v alter_v the_o bible_n they_o wrought_v secret_o a_o false_a belief_n into_o man_n heart_n concern_v a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n and_o why_o may_v they_o not_o as_o cunning_o have_v foist_v into_o scripture_n word_n and_o sentence_n suitable_a to_o such_o suppose_a error_n believe_v man_n it_o be_v easy_a to_o corrupt_v â_o dead_a book_n then_o to_o pervart_v innumerable_a live_n man_n it_o it_o be_v much_o easy_a to_o corrupt_v a_o dead_a book_n then_o to_o pervert_v so_o many_o live_a christian_n and_o bring_v they_o to_o a_o belief_n of_o so_o palpable_a hideous_a and_o erroneous_a novelty_n 5._o here_o then_o be_v my_o dilemma_n either_o the_o catholic_n dilemma_n a_o dilemma_n church_n have_v err_v when_o luther_n and_o protestant_n take_v the_o book_n of_o scripture_n from_o it_o or_o be_v pure_a in_o doctrine_n if_o pure_a most_o wicked_a be_v they_o for_o desert_v it_o if_o the_o church_n have_v then_o err_v or_o be_v corrupt_v in_o doctrine_n neither_o luther_n nor_o any_o protestant_n can_v have_v affurance_n that_o they_o read_v yet_o true_a scripture_n for_o all_o the_o certainty_n they_o can_v have_v of_o this_o book_n be_v miserable_o uncertain_a and_o at_o last_o come_v to_o this_o doubtful_a judgement_n it_o may_v be_v we_o have_v true_a scripture_n it_o may_v be_v and_o more_o likely_a not_o god_n only_o argument_n a_o unanswerable_a argument_n know_v all_o depend_v on_o a_o erroneous_a church_n that_o give_v we_o scripture_n which_o may_v as_o well_o in_o the_o vast_a compass_n of_o a_o thousand_o year_n have_v guilful_o change_v this_o our_o book_n from_o its_o ancient_a truth_n as_o cheat_v christianity_n into_o a_o false_a belief_n 6._o some_o may_v yet_o say_v all_o now_o agree_v as_o well_o catholic_n as_o protestant_n upon_o the_o verity_n and_o integrity_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o its_o needle_n for_o many_o book_n at_o least_o to_o question_v this_o point_n far_o i_o answer_v certainty_n protestant_n destroy_v the_o very_a ground_n of_o certainty_n catholic_n agree_v well_o because_o they_o take_v this_o book_n upon_o the_o warrant_n of_o christ_n never_o err_a church_n which_o can_v deceive_v they_o but_o protestant_n who_o ruin_n this_o ground_n of_o infallibility_n destroy_v with_o it_o all_o certainty_n of_o scripture_n in_o order_n to_o themselves_o their_o agreement_n therefore_o be_v no_o more_o but_o verbal_n whilst_o the_o principle_n which_o support_v a_o real_a one_o be_v shake_v a_o piece_n by_o they_o hence_o you_o see_v how_n mr._n poole_n speak_v at_o poole_n catholic_n confession_n no_o proof_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n to_o mr._n poole_n random_n when_o he_o tell_v we_o we_o he_o know_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o catholic_n confess_v and_o acknowledge_v so_o much_o i_o answer_v first_o their_o testimony_n with_o he_o be_v worth_a nothing_o for_o they_o have_v before_o he_o be_v bear_v lose_v all_o credit_n by_o introduce_v false_a doctrine_n into_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o why_o not_o say_v i_o as_o well_o a_o fall_v bible_n such_o doctrine_n he_o dare_v not_o admit_v of_o upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o catholic_n yet_o matter_n with_o no_o colour_n of_o reason_n do_v protestant_n admit_v of_o a_o bible_n upon_o the_o church_n testimony_n and_o reject_v her_o testimony_n in_o other_o matter_n he_o will_v kiss_v their_o hand_n and_o take_v from_o they_o such_o a_o bible_n as_o they_o be_v please_v to_o give_v he_o 2._o the_o testimony_n of_o catholic_n in_o this_o particular_a be_v with_o he_o fallible_a and_o may_v be_v fall_v but_o a_o testimony_n that_o may_v be_v fall_v can_v never_o give_v any_o assurance_n of_o true_a scripture_n which_o of_o necessity_n must_v be_v have_v or_o none_o can_v ground_v faith_n upon_o it_o 3._o mr._n poole_n be_v pitiful_o out_o in_o all_o he_o say_v for_o he_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v admit_v of_o scripture_n upon_o the_o confession_n or_o testimony_n of_o catholic_n why_o catholic_n hold_v scripture_n to_o be_v himself_o the_o church_n hold_v she_o own_o testimony_n infallible_a mr._n poole_n reject_v this_o therefore_o he_o make_v null_a the_o church_n testimony_n to_o himself_o the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o the_o infallible_a church_n of_o christ_n assure_v they_o it_o be_v god_n word_n this_o infallible_a testimony_n of_o the_o church_n mr._n poole_n utter_o disown_n and_o therefore_o he_o must_v of_o necessity_n by_o his_o own_o principle_n reject_v the_o catholic_n testimony_n 7._o other_o perhaps_o will_v say_v that_o god_n by_o special_a providence_n ever_o preserve_v scripture_n pure_a in_o all_o essential_o though_o he_o permit_v the_o church_n to_o deceive_v soul_n and_o lead_v they_o into_o error_n what_o a_o antiscriptural_a assertion_n have_v we_o here_o how_o be_v god_n affront_v what_o a_o lame_a and_o half_a providence_n be_v grant_v he_o providence_n sectary_n affront_n god_n by_o allow_v he_o no_o more_o than_o a_o half_a providence_n what_o no_o more_o but_o only_o to_o have_v care_n of_o a_o book_n to_o secure_v that_o from_o falsehood_n and_o in_o the_o interim_n to_o permit_v his_o own_o immaculate_a spouse_n his_o church_n which_o scripture_n shall_v instruct_v to_o play_v the_o harlot_n to_o deceive_v the_o world_n and_o err_v damnable_o o_o but_o what_o ever_o becom'_v of_o the_o church_n we_o must_v say_v our_o protestant_n have_v true_a and_o incorrupt_a scripture_n or_o no_o man_n can_v know_v what_o he_o be_v to_o believe_v i_o answer_v and_o we_o must_v either_o have_v a_o true_a and_o incorrupt_a church_n or_o none_o can_v be_v assure_v of_o true_a and_o incorrupt_a scripture_n christian_n it_o avail_n little_a to_o have_v verity_n shut_v up_o in_o a_o bible_n if_o the_o church_n err_v in_o deliver_v they_o to_o christian_n say_v i_o beseech_v you_o what_o do_v it_o avail_n christianity_n to_o have_v the_o pure_a letter_n of_o scripture_n close_v up_o in_o a_o bible_n and_o preserve_v from_o error_n if_o christian_n universal_o have_v be_v as_o it_o be_v deserted_n by_o almighty_a god_n and_o permit_v before_o protestant_n appear_v in_o the_o world_n to_o err_v in_o the_o very_a substantial_o of_o faith_n deliver_v in_o scripture_n yet_o it_o be_v so_o for_o confess_o not_o only_o those_o ancient_a condemn_a heretic_n as_o arian_n year_n protestant_n say_v all_o christian_n err_v for_o a_o thousand_o year_n pelagian_o donatist_n and_o the_o late_a grecian_n but_o also_o that_o great_a moral_a body_n of_o catholic_n if_o our_o protestant_n say_v true_a err_v in_o the_o very_a fundamental_o of_o faith_n since_o they_o teach_v as_o they_o do_v still_o their_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n gross_a error_n therefore_o reign_v among_o they_o whether_o we_o suppose_v the_o scripture_n pure_a or_o corrupt_v imagine_v then_o which_o be_v utter_o fall_v though_o heretic_n can_v prove_v it_o fall_v that_o our_o scripture_n have_v be_v corrupt_v they_o have_v then_o err_v because_o the_o book_n be_v falsify_v suppose_v again_o which_o be_v true_a that_o scripture_n be_v not_o corrupt_v you_o have_v still_o the_o same_o effect_n which_o be_v error_n in_o doctrine_n draw_v out_o of_o the_o very_a word_n of_o pure_a scripture_n the_o reason_n sure_o be_v because_o the_o church_n do_v not_o right_o understand_v scripture_n if_o so_o you_o see_v how_o scripture_n not_o understand_v as_o easy_o begett'_v error_n as_o scripture_n error_n equal_o prejudicial_a whether_o it_o be_v cause_v by_o a_o false_a church_n or_o falsify_v scripture_n if_o it_o be_v corrupt_v what_o then_o matter_n it_o in_o reference_n to_o poor_a beguile_v soul_n whether_o these_o great_a suppose_a error_n arise_v from_o scripture_n misunderstand_v or_o scripture_n corrupt_v error_n be_v error_n and_o alike_o prejudicial_a in_o both_o case_n i_o say_v therefore_o it_o be_v as_o great_a a_o evil_a to_o have_v a_o church_n that_o shall_v teach_v truth_n to_o deceive_v the_o world_n in_o bring_v in_o a_o deluge_n of_o error_n to_o the_o ruin_n of_o the_o ancient_a primitive_a faith_n as_o to_o have_v a_o bible_n corrupt_v for_o it_o be_v error_n and_o fall_v doctrine_n wrought_v in_o man_n heart_n that_o undo_v they_o now_o whether_o that_o be_v cause_v by_o a_o fall_v church_n or_o falsify_v fear_v what_o sectary_n ought_v to_o fear_v scripture_n it_o import_v little_a our_o protestant_n affirm_v the_o first_o and_o may_v
just_o fear_v the_o second_o god_n say_v they_o permit_v the_o church_n to_o err_v and_o he_o may_v say_v i_o as_o well_o have_v permit_v it_o to_o vitiat_fw-la scripture_n they_o say_v error_n insensible_o grow_v up_o in_o the_o church_n and_o i_o say_v they_o may_v as_o insensible_o have_v creep_v into_o scripture_n be_v it_o how_o you_o will_v from_o this_o old_a err_a church_n our_o new_a man_n suppose_v they_o receive_v pure_a sincere_a and_o uncorrupted_a scripture_n just_a as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n write_v it_o a_o mere_a impossibility_n for_o never_o great_a chimaera_n be_v fancy_v then_o to_o couple_v a_o fall_v church_n and_o true_a scripture_n together_o ââ_o true_a scripture_n and_o a_o universal_a fall_v err_a church_n 8._o some_o perhaps_o may_v say_v the_o arian_n donatist_n and_o other_o heretic_n have_v and_o have_v still_o true_a scripture_n though_o they_o err_v in_o doctrine_n i_o answer_v no_o god_n a_o mercy_n to_o they_o for_o if_o they_o have_v true_a scripture_n they_o may_v thank_v a_o unerring_a church_n that_o preserve_v it_o uncorrupt_a before_o heresy_n begin_v and_o after_o but_o grant_v i_o universal_o no_o assurance_n of_o true_a scripture_n if_o all_o err_v universal_o once_o as_o our_o protestant_n do_v that_o both_o heretic_n and_o catholic_n likewise_o universal_o err_v in_o doctrine_n most_o fundamental_a no_o man_n can_v now_o have_v assurance_n of_o true_a scripture_n o_o but_o the_o unanimous_a voice_n of_o all_o christian_n affirm_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o pure_a without_o corruption_n be_v a_o weighty_a moral_a proof_n for_o its_o integrity_n i_o answer_v none_o at_o all_o for_o if_o no_o society_n of_o christian_n unerrable_a and_o sound_a in_o doctrine_n have_v that_o book_n in_o custody_n the_o old_a papist_n may_v for_o aught_o protestant_n know_v have_v either_o by_o chance_n or_o fraud_n change_v word_n in_o scripture_n for_o example_n those_o word_n matt._n 26._o this_o be_v my_o body_n from_o what_o they_o once_o be_v this_o be_v a_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n and_o the_o cheat_n be_v to_o maintain_v their_o doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n but_o you_o will_v ask_v how_o can_v this_o be_v do_v i_o have_v tell_v you_o by_o malice_n or_o inadvertency_n but_o when_o can_v it_o be_v do_v i_o answer_v in_o that_o corruption_n can_v sectary_n say_v when_o papist_n first_o become_v idolater_n they_o may_v be_v inform_v concern_v these_o corruption_n very_a age_n year_n or_o month_n when_o these_o papist_n first_o begin_v to_o be_v idolater_n and_o worship_v a_o piece_n of_o bread_n for_o god_n then_o it_o may_v well_o be_v do_v name_v that_o age_n exact_o and_o you_o have_v all_o our_o new_a man_n answer_v this_o idolatry_n be_v bring_v in_o among_o we_o but_o they_o know_v not_o when_o it_o begin_v with_o such_o secrecy_n and_o silence_n this_o text_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o i_o say_v may_v have_v be_v corrupt_v with_o like_a secrecy_n though_o no_o man_n know_v when_o and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n observe_v a_o strange_a paradox_n of_o our_o protestant_n so_o notorious_a a_o know_a protestant_n a_o strange_a paradox_n of_o protestant_n novelty_n as_o this_o suppose_a idolatry_n be_v which_o may_v most_o just_o have_v strike_v terror_n into_o all_o man_n heart_n visible_o enter_v a_o church_n diffuse_v the_o whole_a world_n over_o yet_o none_o neither_o friend_n nor_o foe_n see_v it_o cry_v out_o against_o it_o or_o have_v leave_v it_o upon_o record_n and_o one_o single_a particle_n of_o scripture_n can_v be_v change_v but_o all_o must_v know_v it_o how_o can_v these_o two_o consist_v together_o you_o will_v say_v the_o primitive_a church_n be_v pure_a and_o so_o preserve_v true_a scripture_n how_o do_v our_o protestant_n know_v so_o much_o if_o it_o be_v fallible_a thus_o much_o of_o a_o argument_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la which_o i_o desire_v mr._n poole_n to_o answer_n not_o to_o mistake_v as_o he_o may_v do_v if_o he_o think_v my_o endeavour_n be_v to_o prove_v scripture_n corrupt_v in_o any_o substantial_a point_n no_o it_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o say_v it_o the_o argument_n therefore_o proceed_v from_o the_o protestant_n false_a supposition_n yet_o true_a with_o they_o that_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a and_o have_v err_v then_o i_o say_v none_o of_o they_o can_v have_v assurance_n of_o their_o bible_n or_o of_o true_a incorrupt_a scripture_n chap._n iii_o all_o substantial_o of_o faith_n be_v not_o plain_a in_o scripture_n without_o a_o infallible_a teacher_n 1._o here_o be_v my_o second_o proposition_n and_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o evident_a may_v he_o evidence_n of_o a_o know_a truth_n prevail_v with_o wilful_a man_n arian_n we_o see_v be_v against_o protestant_n in_o the_o essential_o of_o faith_n protestant_n against_o catholic_n and_o they_o against_o both_o all_o of_o they_o acknowledge_v scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n scripture_n sectary_n deny_v the_o plainess_n of_o scripture_n yet_o every_o one_o in_o practice_n deny_v the_o perspecuity_n and_o plainess_n of_o it_o for_o if_o plain_a why_o stand_v they_o at_o variance_n with_o one_o another_o about_o this_o plainess_n protestant_n doctrine_n be_v plain_o deliver_v in_o the_o 39_o article_n the_o arian_n doctrine_n be_v plain_o in_o their_o write_n the_o catholic_n doctrine_n most_o plain_o in_o every_o catechism_n no_o advers._fw-la party_n impugn'_v these_o doctrine_n for_o want_n of_o a_o plain_a expression_n but_o for_o want_v of_o truth_n it_o be_v quite_o contrary_a in_o scripture_n for_o he_o be_v a_o devil_n that_o shall_v mention_v the_o want_n of_o truth_n in_o god_n word_n yet_o you_o see_v most_o learned_a man_n vary_v about_o this_o clearness_n seek_v for_o it_o and_o can_v find_v it_o though_o i_o have_v partly_o give_v the_o reason_n hereof_o yet_o because_o the_o matter_n require_v it_o i_o shall_v now_o add_v a_o word_n more_o for_o a_o further_a explication_n 2._o all_o know_v that_o the_o objective_a verity_n write_v in_o holy_a different_a objective_a verity_n and_o the_o belief_n of_o they_o different_a scripture_n and_o the_o belief_n of_o those_o verity_n in_o a_o christian_n hart_n be_v to_o be_v distinguish_v by_o the_o first_o god_n speak_v to_o we_o by_o the_o second_o we_o yield_v belief_n to_o his_o word_n all_o know_v likewise_o that_o if_o my_o belief_n be_v true_a faith_n it_o must_v say_v exact_o and_o express_v that_o in_o ment_fw-la which_o god_n speak_v in_o scripture_n neither_o more_o nor_o les_fw-fr and_o this_o be_v save_v faith_n not_o the_o faith_n objective_a verity_n not_o save_v faith_n objective_a verity_n as_o it_o lie_v in_o scripture_n for_o if_o that_o can_v save_v we_o it_o will_v be_v enough_o to_o put_v a_o bible_n in_o one_o pocket_n and_o say_v here_o be_v the_o faith_n that_o save_v i_o though_o i_o know_v not_o what_o be_v in_o it_o or_o believe_v amiss_o thus_o much_o be_v clear_a without_o dispute_n in_o a_o orthodox_n and_o a_o arian_n whilst_o they_o turn_v to_o that_o passage_n of_o scripture_n and_o read_v i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o both_o of_o they_o have_v the_o same_o objective_a verity_n before_o their_o eye_n but_o the_o one_o only_o have_v the_o true_a belief_n of_o it_o in_o his_o hart._n observe_v now_o how_o dark_o scripture_n speak_v in_o this_o one_o great_a fundamental_a article_n and_o how_o easy_o we_o may_v swerve_v from_o obscurity_n one_o instance_n of_o scripture_n obscurity_n this_o reveal_v truth_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n for_o the_o word_n precise_o consider_v may_v either_o signify_v unity_n in_o affection_n as_o appear_v john_n 17._o v._o 21._o 22._o or_o a_o consubstantial_a unity_n and_o in_o this_o indifferency_n to_o several_a interpret_n sectary_n gloss_n the_o church_n interpret_n sense_n lie_v their_o obscurity_n to_o clear_a all_o and_o make_v they_o speak_v a_o full_a sense_n the_o arian_n superadd_v his_o gloss_n and_o draw_v out_o of_o the_o text_n as_o also_o from_o that_o other_o john_n 1._o 5._o 7._o no_o more_o but_o a_o unity_n in_o affection_n only_o which_o be_v haeresy_n the_o catholic_n interpretation_n teach_v a_o consubstantial_a unity_n or_o onenes_a in_o essence_n and_o it_o be_v true_a faith_n yet_o be_v no_o more_o formal_a express_v scripture_n then_o that_o of_o the_o arian_n for_o consubstantiality_n be_v not_o where_o formal_o read_v in_o scripture_n however_o it_o be_v believe_v and_o ground_n be_v our_o faith_n whilst_o the_o arian_n gloss_n be_v reject_v and_o why_o have_v it_o this_o preference_n think_v you_o why_o be_v it_o better_o than_o the_o arian_n no_o other_o reason_n can_v be_v render_v but_o a_o most_o true_a one_o viz._n that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o only_o full_o express_v the_o objective_a verity_n dark_o couch_v in_o scripture_n but_o also_o deliver_v this_o full_a and_o clear_a sense_n infallible_o for_o i_o say_v if_o the_o church_n interpretation_n
please_v if_o the_o church_n interpretation_n be_v as_o fallible_a as_o the_o arian_n christian_n may_v follow_v either_o as_o they_o please_v be_v as_o fallible_a as_o the_o arian_n christian_n may_v indifferent_o adhere_v to_o either_o yea_o and_o changeable_o now_o take_v one_o than_o the_o other_o as_o they_o please_v a_o great_a probability_n can_v balance_v nothing_o in_o this_o or_o the_o like_a particular_n as_o i_o shall_v large_o prove_v hereafter_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n by_o what_o be_v now_o say_v we_o may_v learn_v first_o though_o scripture_n in_o this_o and_o other_o mystery_n have_v its_o darkness_n yet_o by_o the_o good_a providence_n of_o almighty_n god_n we_o be_v provide_v of_o a_o sure_a interpreter_n which_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a for_o if_o every_o one_o interpret_v according_a to_o fancy_n haeresy_n be_v easy_o draw_v out_o of_o god_n word_n and_o if_o none_o interpret_v faithful_o the_o scripture_n still_o lie_v hide_v in_o obscurity_n which_o make_v it_o for_o that_o part_n a_o useless_a book_n to_o christian_n interpreter_n the_o necssity_n of_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n learn_v far_o that_o none_o can_v ever_o know_v exact_o by_o human_a industry_n or_o his_o sole_a ponder_v the_o bible_n let_v he_o be_v another_o solomon_n for_o wisdom_n what_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o these_o difficil_n mystery_n of_o our_o faith_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n to_o prove_v my_o assertion_n i_o will_v give_v you_o one_o instance_n 3._o suppose_v that_o two_o or_o three_o most_o learned_a heathen_a philosopher_n well_o verse_v in_o language_n and_o all_o human_a literature_n have_v this_o book_n of_o scripture_n put_v into_o their_o hand_n and_o be_v persuade_v by_o the_o extrinsical_a bible_n a_o instance_n of_o philosooher_n read_v the_o bible_n authority_n of_o all_o christian_n that_o god_n here_o speak_v his_o eternal_a verity_n withal_o that_o if_o they_o read_v the_o book_n and_o by_o their_o sole_a read_n without_o recours_fw-fr to_o any_o interpreter_n possess_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o they_o have_v true_a saving_n faith_n well_o they_o read_v it_o and_o with_o as_o much_o humility_n as_o any_o protestant_n can_v do_v yet_o follow_v if_o they_o ask_v of_o none_o but_o their_o own_o judgement_n error_n follow_v ask_v of_o none_o but_o their_o own_o judgement_n what_o it_o mean_v in_o the_o more_o difficil_n passage_n tell_v i_o i_o beseech_v you_o and_o here_o i_o appeal_v to_o the_o moderate_a judgement_n of_o every_o christian_a whether_o catholic_n arian_n or_o protestant_n what_o faith_n or_o religion_n will_v these_o philosopher_n produce_v out_o of_o sole_a scripture_n solely_n read_v and_o ponder_v by_o they_o my_o thought_n be_v it_o be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o thought_n that_o the_o result_n of_o their_o read_n will_v end_v in_o coin_v a_o religion_n different_a from_o all_o other_o now_o in_o christendom_n i_o be_o very_o confident_a they_o will_v never_o pitch_v upon_o protestancy_n no_o nor_o endless_a their_o doubt_n will_v be_v endless_a upon_o any_o sect_n now_o extant_a alas_o they_o will_v doubt_v and_o stagger_v at_o every_o hard_a passage_n in_o scripture_n yea_o and_o by_o the_o very_a instinct_n of_o nature_n if_o they_o own_a scripture_n for_o god_n book_n will_v humble_o supplicate_v those_o who_o give_v they_o the_o book_n to_o lay_v open_a the_o mystery_n therein_o and_o assure_v they_o of_o its_o meaning_n in_o a_o hundred_o place_n yet_o none_o can_v do_v this_o good_a office_n for_o they_o but_o one_o only_a society_n of_o christian_n that_o lay_v claim_v to_o infallibility_n and_o prove_v it_o demonstrative_o if_o faith_n be_v in_o the_o world_n 4._o be_v it_o how_o you_o will_v thus_o much_o i_o conclude_v our_o protestant_n be_v in_o the_o very_a same_o case_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n as_o the_o philosopher_n be_v with_o interpreter_n sectary_n be_v in_o the_o very_a same_o case_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n no_o interpreter_n these_o make_v scripture_n speak_v what_o they_o think_v it_o speak_v right_a or_o wrong_v and_o protestant_n do_v the_o like_a whilst_o they_o give_v their_o sentiment_n on_o mystery_n above_o their_o reach_n without_o a_o infallible_a teacher_n pray_v you_o reflect_v have_v christ_n jesus_n and_o his_o apostle_n never_o teach_v any_o thing_n by_o word_n of_o mouth_n but_o only_o throw_v the_o book_n of_o scripture_n among_o christian_n interpreter_n strange_a confusion_n have_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n give_v to_o christian_n a_o bible_n without_o a_o interpreter_n when_o they_o leave_v the_o world_n and_o command_v they_o to_o make_v that_o use_n of_o it_o which_o every_o private_a judgement_n think_v best_a what_o a_o religion_n think_v you_o shall_v we_o have_v have_v at_o this_o day_n in_o christianity_n any_o or_o none_o or_o a_o thousand_o different_a one_o as_o good_a as_o none_o god_n only_o know_v i_o do_v not_o yet_o will_v say_v this_o be_v out_o very_o present_a condition_n if_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n be_v reject_v we_o may_v wrangle_v to_o the_o union_n dissension_n will_v have_v follow_v without_o hope_n of_o union_n world_n end_n but_o agree_v in_o nothing_o dispute_v but_o conclude_v nothing_o we_o may_v raise_v difficulty_n one_o against_o another_o but_o allay_v none_o and_o thus_o the_o contest_v must_v run_v on_o without_o redress_n or_o remedy_n all_o appellation_n here_o to_o antiquity_n to_o council_n father_n protestant_n appellation_n to_o antiquity_n remedy_n nothing_o be_v fallible_a with_o protestant_n and_o tradition_n help_n be_v nothing_o because_o they_o be_v fallible_a and_o be_v they_o otherwise_o we_o vary_v as_o high_o about_o the_o sentiment_n of_o father_n in_o every_o debate_v point_n of_o controversy_n as_o we_o do_v about_o scripture_n itself_o 5._o we_o see_v three_o how_o utter_o impossible_a it_o be_v for_o a_o protestant_n to_o draw_v from_o the_o objective_a verity_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n the_o true_a sense_n and_o meaning_n of_o god_n word_n in_o any_o controvert_v point_n of_o religion_n the_o reason_n be_v scripture_n never_o speak_v plain_o and_o express_o the_o protestant_n sense_n in_o these_o debate_v controversy_n observe_v it_o in_o all_o and_o you_o will_v find_v it_o so_o what_o do_v they_o therefore_o to_o help_v themselves_o they_o first_o reject_v a_o infallible_a interpreter_n and_o next_o as_o the_o arian_n do_v superadd_a their_o own_o fallible_a gloss_n to_o make_v speak_v sectary_n make_v scripture_n to_o speak_v what_o they_o will_v have_v it_o say_v not_o what_o god_n speak_v scripture_n speak_v not_o what_o it_o true_o say_v but_o what_o they_o will_v have_v it_o say_v and_o thus_o they_o think_v scripture_n clear_v and_o their_o work_n do_v take_v here_o one_o instance_n for_o many_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n have_v be_v at_o variance_n a_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o about_o these_o sacred_a word_n matt._n 26._o this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o different_a sense_n draw_v from_o they_o be_v contradictory_n and_o therefore_o can_v be_v true_a this_o be_v my_o body_n really_n say_v the_o catholic_n and_o here_o be_v my_o internal_a faith_n no_o say_v the_o protestant_n this_o be_v my_o body_n figurative_o or_o a_o sign_n of_o my_o body_n and_o this_o be_v my_o belief_n manner_n arian_n and_o protestant_n vitiate_v scripture_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n mark_v i_o beseech_v just_o as_o the_o arian_n say_v i_o and_o my_o father_n be_v one_o and_o superadd_v his_o gloss_n of_o one_o in_o affection_n so_o the_o protestant_n here_o vitiate_v the_o text_n by_o his_o gloss_n and_o add_v to_o scripture_n what_o god_n never_o speak_v a_o trope_n a_o figure_n a_o sign_n and_o i_o know_v not_o what_o and_o after_o this_o injury_n do_v to_o the_o word_n he_o believe_v not_o for_o god_n express_v word_n but_o for_o his_o own_o far-fetched_a and_o dear_a buy_v interpretation_n which_o be_v no_o more_o scripture_n then_o if_o he_o shall_v tell_v i_o that_o example_n a_o example_n that_o text_n of_o st._n matthew_n cap._n 3._o verse_n 17._o this_o be_v my_o belove_a son_n be_v to_o be_v forcible_o strip_v of_o its_o verity_n and_o misinterpret_v thus_o this_o be_v only_o a_o sign_n or_o figure_n of_o my_o beloved_n son_n no_o more_o do_v scripture_n through_o the_o whole_a gospel_n warrant_v in_o the_o least_o a_o improperty_n of_o speech_n in_o the_o one_o text_n now_o cite_v then_o in_o the_o other_o i_o little_o regard_v the_o protestant_a dscourse_n and_o gloss_n contrary_a to_o this_o mystery_n of_o faith_n let_v we_o have_v plain_a scripture_n much_o les_fw-fr their_o inference_n which_o be_v all_o human_a and_o fallible_a o_o but_o to_o say_v that_o christ_n body_n be_v real_o present_a under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n yea_o and_o in_o a_o thousand_o place_n at_o once_o be_v a_o vnintelligible_a mystery_n why_o more_o unintelligible_a than_o a_o trinity_n of_o person_n in_o one_o essence_n
or_o the_o unchangeable_a divine_a word_n seem_o change_v when_o he_o take_v flesh_n upon_o he_o and_o become_v a_o infant_n these_o be_v high_a mystery_n and_o great_a difficulty_n if_o human_a reason_n may_v be_v judge_n and_o give_v a_o final_a sentence_n but_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o once_o for_o all_o that_o man_n shall_v never_o be_v a_o proficient_a in_o christ_n school_n that_o will_v undertake_v to_o conquer_v discourse_n high_a mystery_n not_o to_o be_v pry_v into_o by_o our_o weak_a discourse_n as_o i_o may_v say_v the_o great_a difficulty_n of_o faith_n by_o examine_v the_o high_a mystery_n of_o it_o if_o he_o go_v so_o to_o work_v he_o be_v cast_v into_o a_o labyrinth_n and_o can_v find_v no_o exit_fw-la all_o therefore_o he_o be_v to_o do_v be_v to_o learn_v and_o examine_v whether_o god_n the_o infallible_a truth_n have_v reveal_v and_o teach_v we_o these_o mystery_n by_o any_o unerring_a oracle_n next_o faith_n how_o we_o be_v to_o submit_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n he_o be_v to_o captivate_v his_o understanding_n and_o humble_o submit_v to_o he_o without_o further_a search_n who_o neither_o can_v be_v deceive_v nor_o will_v deceive_v we_o but_o enough_o of_o this_o digression_n 6._o we_o see_v three_o though_o protestant_n anathematise_v it_o the_o whole_a religion_n of_o protestant_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o addition_n to_o scripture_n or_o subtraction_n from_o it_o all_o that_o add_v to_o god_n word_n or_o take_v from_o it_o yet_o i_o will_v tell_v you_o their_o whole_a religion_n as_o protestancy_n be_v either_o make_v up_o of_o no_o scripture_n at_o all_o or_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o mere_a addition_n of_o their_o own_o gloss_n to_o scripture_n or_o final_o a_o wilful_a subtraction_n from_o it_o to_o the_o word_n now_o cite_v they_o add_v a_o sign_n a_o figure_n and_o god_n know_v what_o more_o be_v this_o scripture_n when_o st._n james_n 2._o cap._n 24._o dogmatical_o teach_v that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o work_n and_o not_o by_o faith_n only_o our_o new_a man_n tell_v we_o the_o apostle_n speak_v not_o of_o justification_n before_o god_n but_o before_o men._n be_v this_o scripture_n when_o st._n paul_n rom._n 2._o 6._o plain_o affirm's_n that_o god_n will_v render_v to_o every_o one_o according_a to_o his_o work_n calvin_n and_o beza_n assure_v we_o he_o will_v do_v so_o indeed_o if_o there_o be_v any_o such_o but_o the_o mischief_n be_v none_o can_v do_v a_o good_a work_n before_o god_n be_v this_o scripture_n no._n these_o and_o such_o like_a interpretation_n our_o adversary_n do_v not_o own_o for_o scripture_n yet_o they_o must_v own_v they_o as_o tenant_n essential_a to_o their_o religion_n ergo_fw-la i_o say_v mere_a fallible_a gloss_n which_o be_v no_o scripture_n make_v up_o protestant_n religion_n as_o protestancy_n and_o hence_o scripture_n doctrine_n of_o the_o 39_o article_n as_o protestancy_n not_o scripture_n it_o be_v that_o their_o doctrine_n deliver_v in_o the_o 39_o article_n stand_v there_o with_o all_o clearness_n that_o be_v you_o know_v what_o they_o say_v but_o when_o it_o be_v bring_v to_o the_o test_n and_o be_v examine_v by_o scripture_n you_o may_v seek_v long_o before_o you_o find_v a_o word_n like_o it_o as_o it_o be_v protestancy_n 7._o you_o see_v last_o that_o the_o interpretation_n which_o protestant_n give_v to_o those_o text_n of_o scripture_n cite_v by_o doctrine_n how_o sectary_n abuse_v scripture_n cite_v for_o catholic_n doctrine_n catholic_n for_o their_o doctrine_n be_v mere_a human_a extrascriptural_a and_o anti-scriptural_a gloss_n of_o their_o own_o fancy_n we_o cite_v the_o apostle_n 2._o thess_n 2._o 15._o for_o tradition_n beside_o the_o write_a word_n for_o the_o real_a presence_n this_o be_v my_o body_n matt._n 26._o for_o justification_n by_o good_a work_n that_o of_o st._n james_n 2._o 14._o for_o a_o sacrifice_n to_o be_v continue_v to_o the_o world_n end_n malac._n 1._o 11._o for_o extream-vnction_n james_n the_o 5._o 14._o for_o the_o verity_n and_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n that_o of_o st._n paul_n 1_o timot._fw-la 3._o 15._o and_o what_o for_o god_n sake_n have_v we_o from_o our_o new_a man_n to_o these_o plain_a passage_n speak_v popery_n but_o a_o return_n of_o mere_a mock-fool_n gloss_n hatch_v in_o their_o own_o head_n which_o have_v so_o little_a shadow_n of_o scripture_n in_o they_o that_o with_o force_n they_o drive_v the_o very_a life_n and_o sense_n out_o of_o god_n word_n and_o they_o proceed_v so_o unlucky_o clear_a sectary_n make_v scripture_n clear_v where_o it_o be_v obscure_a and_o obscure_v where_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o where_o scripture_n be_v clear_a they_o make_v it_o obscure_a and_o where_o it_o be_v obscure_a they_o will_v seem_v to_o make_v it_o clear_v by_o superaded_a gloss_n what_o can_v be_v more_o clear_a for_o our_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n than_o those_o word_n of_o st._n luke_n 22._o v._o 19_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la quod_fw-la pro_fw-la vobis_fw-la datur_fw-la this_o be_v my_o body_n which_o be_v give_v for_o you_o yet_o with_o their_o gloss_n they_o so_o torture_v the_o text_n that_o every_o particle_n in_o it_o suffer_v violence_n in_o so_o much_o that_o jacobus_n sectary_n scripture_n torture_v by_o sectary_n gordonus_n observe_v in_o his_o first_o tome_n of_o controversy_n print_a anno_o 1612._o controversia_fw-la prima_fw-la de_fw-la verbo_fw-la dei_fw-la cap._n 26._o n._n 11._o pag._n 121._o no_o few_o than_o two_o hundred_o different_a gloss_n have_v be_v add_v by_o protestant_n to_o obscure_a the_o plain_a sense_n of_o christ_n own_o word_n some_o as_o this_o author_n note_n abuse_n and_o misinterpret_v the_o pronoun_n hoc_fw-la other_o the_o verb_n est_fw-fr other_o corpus_n other_o meum_fw-la other_o the_o relative_n quod_fw-la other_o the_o proposition_n pro_fw-la other_o the_o pronoune_n vobis_fw-la other_o final_o the_o verb_n datur_fw-la yet_o after_o all_o this_o pervert_n and_o woeful_a mangle_n of_o god_n word_n we_o must_v believe_v that_o our_o protestant_n speak_v forsooth_o scripture_n and_o nothing_o but_o clear_a scripture_n on_o the_o contrary_a side_n we_o have_v see_v more_o than_o enough_o in_o the_o beginning_n of_o this_o chapter_n how_o vain_o they_o cry_v up_o the_o clarity_n of_o scripture_n in_o mystery_n most_o difficil_n not_o full_o express_v in_o god_n word_n what_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n can_v say_v that_o any_o scripture_n through_o the_o whole_a testament_n speak_v half_a so_o clear_o of_o the_o consubstantiality_n of_o the_o eternal_a son_n with_o his_o eternal_a father_n as_o the_o text_n now_o quote_v be_v for_o the_o real_a presence_n yet_o those_o scripture_n must_v be_v clear_a for_o that_o christian_a verity_n and_o this_o obscure_a for_o the_o real_a presence_n 8._o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n methinks_v it_o high_o import_v when_o we_o deal_v with_o our_o adversary_n concern_v scripture_n how_o to_o proceed_v with_o sectary_n when_o they_o explicate_v scripture_n their_o explication_n of_o scripture_n that_o we_o do_v not_o so_o much_o at_o least_o in_o the_o first_o place_n make_v it_o our_o work_n positive_o to_o disprove_v they_o by_o other_o text_n and_o authority_n which_o our_o writer_n usual_o do_v and_o laudable_o as_o to_o put_v they_o to_o the_o proof_n of_o their_o wild_a gloss_n which_o seem_v most_o reasonable_a for_o asserenti_fw-la incumbit_fw-la probatio_fw-la when_o therefore_o they_o go_v about_o to_o obscure_a scripture_n where_o it_o be_v plain_a with_o new_a interpretation_n the_o world_n never_o hear_v of_o bid_v they_o not_o only_o interpret_v but_o prove_v their_o interpretation_n for_o example_n that_o the_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n now_o cite_v must_v be_v alienate_v from_o their_o genuine_a sense_n and_o torture_v as_o they_o be_v by_o protestant_n proceed_v thus_o with_o they_o put_v they_o to_o the_o proof_n and_o you_o will_v soon_o see_v they_o at_o a_o nonplus_n chap._n iu._n sole_a scripture_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n can_v be_v no_o rule_n of_o faith_n protestant_n have_v no_o scripture_n for_o their_o religion_n as_o it_o be_v protestancy_n 1._o my_o first_o proposition_n draw_n proof_n enough_o from_o the_o precedent_a chapter_n for_o if_o scripture_n be_v obscure_a and_o speak_v not_o clear_o all_o verity_n reveal_v in_o the_o book_n it_o can_v regulate_v faith_n without_o a_o interpreter_n but_o it_o be_v more_o than_o evident_a that_o it_o speak_v not_o clear_o many_o verity_n concern_v the_o high_a mystery_n of_o religion_n therefore_o it_o can_v regulate_v faith_n relate_v to_o these_o mystery_n without_o a_o interpreter_n i_o prove_v the_o minor_n scripture_n which_o sole_o consider_v according_a to_o the_o exterior_a letter_n both_o may_v error_n the_o bare_a letter_n of_o scripture_n may_v and_o do_v easy_o beget_v error_n and_o do_v as_o easy_o beget_v error_n as_o truth_n in_o the_o intellectual_a power_n of_o man_n speak_v
not_o clear_o whence_o it_o be_v that_o st._n austin_n tom._n 10._o serm._n 70._o de_fw-fr tempore_fw-la style_n heretic_n infaelice_n unhappy_a who_o only_o look_v on_o the_o sound_n of_o word_n in_o scripture_n which_o be_v say_v he_o like_o a_o body_n without_o a_o soul_n but_o it_o be_v as_o clear_v that_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o scripture_n without_o a_o sure_a interpreter_n beget_n error_n and_o therefore_o a_o arian_n because_o he_o regulate_v his_o belief_n by_o the_o mere_a sound_n of_o that_o text_n john_n 14._o my_o father_n be_v great_a than_o i_o err_v damnable_o and_o the_o like_o all_o other_o condemn_v heretic_n have_v do_v in_o their_o respective_a error_n draw_v as_o they_o think_v from_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n speak_v not_o clear_o in_o this_o one_o most_o high_a mystery_n and_o therefore_o can_v regulate_v faith_n without_o a_o interpreter_n now_o further_o if_o this_o interpreter_n faith_n a_o fallible_a interpreter_n as_o useless_a as_o no_o interpreter_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n be_v fallible_a he_o be_v as_o useless_a to_o christian_n for_o the_o regulate_v of_o faith_n as_o if_o he_o be_v no_o interpreter_n for_o he_o may_v deceive_v they_o and_o if_o we_o be_v deceive_v it_o much_o import_v not_o whether_o the_o error_n proceed_v from_o obscure_a scripture_n misunderstand_v or_o misinterpret_v by_o a_o other_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n therefore_o be_v necessary_a in_o this_o weighty_a matter_n that_o assure_v we_o of_o what_o god_n have_v speak_v of_o such_o and_o such_o particular_a mystery_n and_o here_o we_o rest_v secure_o and_o have_v a_o most_o certain_a rule_n which_o sectary_n want_v 2._o again_o i_o argue_v if_o sole_a scripture_n be_v a_o clear_a rule_n of_o faith_n it_o can_v regulate_v without_o gloss_n yea_o and_o without_o a_o preacher_n too_o why_o therefore_o do_v our_o protestant_n charge_v that_o one_o text_n above_o cite_v this_o be_v my_o body_n the_o like_a we_o may_v say_v of_o many_o other_o with_o so_o unnecessary_a a_o burden_n of_o their_o interpretation_n be_v plain_o be_v sectary_n afraid_a that_o christ_n speak_v too_o plain_o they_o afraid_a that_o christ_n speak_v too_o plain_o and_o therefore_o add_v their_o gloss_n to_o obscure_a his_o word_n none_o will_v own_v such_o a_o impiety_n then_o i_o say_v they_o be_v add_v to_o clear_a a_o obscure_a passage_n consequent_o they_o clear_a they_o gloss_n to_o make_v scripture_n clear_a must_v acknowledge_v a_o obscurity_n in_o this_o scripture_n before_o their_o tamper_n with_o the_o text_n and_o gloss_v it_o well_o but_o when_o they_o have_v gloss_v all_o they_o can_v i_o ask_v what_o be_v it_o that_o regulate_v their_o faith_n in_o this_o particular_a christ_n their_o gloss_n regulate_v their_o faith_n not_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n do_v christ_n word_n as_o he_o speak_v they_o or_o as_o they_o interpret_v regulate_v here_o not_o the_o first_o for_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o christ_n own_o word_n without_o the_o protestant_a gloss_n can_v never_o beget_v in_o any_o understanding_n that_o determinate_a belief_n which_o these_o man_n have_v of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n for_o the_o word_n of_o christ_n say_v plain_o this_o be_v my_o body_n that_o be_v give_v for_o you_o which_o ponder_v to_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n can_v never_o yield_v this_o force_v repugnant_a and_o farfetched_a sense_n this_o be_v a_o sign_n or_o a_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n yet_o such_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o protestant_n draw_v from_o this_o sentence_n by_o their_o interpretation_n wherefore_o we_o must_v conclude_v that_o they_o believe_v not_o for_o christ_n sole_a word_n but_o for_o their_o additional_a gloss_n which_o be_v to_o say_v in_o plain_a english_a their_o overplus_n of_o gloss_n regulate_v faith_n not_o god_n express_v and_o most_o significant_a word_n some_o will_v say_v this_o passage_n now_o cite_v must_v be_v interpret_v as_o they_o will_v have_v it_o because_o scripture_n in_o other_o place_n seem_v to_o favour_v their_o interpretation_n i_o answer_v candid_o let_v they_o gloss_n they_o can_v cite_v one_o text_n out_o of_o scripture_n in_o favour_n of_o their_o gloss_n but_o produce_v so_o much_o as_o one_o plain_a text_n out_o of_o the_o whole_a bible_n for_o the_o alienate_n of_o this_o sentence_n from_o its_o proper_a sense_n without_o gloss_n which_o be_v no_o scripture_n and_o i_o will_v proclaim_v they_o conqueror_n here_o be_v plain_a deal_n but_o remember_v well_o i_o call_v for_o scripture_n only_o 3._o i_o tell_v you_o just_a now_o that_o as_o these_o gloss_n be_v useless_a if_o sole_a scripture_n be_v a_o clear_a rule_n of_o faith_n so_o be_v preacher_n also_o yea_o and_o all_o the_o large_a commentary_n which_o luther_n and_o calvin_n have_v write_v on_o scripture_n why_o god_n word_n speak_v clear_o without_o a_o preacher_n teacher_n if_o scripture_n be_v clear_a there_o be_v no_o need_n of_o teacher_n away_o therefore_o with_o preach_v and_o commentary_n it_o be_v enough_o to_o thrust_v a_o bible_n into_o man_n hand_n and_o bid_v they_o read_v it_o for_o there_o be_v true_a doctrine_n and_o plain_a doctrine_n but_o more_o be_v not_o require_v to_o regulate_v faith_n than_o reason_n the_o reason_n truth_n and_o clarity_n ergo_fw-la minister_n may_v hereafter_o well_o spare_v their_o labour_n of_o preach_v and_o it_o be_v better_a they_o do_v so_o then_o to_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o pervert_v god_n true_a word_n by_o their_o fallible_a talk_v 4._o to_o conclude_v this_o matter_n we_o have_v already_o ample_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o scripture_n which_o regulate_v faith_n buth_n the_o exact_a and_o true_a sense_n of_o it_o ne_fw-la putemus_fw-la say_v st._n hierom_n in_o cap._n 1._o ad_fw-la galat._n v._n 11._o let_v we_o not_o think_v that_o the_o gospel_n lie_v in_o the_o word_n of_o scripture_n but_o in_o their_o sense_n non_fw-fr in_o superficie_fw-la sed_fw-la in_o medullâ_fw-la not_o in_o the_o outside_n but_o in_o the_o inward_a pith_n and_o marrow_n of_o it_o none_o in_o sermonum_fw-la foliis_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o no_o protestant_n with_o so_o much_o as_o any_o colour_n of_o reason_n can_v lay_v a_o more_o just_a claim_n to_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n when_o he_o and_o the_o church_n stand_v at_o variance_n be_v protestant_n as_o uncertain_a of_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o arian_n be_v then_o a_o arian_n a_o pelagian_a or_o a_o donatist_n can_v do_v when_o they_o draw_v scripture_n to_o their_o sense_n all_o of_o they_o be_v alike_o guide_v by_o mere_a guess_n and_o first_o read_v next_o think_v than_o judge_n and_o last_o believe_v believe_v what_o what_o their_o private_a judgement_n tell_v we_o they_o and_o here_o be_v the_o last_o rule_n of_o their_o faith_n religion_n all_o of_o they_o guide_v by_o guess_n three_o part_n of_o protestant_a religion_n whereof_o more_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n in_o the_o interim_n you_o may_v resolve_v a_o protestant_n belief_n into_o these_o three_o break_a shred_n or_o fragment_n the_o first_o part_n be_v that_o wherein_o they_o hold_v with_o catholic_n and_o here_o they_o have_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n interpret_v yet_o no_o true_a faith_n for_o want_v of_o submission_n in_o other_o point_n the_o other_o part_n be_v that_o wherein_o they_o agree_v with_o ancient_a condemn_a heretic_n and_o herein_o they_o have_v neither_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n nor_o true_a faith_n the_o last_o part_n be_v proper_a to_o themselves_o as_o protestant_a and_o here_o they_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o letter_n or_o a_o word_n of_o scripture_n for_o they_o much_o les_fw-fr any_o true_a sense_n or_o faith_n ground_v on_o scripture_n and_o 5._o upon_o this_o occasion_n i_o come_v to_o mind_n mr._n poole_n proposition_n the_o want_n of_o mr._n pool_n four_o proposition_n of_o the_o want_n of_o his_o four_o proposition_n viz._n that_o scripture_n speak_v plain_o the_o particular_a tenant_n of_o protestant_a religion_n as_o protestanism_n and_o must_v tell_v he_o he_o shall_v never_o find_v in_o the_o whole_a bible_n so_o much_o as_o one_o article_n of_o protestant_a religion_n as_o it_o stand_v in_o opposition_n to_o catholic_n doctrine_n ground_v on_o scripture_n and_o because_o the_o man_n may_v not_o perhaps_o like_a of_o too_o great_a a_o burden_n i_o will_v only_o urge_v he_o to_o prove_v these_o three_o protestant_a assertion_n 1._o that_o there_o be_v two_o sacrament_n prove_v three_o protestant_a assertion_n for_o mr._n poole_n to_o prove_v and_o no_o more_o but_o let_v he_o not_o think_v to_o turn_v i_o of_o as_o he_o do_v the_o captain_n with_o mere_a empty_a and_o insignificant_a word_n appendix_n page_n 34._o scripture_n be_v plain_a enough_o in_o describe_v the_o nature_n of_o two_o sacrament_n he_o shall_v have_v add_v and_o it_o be_v plain_a in_o
natural_a principle_n yet_o we_o see_v these_o new_a sectary_n not_o only_o high_o at_o variance_n about_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o also_o god_n church_n which_o have_v eye_n as_o well_o as_o they_o as_o high_o opposite_a opposite_a to_o they_o however_o the_o church_n must_v be_v count_v purblind_a and_o they_o only_o sharp-sighted_a though_o the_o light_n they_o fancy_v may_v licence_v any_o haeretick_n to_o say_v what_o he_o please_v for_o as_o they_o set_v light_n light_o set_v up_o against_o light_n up_o their_o light_n so_o a_o arian_n may_v set_v up_o he_o against_o it_o and_o swear_v it_o be_v the_o clear_a of_o the_o two_o for_o his_o sense_n and_o who_o can_v gainsay_v he_o 8._o from_o this_o discourse_n it_o follow_v that_o the_o assurance_n of_o reason_n whereof_o our_o protestant_n talk_v so_o much_o be_v a_o most_o insipid_a word_n for_o it_o do_v not_o signify_v a_o formal_a discourse_n for_o want_n of_o a_o know_a and_o receive_v principle_n nor_o that_o quick_a immediate_a light_n âf_o all_o foolery_n the_o worst_a now_o refute_v i_o will_v go_v far_o and_o say_v scripture_n no_o christian_a by_o reason_n only_o can_v dive_v into_o the_o mystery_n of_o scripture_n that_o no_o christian_a by_o the_o force_n of_o reason_n only_o when_o he_o read_v these_o difficil_n mystery_n in_o scripture_n can_v so_o much_o as_o once_o fasten_v a_o prudent_a certain_a judgement_n either_o upon_o the_o thing_n reveal_v or_o the_o ratio_fw-la credendi_fw-la not_o upon_o the_o thing_n reveal_v for_o that_o transcend_v the_o capacity_n of_o reason_n nor_o upon_o the_o motive_n why_o he_o believe_v for_o by_o the_o force_n of_o reason_n only_o he_o can_v know_v exact_o guess_v he_o may_v and_o miss_v that_o god_n speak_v express_o in_o such_o a_o sense_n therefore_o if_o upon_o his_o own_o half-sighted_n and_o too_o dare_a conceit_n he_o will_v proceed_v to_o a_o settle_a judgement_n and_o say_v positive_o what_o god_n speak_v he_o tell_v the_o story_n before_o he_o know_v it_o and_o consequent_o high_o offend_v against_o reason_n for_o reason_n dictate_v that_o we_o must_v first_o learn_v before_o we_o undertake_v to_o teach_v or_o rash_o enter_v into_o the_o deep_a secret_n of_o god_n divine_a wisdom_n without_o a_o certain_a and_o infallible_a doctor_n 9_o therefore_o before_o we_o come_v to_o the_o assent_n of_o divine_a faith_n a_o master_n a_o infallible_a proponent_n be_v necessary_a who_o without_o ambiguity_n assure_v we_o that_o god_n speak_v and_o in_o such_o a_o determinate_a sense_n this_o once_o admit_v reason_n have_v no_o place_n at_o all_o in_o the_o very_o elicit_v act_n of_o faith_n or_o if_o it_o enter_v it_o spoil_v faith_n as_o i_o shall_v present_o declare_v 10._o i_o will_v therefore_o explicate_v myself_o further_o and_o protestant_n the_o different_a operation_n of_o reason_n in_o a_o catholic_n and_o in_o a_o protestant_n withal_o show_v how_o reason_n go_v to_o work_v in_o a_o protestant_n and_o how_o different_o it_o proceed_v in_o catholic_n the_o protestant_n have_v no_o more_o but_o the_o bare_a letter_n of_o a_o bible_n before_o his_o eye_n and_o toil_n s_o hard_a with_o that_o one_o weak_a instrument_n his_o own_o reason_n to_o find_v out_o god_n sense_n therein_o he_o read_z he_o humm'_v he_o pauss_v he_o expound_n he_o interpret_n and_o afterward_o believe_v what_o he_o think_v be_v true_a marck_n well_o he_o believe_v sectary_n know_v what_o they_o think_v but_o know_v not_o why_o they_o believe_v know_v what_o he_o think_v but_o yet_o know_v not_o upon_o any_o rational_a inducement_n or_o solid_a motive_n extrinsical_a to_o his_o thought_n that_o god_n speak_v as_o he_o think_v question_v he_o in_o any_o particular_a and_o you_o will_v find_v what_o i_o say_v most_o true_a for_o example_n why_o when_o he_o read_v those_o word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n he_o believe_v christ_n sense_n to_o be_v this_o be_v a_o sign_n or_o figure_n of_o my_o body_n ask_v he_o where_o be_v the_o rational_a inducement_n that_o lead_v he_o to_o own_o this_o sense_n if_o rational_a he_o be_v able_a to_o give_v a_o account_n of_o it_o to_o other_o if_o herein_o he_o show_v himself_o unacountable_a he_o do_v not_o only_o expose_v his_o belief_n to_o the_o contempt_n of_o unbeliever_n but_o to_o those_o thousand_o of_o believe_a christian_n that_o oppose_v it_o nevertheless_o it_o be_v so_o for_o he_o can_v render_v no_o other_o reason_n for_o this_o give_v the_o proof_n be_v give_v new_a coin_a sense_n but_o that_o after_o the_o read_n of_o scripture_n ponder_v the_o word_n examine_v the_o difficulty_n and_o confer_v place_n together_o he_o be_v wrought_v into_o a_o persuasion_n that_o god_n speak_v just_a as_o he_o think_v and_o no_o otherwise_o where_o you_o first_o see_v that_o all_o the_o reason_n he_o have_v walk_v round_o in_o the_o compass_n forth_o the_o reason_n of_o sectary_n lay_v forth_o of_o his_o own_o weak_a head_n without_o show_v so_o much_o as_o a_o resemblance_n of_o any_o suitable_a evidence_n of_o it_o to_o other_o who_o notwithstanding_o know_v reason_n as_o well_o as_o he._n you_o see_v second_o that_o such_o a_o man_n act_v proceed_v how_o they_o proceed_v more_o the_o part_n of_o a_o pope_n than_o ever_o any_o do_v that_o sit_v in_o peter_n chair_n for_o he_o positive_o define_v what_o scripture_n say_v without_o the_o extrinsecal_n help_v either_o of_o ancient_a tradition_n or_o the_o continue_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n never_o pope_n define_v so_o at_o random_n 11._o and_o upon_o this_o occasion_n i_o say_v more_o when_o scripture_n of_o the_o sentiment_n of_o father_n expound_v scripture_n the_o very_o best_a of_o father_n whether_o a_o st._n austin_n a_o st._n hierom_n or_o who_o you_o will_v different_o as_o it_o often_o happen_v expound_v and_o interpret_v scripture_n by_o their_o private_a judgement_n ground_v upon_o vnevidence_v principle_n or_o upon_o mere_a conjectural_a probability_n their_o private_a sentiment_n can_v advance_v we_o no_o further_o but_o to_o a_o opinion_n only_o which_o therefore_o i_o may_v without_o offence_n reject_v and_o never_o bring_v we_o to_o a_o settle_a act_n of_o faith_n yet_o a_o far_o more_o vnevidence_v private_a judgement_n in_o a_o protestant_n do_v all_o and_o as_o the_o only_a light_n he_o see_v we_o by_o serve_v he_o both_o to_o apprehend_v that_o god_n speak_v and_o in_o what_o sense_n he_o speak_v upon_o so_o great_a a_o want_n of_o evidence_n his_o whole_a faith_n depend_v hence_o we_o see_v three_o if_o faith_n be_v a_o discursive_a act_n as_o some_o of_o our_o new_a man_n hold_v that_o be_v a_o act_n found_v on_o a_o rational_a objective_n inducement_n which_o incline_v the_o mind_n to_o judge_n as_o they_o do_v and_o believe_v as_o they_o judge_v it_o do_v no_o protestant_a can_v say_v why_o he_o believe_v as_o he_o do_v be_v impossible_a for_o any_o protestant_n to_o answer_v the_o question_n why_o he_o believe_v that_o god_n speak_v and_o in_o such_o a_o sense_n by_o the_o strength_n and_o light_n of_o his_o own_o judgement_n for_o stead_n of_o the_o rational_a objective_n inducement_n which_o ought_v to_o answer_n he_o only_o return_v you_o the_o subjective_a light_n of_o his_o own_o judgement_n for_o answer_n incline_v he_o and_o we_o inquire_v after_o he_o return_v only_o the_o subjective_a light_n of_o his_o own_o internal_a judgement_n which_o be_v only_o a_o fallible_a act_n clear'_v nothing_o without_o some_o kind_n of_o further_a evidence_n nor_o answer_v the_o question_n why_o he_o believe_v unless_o this_o be_v the_o why_o that_o because_o he_o think_v his_o own_o thought_n true_a he_o be_v please_v to_o believe_v as_o he_o be_v where_o you_o find_v the_o reason_n most_o unreasonable_a because_o it_o be_v vnresolvable_a into_o either_o rational_a motive_n or_o any_o know_v and_o receive_v principle_n 12._o we_o see_v 4._o though_o we_o allow_v to_o protestant_n as_o much_o of_o the_o private_a spirit_n as_o their_o heart_n can_v wish_v for_o whereby_o they_o be_v as_o it_o be_v push_v on_o to_o judge_n faith_n the_o private_a spirit_n suppose_v but_o propose_v no_o new_a motive_n of_o faith_n and_o believe_v yet_o this_o spirit_n be_v only_o as_o they_o say_v the_o operation_n of_o grace_n chief_o fortify_v the_o power_n that_o believe_v but_o propose_v no_o new_a or_o further_o rational_a motive_n of_o belief_n for_o it_o must_v suppose_v the_o total_a motive_n antecedent_o propose_v discernible_a by_o more_o than_o one_o only_o before_o it_o can_v either_o push_n or_o work_v to_o any_o purpose_n it_o protestant_n say_v it_o and_o this_o be_v what_o some_o protestant_n assert_v viz._n that_o the_o operation_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v more_o by_o way_n of_o efficiency_n ex_fw-la parte_fw-la subjecti_fw-la credentis_fw-la in_o order_n to_o the_o beget_n faith_n than_o suppletory_n of_o the_o rational_a inducement_n that_o objective_o
truth_n for_o all_o their_o minister_n be_v fallible_a what_o kind_n of_o elect_n be_v these_o who_o have_v certainty_n of_o grace_n but_o no_o certainty_n of_o truth_n with_o it_o now_o if_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o hold_v it_o impossible_a that_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v desert_n god_n truth_n they_o grant_v what_o we_o ask_v and_o must_v say_v it_o have_v the_o infallible_a assistance_n we_o plead_v for_o the_o reason_n hereof_o i_o have_v ample_o deliver_v in_o the_o former_a discourse_n chap._n 3._o because_o all_o the_o human_a science_n wit_n or_o learn_v in_o nature_n alone_o can_v no_o more_o secure_a a_o church_n grace_n god_n preserve_v his_o church_n aâ_n sound_v in_o truth_n as_o sanctify_v by_o grace_n from_o error_n then_o give_v it_o grace_n god_n therefore_o do_v and_o will_v ever_o gracious_o prevent_v it_o with_o both_o these_o blessing_n and_o as_o infallible_o keep_v it_o sound_v in_o truth_n as_o holy_a and_o sanctify_a chap._n vii_o more_o of_o this_o subject_a 1._o by_o what_o be_v say_v in_o this_o short_a digression_n you_o see_v how_o pitiful_o our_o new_a man_n mangle_v the_o text_n now_o cite_v i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n hear_v their_o gloss_n yes_o say_v they._n this_o promise_n be_v make_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n but_o in_o a_o different_a degree_n for_o it_o be_v of_o continual_a and_o infallible_a assistance_n to_o the_o apostle_n but_o to_o their_o successor_n of_o continual_a and_o fit_a assistance_n but_o not_o infallible_a the_o like_a be_v repeat_v afterward_o assistance_n protestant_n trivial_a distinction_n of_o fit_v and_o infallible_a assistance_n when_o they_o ask_v what_o we_o say_v to_o this_o marry_o sir_n i_o say_v it_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o you_o neither_o declare_v what_o this_o fit_a continual_a assistance_n grant_v these_o successor_n as_o distinct_a from_o the_o other_o allow_v the_o apostle_n be_v nor_o can_v you_o declare_v these_o different_a degree_n and_o though_o you_o do_v so_o contrary_a to_o the_o general_n they_o still_o run_v on_o in_o general_n church_n sense_n you_o only_o vent_v your_o own_o feeble_a and_o fallible_a sentiment_n without_o proof_n which_o i_o neither_o aught_o nor_o can_v in_o prudence_n believe_v to_o be_v plain_a therefore_o be_v please_v to_o answer_v have_v god_n reveal_v to_o you_o what_o this_o fit_a and_o continual_a assistance_n grant_v the_o apostle_n successor_n be_v no._n do_v any_o ancient_a council_n or_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n mince_v these_o word_n and_o dogmatise_v here_o as_o you_o do_v or_o only_o mention_v a_o presence_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o consolation_n and_o grace_n exclude_v infallible_a assistance_n no._n all_o be_v contrary_a as_o i_o can_v demonstrate_v be_v it_o here_o my_o task_n to_o prove_v truth_n against_o you_o but_o this_o be_v do_v by_o other_o as_o it_o be_v to_o force_v you_o to_o prove_v what_o your_o fancy_n only_o vent_v against_o it_o and_o mark_v how_o fancy_n go_v to_o work_v christ_n say_v i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v say_v your_o fancy_n he_o be_v present_a by_o his_o spirit_n by_o a_o fit_a assistance_n but_o not_o by_o a_o assistance_n infallible_a this_o gloss_n not_o by_o infallible_a assistance_n be_v your_o own_o for_o neither_o god_n word_n nor_o universal_a church_n nor_o general_n council_n nor_o the_o consent_n of_o father_n nor_o antiquity_n ever_o utter_v any_o thing_n like_o it_o grant_v therefore_o it_o be_v unreasonable_a as_o you_o say_v to_o put_v your_o party_n to_o prove_v a_o negative_a viz._n that_o any_o of_o the_o father_n deny_v this_o place_n to_o extend_v to_o infallibility_n i_o be_o sure_a it_o be_v most_o reasonable_a to_o force_v you_o to_o a_o proof_n of_o your_o own_o affirmative_a for_o you_o doctrinal_o teach_v that_o christ_n in_o this_o place_n allow_v no_o certain_a infallibility_n to_o his_o church_n this_o because_o positive_o assert_v be_v positive_o to_o be_v make_v good_a by_o a_o more_o strenuous_a proof_n than_o fancy_n only_o you_o say_v again_o those_o of_o your_o party_n only_o deliver_v what_o they_o conceive_v to_o be_v the_o mean_v of_o this_o and_o other_o place_n of_o father_n which_o do_v no_o more_o then_o prove_v the_o perpetuity_n of_o the_o church_n what_o they_o conceive_v weak_a fallible_a man_n pray_v proof_n sectary_n conceit_n instead_o of_o proof_n what_o be_o i_o the_o better_a for_o their_o conceit_n must_v i_o change_v my_o ancient_a faith_n for_o the_o roll_v and_o never_o agree_v fancy_n of_o a_o few_o minister_n why_o may_v not_o a_o arian_n or_o pelagian_a if_o sole_a conceive_n can_v do_v it_o as_o well_o gain_v i_o to_o his_o party_n as_o a_o protestant_n to_o his_o who_o think_v that_o the_o church_n be_v fallible_a to_o that_o of_o the_o father_n i_o answer_v their_o indubitable_a own_v a_o church_n perpetual_a evident_o can_v we_o say_v no_o more_o suppose_v a_o church_n constant_o true_a and_o holy_a and_o the_o constant_a truth_n of_o it_o imply_v infallible_a assistance_n as_o be_v already_o prove_v 2._o protestant_n may_v yet_o reply_v they_o deliver_v what_o objection_n a_o objection_n they_o conceive_v to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o christ_n word_n i_o be_o with_o you_o always_o etc._n etc._n catholic_n can_v do_v no_o more_o and_o mark_v well_o as_o the_o word_n do_v not_o explicit_o exclude_v infallible_a assistance_n from_o the_o church_n always_o so_o neither_o do_v they_o explicit_o include_v it_o for_o christ_n say_v not_o explicit_o i_o will_v be_v always_o with_o you_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n by_o my_o infallible_a assistance_n this_o then_o the_o case_n stand_v they_o restrain_v christ_n promise_n and_o we_o see_v to_o extend_v it_o too_o far_o they_o we_o say_v come_v to_o short_a of_o the_o sense_n by_o cut_v of_o infallible_a assistance_n we_o catholic_n they_o say_v go_v beyond_o the_o bound_n and_o add_v more_o to_o the_o text_n than_o christ_n speak_v both_o of_o we_o therefore_o be_v glosser_n and_o why_o be_v not_o their_o gloss_n as_o orthodox_n as_o we_o here_o be_v a_o better_a objection_n than_o any_o hitherto_o propose_v controversy_n the_o solution_n of_o it_o end_v all_o controversy_n and_o the_o solution_n may_v easy_o end_v all_o controversy_n will_v sectary_n plea_n to_o wave_v a_o few_o self-conceipt_n and_o prudent_o acquiesce_v to_o reason_n whilst_o truth_n plead_v again_v their_o error_n 3._o first_o then_o though_o i_o press_v not_o much_o this_o point_n interpretation_n sectary_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o prefer_v their_o interpretation_n it_o be_v evident_a that_o we_o catholic_n be_v the_o elder_a brother_n as_o numerous_a at_o least_o as_o they_o and_o to_o speak_v modest_o as_o learned_a why_o therefore_o when_o both_o they_o and_o we_o interpret_v scripture_n and_o stand_v as_o it_o be_v equal_o balance_v because_o it_o be_v yet_o suppose_v uncertain_a who_o guess_v better_o why_o be_v not_o i_o say_v our_o interpretation_n can_v we_o prove_v no_o more_o as_o good_a as_o they_o contrary_a to_o we_o if_o they_o prefer_v their_o gloss_n before_o we_o something_o of_o weight_n beside_o mere_a fancy_n must_v turn_v the_o scale_n and_o balance_n more_o for_o they_o then_o we_o we_o always_o ask_v for_o this_o great_a poise_n in_o controvert_v catholic_n to_o these_o of_o catholic_n matter_n and_o can_v get_v no_o answer_n 4._o second_o i_o must_v necessary_o here_o note_v a_o unworthy_a sectary_n a_o unworthy_a proceed_n of_o sectary_n proceed_n of_o sectary_n with_o we_o when_o we_o produce_v scripture_n father_n or_o council_n for_o catholic_n doctrine_n their_o humour_n and_o it_o be_v a_o a_o strange_a one_o run_v on_o thus_o first_o they_o begin_v with_o their_o gloss_n and_o labour_n to_o pervert_v that_o sense_n which_o the_o catholic_n own_v and_o if_o after_o much_o trifle_a they_o can_v disguise_n this_o sense_n or_o twine_v it_o of_o ââom_n the_o catholic_n mean_v they_o hold_v the_o work_n do_v and_o cry_v victory_n mark_v in_o our_o present_a matter_n their_o frigid_a way_n of_o argue_v and_o it_o be_v alike_o in_o all_o other_o controversy_n that_o text_n say_v they_o the_o holy_a ghost_n will_v teach_v you_o all_o truth_n may_v be_v restrain_v to_o the_o apostle_n only_o that_o other_o the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o faith_n may_v have_v the_o sense_n they_o allow_v of_o and_o no_o more_o this_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n i_o will_v be_v with_o you_o always_o etc._n etc._n may_v exclude_v infallibility_n and_o when_o they_o bring_v the_o close_a of_o a_o point_n debate_v to_o their_o own_o self-seeming_a it_o may_v be_v they_o think_v all_o safe_a whereas_o it_o be_v most_o evident_a that_o nothing_o be_v yet_o so_o much_o as_o probable_o conclude_v for_o as_o they_o say_v the_o sense_n
you_o fallible_a teacher_n say_v but_o what_o god_n have_v say_v in_o scripture_n concern_v the_o fallibility_n of_o a_o whole_a christian_a church_n this_o we_o wish_v to_o hear_v of_o before_o we_o credit_v your_o talk_n or_o believe_v for_o your_o say_n it_o have_v err_v the_o facto_fw-la chap._n viii_o the_o new_a mode_n of_o sectary_n misinterpret_v scripture_n destroy_v protestant_n religion_n 1._o here_o we_o give_v you_o a_o four_o reflection_n consequent_a to_o the_o former_a discourse_n which_o follow_v upon_o our_o sectary_n misinterpretation_n of_o scripture_n it_o be_v worth_a the_o reader_n knowledge_n and_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o total_o ruin_n protestant_n religion_n thus_o it_o be_v the_o whole_a machine_n of_o protestancy_n as_o protestancy_n stand_v negative_n protestancy_n stand_v tople_a on_o negative_n tople_a upon_o suppose_a objective_n negative_n build_v up_o by_o fancy_n only_o without_o so_o much_o as_o one_o positive_a proof_n of_o scripture_n to_o support_v it_o if_o i_o evidence_n not_o this_o truth_n and_o consequent_o do_v not_o convince_v that_o our_o sectary_n have_v no_o faith_n deny_v i_o credit_v hereafter_o 2._o observe_v well_o no_o soon_o do_v these_o sectary_n persuade_v themselves_o that_o they_o can_v abate_v the_o force_n of_o our_o scripture-proof_n for_o catholic_n doctrine_n but_o they_o negative_n how_o they_o proceed_v far_o a_o negative_n present_o lie_v hold_v on_o the_o quite_o contrary_a doctrine_n and_o make_v that_o a_o article_n of_o their_o new_a faith_n they_o say_v we_o prove_v not_o a_o church_n infallible_a therefore_o the_o contrary_a position_n the_o church_n be_v fallible_a be_v with_o they_o a_o certain_a truth_n they_o say_v we_o prove_v not_o a_o three_o place_n of_o purgatory_n therefore_o the_o belief_n of_o no_o inference_n mark_v thâse_o inference_n purgatory_n be_v a_o article_n of_o protestant_n faith_n we_o prove_v not_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n therefore_o the_o belief_n of_o his_o not-presence_n constitute_v part_v of_o protestant_n doctrine_n we_o prove_v not_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n ergo_fw-la they_o believe_v the_o contrary_a etc._n etc._n to_o show_v their_o nullity_n of_o faith_n shall_v we_o here_o condescend_v to_o what_o they_o say_v and_o contrary_a both_o to_o conscience_n and_o manifest_a truth_n suppose_v with_o they_o the_o proof_n for_o our_o doctrine_n to_o be_v proofle_n be_v it_o so_o suppose_a at_o present_a pray_v you_o say_v next_o what_o be_v they_o able_a to_o infer_v upon_o such_o a_o fall_v concession_n marry_o thus_o much_o if_o we_o prove_v no_o purgatory_n there_o be_v sure_o no_v such_o place_n if_o we_o prove_v not_o the_o church_n infallible_a it_o be_v certain_o fallible_a and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n i_o answer_v this_o nonsense_n these_o sequels_fw-fr be_v deep_o nonsense_n sequel_n be_v nonsense_n and_o a_o pure_a non_fw-la sequitur_fw-la we_o prove_v not_o ergo_fw-la the_o contrary_a doctrine_n be_v true_a for_o how_o many_o thing_n be_v there_o both_o actual_a and_o possible_a which_o man_n prove_v not_o and_o yet_o be_v so_o a_o young_a student_n in_o mathematics_n can_v perhaps_o prove_v that_o the_o sun_n be_v great_a than_o a_o sieve_n be_v it_o therefore_o consequent_a that_o that_o luminous_a body_n be_v not_o great_a the_o proof_n be_v naught_o and_o here_o be_v all_o that_o follow_v one_o thing_n than_o it_o be_v in_o our_o present_a case_n to_o say_v our_o proof_n falsity_n proof_n may_v fall_v short_a and_o yet_o not_o fall_v upon_o falsity_n for_o catholic_n doctrine_n fall_v short_a or_o be_v forceles_a and_o a_o quite_o other_o to_o say_v they_o fall_v upon_o falsity_n ergo_fw-la no_o absolute_a denial_n of_o these_o catholic_n verity_n be_v deducible_a from_o our_o not_o prove_v they_o yet_o upon_o this_o fall_v suppose_v negative_a foundation_n we_o prove_v not_o all_o protestant_a religion_n stand_v totter_v as_o it_o do_v 3._o be_v please_v to_o hear_v more_o of_o this_o stuff_n let_v we_o also_o false_o suppose_v as_o our_o sectary_n will_v have_v it_o that_o these_o may_v be_v objective_a truth_n and_o verity_n no_o church_n be_v infallible_a there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n etc._n etc._n do_v it_o follow_v think_v you_o that_o they_o can_v believe_v these_o negative_n faith_n every_o truth_n be_v not_o a_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n with_o divine_a and_o steadfast_a faith_n upon_o the_o concession_n that_o they_o be_v now_o suppose_a truth_n no._n it_o be_v a_o lame_a consequence_n and_o a_o worse_a non_fw-la sequitur_n then_o the_o other_o observe_v my_o reason_n no_o objective_a verity_n although_o suppose_v true_a in_o itself_o can_v be_v believe_v by_o consequence_n a_o lame_a consequence_n divine_a faith_n unless_o god_n have_v positive_o reveal_v it_o or_o be_v at_o least_o clear_o deducible_a from_o scripture_n so_o sectary_n assert_v and_o upon_o this_o ground_n that_o divine_a faith_n beside_o faith_n truth_n reveal_v by_o god_n be_v object_n of_o faith_n a_o material_a object_n believable_a require_v also_o and_o this_o essential_o the_o weight_n of_o a_o formal_a object_n which_o be_v god_n veracity_n to_o reveal_v that_o which_o be_v believe_v by_o faith_n seclude_v this_o veracity_n from_o the_o motive_n and_o formal_a object_n of_o our_o assent_n though_o we_o yield_v to_o a_o thousand_o verity_n not_o one_o of_o they_o can_v be_v believe_v by_o faith_n 4._o now_o i_o assume_v but_o the_o fallibility_n of_o christ_n whole_a church_n the_o not_o be_v of_o purgatory_n the_o not_o existency_n god_n that_o there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n no_o real_a presence_n etc._n etc._n be_v no_o where_o reveal_v by_o god_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacred_a eucharist_n and_o so_o of_o the_o rest_n be_v not_o where_o positive_o reveal_v by_o god_n no_o nor_o clear_o deduce_v from_o any_o text_n in_o scripture_n ergo_fw-la although_o these_o be_v truth_n in_o themselves_o yet_o they_o be_v not_o reveal_v truth_n or_o truth_n speak_v by_o almighty_a god_n therefore_o they_o be_v insufficient_a to_o found_v divine_a faith_n the_o major_n be_v grant_v by_o protestant_n the_o minor_a viz_o that_o these_o suppose_a truth_n be_v faith_n ergo_fw-la can_v be_v article_n of_o protestant_n faith_n never_o speak_v by_o almighty_a god_n in_o scripture_n be_v so_o undeniable_o evident_a that_o here_o i_o be_o force_v to_o challenge_v sectary_n to_o produce_v so_o much_o as_o one_o text_n wherein_o god_n have_v positive_o say_v there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n no_o real_a presence_n etc._n etc._n this_o they_o can_v do_v by_o so_o much_o as_o by_o a_o probable_a deduction_n from_o scripture_n much_o les_fw-fr by_o plain_a scripture_n itself_o the_o conclusion_n sectary_n a_o evident_a conclusion_n against_o sectary_n therefore_o follow_v evident_o they_o believe_v not_o what_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o consequent_o want_v faith_n in_o the_o article_n they_o assent_v to_o as_o protestant_n nay_o i_o say_v more_o they_o can_v assent_v to_o these_o article_n as_o evident_a truth_n for_o no_o receive_a principle_n either_o in_o nature_n or_o grace_n can_v evidence_n so_o much_o as_o the_o suppose_a objective_n verity_n of_o these_o doctrine_n shall_v i_o yet_o add_v a_o word_n and_o say_v that_o no_o proof_n ground_v upon_o weighty_a moral_a reason_n can_v evidence_n these_o negative_a assertion_n to_o be_v truth_n moral_o know_v therefore_o though_o hitherto_o we_o have_v suppose_v they_o to_o pass_v for_o verity_n yet_o in_o real_a earnest_n they_o be_v unprove_v and_o no_o other_o but_o the_o weak_a thought_n of_o our_o adversary_n strong_a fancy_n now_o here_o if_o i_o mistake_v not_o you_o see_v ruin_n enough_o of_o protestant_a religion_n protestancy_n and_o the_o ruin_n of_o protestant_a religion_n as_o protestancy_n which_o stand_v upon_o a_o fancy_v opinion_n only_o and_o not_o upon_o what_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o his_o sacred_a word_n no_o nor_o can_v probable_o be_v make_v know_v by_o any_o receive_a principle_n 5._o to_o conclude_v this_o point_n i_o argue_v thus_o these_o negative_a article_n no_o purgatory_n no_o church_n infallible_a etc._n etc._n be_v either_o essential_a piece_n of_o protestant_a religion_n or_o not_o if_o not_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n as_o protestant_a religion_n in_o the_o world_n for_o the_o reform_a part_n of_o it_o be_v whole_o dilemma_n a_o unanswerable_a dilemma_n make_v up_o of_o such_o negative_n no_o purgatory_n no_o transubstantiation_n no_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n no_o pray_v to_o saint_n no_o church_n infallible_a etc._n etc._n cast_v then_o these_o and_o the_o like_a away_o protestancy_n dwingle_v to_o nothing_o now_o if_o on_o the_o other_o side_n they_o hold_v these_o as_o article_n of_o protestancy_n and_o say_v they_o ought_v to_o be_v believe_v by_o divine_a faith_n they_o be_v oblige_v to_o show_v which_o be_v utter_o impossible_a that_o god_n have_v positive_o reveal_v they_o in_o scripture_n therefore_o i_o say_v though_o we_o admit_v of_o such_o negative_n as_o objective_a
truth_n in_o themselves_o yet_o so_o long_o as_o they_o be_v not_o prove_v to_o be_v positive_a reveal_v truth_n or_o speak_v by_o almighty_a god_n protestancy_n stand_v like_o a_o starveling_n void_a and_o empty_a of_o all_o reveal_v truth_n god_n protestancy_n as_o so_o have_v no_o one_o part_n of_o its_o doctrine_n warrant_v by_o god_n and_o consequent_o as_o it_o be_v this_o new_a religion_n have_v no_o one_o part_n of_o its_o doctrine_n warrant_v by_o he_o who_o uphold_v all_o christian_a verity_n i_o mean_v god_n certain_a revelation_n 6._o to_o see_v this_o assertion_n more_o clear_o evidence_v hear_v a_o little_a what_o our_o sectary_n answer_v some_o tell_v we_o they_o know_v right_a well_o there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n because_o god_n have_v not_o reveal_v it_o in_o scripture_n there_o be_v no_o real_a presence_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n and_o so_o they_o argue_v for_o the_o rest_n of_o their_o negative_n to_o this_o and_o whatever_o else_o can_v be_v propose_v we_o have_v answer_v though_o these_o supposition_n be_v very_o fall_v yet_o admit_v of_o they_o as_o true_a viz._n thaâ_n a_o purgatory_n or_o real_a presence_n be_v not_o mention_v in_o scripture_n all_o that_o follow_v from_o hence_o be_v that_o god_n have_v be_v as_o it_o be_v silent_a and_o omit_v to_o speak_v of_o such_o object_n that_o improbable_a protestant_n inference_n still_o prove_v improbable_a be_v as_o we_o now_o false_o suppose_v he_o have_v neither_o say_v there_o be_v a_o purgatory_n nor_o deny_v it_o now_o this_o negative_a god_n have_v say_v nothing_o of_o such_o a_o matter_n as_o it_o can_v ground_n a_o positive_a belief_n of_o a_o purgatory_n so_o it_o can_v ground_n a_o positive_a belief_n of_o the_o contrary_a or_o no_o purgatory_n whilst_o prove_v what_o both_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v therefore_o the_o catholic_n believe_v a_o purgatory_n he_o be_v oblige_v to_o show_v that_o god_n have_v positive_o reveal_v it_o and_o if_o the_o protestant_a believe_v not_o purgatory_n he_o be_v also_o oblige_v to_o show_v that_o god_n have_v speak_v positive_o this_o objective_a truth_n there_o be_v no_o such_o place_n to_o say_v then_o god_n have_v make_v no_o mention_n at_o all_o of_o a_o purgatory_n in_o sçripture_n and_o to_o infer_v from_o thence_o a_o belief_n of_o no_o purgatory_n be_v in_o plain_a language_n to_o say_v i_o may_v actual_o believe_v that_o by_o divine_a faith_n which_o god_n never_o speak_v the_o most_o therefore_o that_o can_v be_v deduce_v from_o this_o negative_a be_v it_o true_a god_n have_v omit_v to_o reveal_v a_o purgatory_n be_v that_o no_o man_n yet_o know_v nor_o can_v know_v upon_o revelation_n whether_o there_o be_v such_o a_o place_n or_o no._n but_o to_o draw_v from_o it_o a_o absolute_a faith_n of_o no_o purgatory_n be_v and_o i_o can_v term_v it_o no_o better_a than_o the_o last_o of_o nonsense_n for_o how_o many_o thing_n be_v there_o know_v to_o god_n which_o he_o have_v omit_v to_o reveal_v can_v i_o therefore_o upon_o that_o non-revelation_n rush_v on_o they_o with_o my_o faith_n and_o believe_v they_o for_o his_o not_o speak_v at_o all_o yet_o thus_o sectary_n proceed_v they_o have_v they_o protestant_n believe_v negative_n because_o god_n have_v not_o reveal_v they_o good_a store_n of_o negative_n but_o not_o reveal_v negative_n and_o they_o will_v believe_v they_o because_o god_n have_v not_o reveal_v they_o here_o brief_o be_v my_o discourse_n if_o it_o falter_v or_o seem_v faulty_a to_o our_o adversary_n my_o humble_a petition_n be_v that_o they_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o unbeguil_v '_o i_o and_o friendly_o show_v i_o where_o the_o fallacy_n lie_v fallacy_n if_o this_o discourse_n be_v faulty_a my_o wish_n be_v to_o hear_v of_o the_o fallacy_n 7._o some_o perhaps_o will_v say_v we_o have_v fight_v all_o this_o while_n with_o shadow_n and_o suppose_v these_o negative_n no_o purgatory_n no_o transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n to_o be_v object_n of_o protestant_n faith_n but_o we_o err_v not_o know_v their_o doctrine_n for_o they_o be_v only_o hold_v inferior_a truth_n refute_v one_o reply_v refute_v approve_v by_o the_o english_a church_n to_o mantain_n union_n among_o protestant_n and_o not_o own_v as_o article_n of_o faith_n thus_o two_o late_a man_n who_o you_o may_v see_v large_o refute_v discourse_n 3._o c._n 6._o n._n 7._o all_o i_o will_v say_v at_o present_a be_v because_o sectary_n seldom_o agree_v in_o doctrine_n it_o be_v impossible_a to_o confute_v they_o all_o at_o once_o to_o my_o doctrine_n sectary_n agree_v not_o in_o doctrine_n purpose_n then_o there_o have_v be_v certain_o and_o be_v yet_o protestant_n i_o think_v these_o the_o more_o numerous_a that_o hold_v the_o now_o name_v negative_n article_n of_o protestant_n faith_n some_o own_o these_o negative_n article_n of_o faith_n faith_n and_o against_o such_o our_o proof_n have_v force_n other_o that_o deny_v the_o doctrine_n and_o exclude_v they_o from_o be_v article_n be_v in_o a_o worse_a condition_n because_o upon_o the_o supposition_n they_o be_v force_v to_o grant_v that_o faith_n protestancy_n have_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n protestancy_n as_o protestancy_n contain_n not_o so_o much_o as_o one_o article_n of_o divine_a faith_n in_o it_o for_o the_o whole_a reform_a part_n of_o it_o be_v make_v up_o of_o pure_a negative_n consequent_o if_o any_o shall_v utter_o abjure_v that_o religion_n he_o will_v not_o abjure_v one_o truth_n reveal_v by_o almighty_a god_n see_v more_o of_o this_o subject_n in_o the_o place_n now_o cite_v and_o confute_v both_o be_v confute_v know_v that_o our_o adversary_n will_v have_v much_o to_o do_v to_o come_v of_o handsome_o whether_o they_o grant_v these_o negative_n to_o be_v article_n of_o their_o faith_n or_o disow_v they_o as_o article_n this_o be_v fair_o speak_v without_o clamour_n and_o reader_n mr._n stillingfleet_n in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n believe_v it_o some_o who_o tell_v we_o they_o have_v not_o leisure_n enough_o to_o kill_v fly_n may_v sweat_v at_o it_o take_v whether_o part_n they_o please_v before_o the_o difficulty_n be_v solve_v 8._o they_o may_v reply_v second_o and_o endeavour_v to_o nothing_o a_o second_o reply_n of_o sectary_n worth_a nothing_o prove_v at_o least_o one_o of_o their_o negative_n thus._n there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n because_o god_n have_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n two_o place_n only_o heaven_n and_o hell_n which_o seem_v exclusive_a of_o a_o three_o place_n i_o answer_v that_o word_n only_o be_v neither_o scripture_n nor_o revelation_n cast_v therefore_o that_o particle_n away_o and_o propose_v the_o argument_n as_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v and_o it_o fall_v to_o nothing_o thus_o it_o be_v god_n have_v reveal_v two_o place_n and_o these_o eternal_a it_o be_v most_o true_a ergo_fw-la he_o have_v reveal_v the_o not_o be_v of_o a_o purgatory_n be_v falso_n and_o a_o mere_a nonsequitur_a 9_o they_o may_v reply_v three_o catholic_n believe_v bad_a a_o three_o at_o bad_a many_o thing_n upon_o as_o pure_a negative_n for_o example_n a_o trinity_n of_o three_o distinct_a person_n in_o one_o divine_a essence_n and_o no_o quaternity_n or_o no_o more_o person_n than_o three_o yet_o this_o negative_a be_v not_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n to_o help_v on_o this_o worthless_a argument_n i_o grant_v more_o that_o not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o trinity_n of_o distinct_a person_n be_v plain_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n do_v it_o therefore_o ground_n catholic_n believe_v not_o upon_o negative_a ground_n follow_v that_o catholic_n believe_v that_o mystery_n and_o deny_v a_o quaternity_n upon_o negative_a ground_n no_o such_o matter_n they_o believe_v a_o trinity_n and_o no_o quaternity_n upon_o the_o solid_a positive_a ground_n of_o their_o church_n interpret_n scripture_n upon_o a_o universal_a perpetuate_v tradition_n and_o the_o infallible_a word_n of_o god_n not_o write_v protestant_n be_v destitute_a of_o such_o proof_n in_o the_o article_n they_o hold._n for_o they_o neither_o have_v a_o infallible_a church_n nor_o tradition_n nor_o write_a nor_o unwritten_a word_n to_o rely_v on_o therefore_o they_o believe_v upon_o fancy_n oâây_o 10._o to_o end_v this_o matter_n i_o will_v here_o brief_o because_o church_n a_o objection_n answer_v conceiââing_v novelty_n introduce_v i_o ãâ¦ã_o the_o church_n it_o be_v consequent_a answer_v to_o a_o old_a trivial_a objection_n make_v by_o sectary_n against_o our_o present_a roman_a church_n which_o they_o accuse_v of_o novelty_n introduce_v since_o the_o first_o primitive_a age_n and_o weak_o as_o they_o be_v wont_v argue_v after_o this_o manner_n your_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n of_o pray_v to_o saint_n of_o a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o teach_v for_o three_o or_o four_o age_n after_o christ_n therefore_o say_v they_o we_o may_v now_o well_o hold_v the_o contrary_a and_o believe_v no_o transubstantiation_n no_o sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n
and_o all_o sectary_n will_v as_o well_o agree_v in_o one_o harmony_n of_o doctrine_n by_o force_n of_o that_o clear_a interpretation_n none_o of_o they_o deny_v the_o clear_a sense_n of_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o scripture_n itself_o dissent_v if_o all_o agree_v in_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n there_o will_v be_v no_o dissent_v as_o they_o now_o agree_v in_o own_v scripture_n to_o be_v divine_a they_o accord_n not_o in_o the_o first_o therefore_o scripture_n be_v not_o its_o own_o interpreter_n or_o if_o any_o yet_o without_o proof_n strong_o assert_v so_o much_o most_o evident_o in_o order_n to_o these_o dissent_v man_n it_o be_v as_o useless_a a_o interpreter_n as_o if_o it_o be_v none_o at_o all_o for_o it_o compose_v no_o difference_n take_v here_o one_o instance_n sectary_n to_o prove_v scripture_n conspicuous_a and_o clear_a without_o a_o interpreter_n quote_v these_o and_o the_o like_a place_n thy_o word_n be_v a_o lantern_n to_o my_o foot_n a_o lanteâ_n shine_v in_o a_o dark_a place_n etc._n etc._n we_o answer_v scripture_n be_v true_o a_o light_n when_o that_o outward_a cover_n of_o ambiguous_a word_n wherein_o the_o sense_n often_o lie_v enclose_v be_v break_v open_a by_o a_o faithful_a interpreter_n and_o withal_o we_o add_v it_o be_v vain_o frivolous_a to_o make_v they_o such_o shine_a lamp_n as_o to_o silence_v all_o preach_a and_o interpretation_n yet_o this_o follow_v if_o sectary_n gloss_n right_a for_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o interpret_v or_o teach_v that_o a_o lantern_n shine_v which_o i_o see_v bright_a before_o my_o eye_n observe_v well_o the_o protestant_n make_v scripture_n clear_a without_o a_o teacher_n the_o catholic_n scripture_n interpretation_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o scripture_n say_v interpretation_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a scripture_n itself_o deliver_v not_o in_o formal_a word_n either_o the_o one_o or_o other_o gloss_n therefore_o it_o do_v not_o ever_o interpret_v itself_o home_o or_o declare_v its_o own_o mean_v nay_o it_o can_v do_v so_o for_o all_o interpretation_n proper_o take_v be_v a_o new_a more_o clear_a and_o distinct_a light_n superad_v to_o the_o formal_a word_n of_o scripture_n but_o no_o hagiographer_n say_v this_o sacred_a book_n make_v any_o such_o new_a addition_n of_o gloss_n therefore_o it_o can_v interpret_v itself_o and_o this_o be_v what_o the_o apostle_n 2._o petri_n 1._o 20._o seem_v to_o teach_v scripture_n be_v not_o ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d ãâã_d of_o its_o own_o explication_n 4._o i_o say_v 2._o no_o private_a man_n whether_o catholic_n arian_n protestant_n or_o other_o can_v upon_o his_o own_o discourse_n or_o judgement_n only_o so_o interpret_v a_o difficil_n scripture_n with_o certainty_n as_o to_o assure_v any_o that_o god_n speak_v as_o he_o interpret_n the_o reason_n be_v every_o private_a judgement_n be_v fallible_a and_o liable_a to_o error_n which_o truth_n that_o of_o the_o apostle_n roman_n 3_o omnis_fw-la homo_fw-la mendax_fw-la teach_v but_o a_o judgement_n sense_n a_o judgement_n liable_a to_o error_n can_v give_v certainty_n of_o the_o scripture_n sense_n fallible_a and_o liable_a to_o error_n can_v with_o no_o certainty_n give_v i_o that_o sense_n which_o god_n reveal_v in_o a_o difficil_n place_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o i_o can_v trust_v to_o it_o nor_o assure_o ground_n my_o faith_n on_o such_o a_o interpretation_n and_o thus_o much_o protestant_n acknowledge_v for_o they_o say_v neither_o church_n nor_o ancient_a father_n be_v to_o be_v rely_v on_o as_o infallible_a in_o their_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o much_o less_o can_v a_o minister_n or_o lay_v man_n assume_v to_o himself_o the_o infallible_a spirit_n of_o interpret_n or_o resolve_v what_o a_o whole_a universal_a church_n be_v to_o believe_v alas_o such_o a_o man_n want_v certitude_n in_o what_o he_o say_v he_o want_v a_o perfect_a knowledge_n of_o both_o scripture_n and_o antiquity_n never_o perhaps_o exact_o peruse_v he_o want_v a_o constant_a stability_n for_o what_o he_o judge_v this_o hour_n he_o may_v upon_o after_o thought_n change_v the_o next_o for_o as_o he_o be_v fallible_a so_o be_v he_o also_o changeable_a in_o his_o judgement_n 5._o yet_o more_o what_o private_a man_n dare_v when_o he_o be_fw-mi the_o learned_a of_o contrary_a religion_n at_o debate_n concern_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n step_v in_o among_o they_o and_o say_v my_o master_n you_o be_v to_o believe_v i_o and_o acquiesce_v to_o what_o i_o judge_v of_o the_o sense_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v i_o and_o not_o you_o that_o know_v god_n mean_v will_v not_o such_o a_o thing_n be_v cast_v out_o of_o all_o company_n yet_o this_o be_v our_o very_a case_n when_o a_o new_a upstart_n puff_v up_o with_o his_o own_o sentiment_n tell_v we_o either_o catholic_n or_o protestant_n what_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v in_o controvert_v point_n of_o faith_n and_o hence_o i_o say_v the_o catholic_n can_v assure_v a_o protestant_n without_o a_o better_a proof_n than_o his_o own_o opinion_n that_o the_o sectary_n err_v in_o his_o interpretation_n nor_o can_v the_o protestant_n upon_o his_o own_o assertion_n remove_v the_o catholic_n from_o the_o judgement_n he_o make_v of_o the_o scripture_n sense_n both_o fallible_a as_o private_a man_n catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v both_o fallible_a of_o they_o be_v alike_o fallible_a if_o no_o other_o certain_a principle_n be_v lay_v hold_v on_o here_o then_o be_v the_o difference_n the_o catholic_n for_o his_o interpretation_n of_o such_o place_n prudent_o rely_v on_o a_o firm_a ground_n than_o his_o variable_a judgement_n the_o protestant_n have_v nothing_o to_o uphold_v the_o sense_n he_o defend_v but_o his_o own_o waver_v and_o unsteedy_a thought_n which_o be_v as_o changeable_a as_o catholic_n be_v moral_a certainty_n sufficient_a why_o be_v it_o to_o be_v more_o grant_v the_o sectary_n than_o the_o catholic_n the_o man_n be_v fallible_a here_o be_v the_o best_a support_n for_o his_o interpretation_n and_o faith_n also_o if_o he_o tell_v you_o he_o have_v moral_a assurance_n or_o interpret_n as_o the_o primitive_a church_n do_v i_o answer_v above_o he_o only_o think_v so_o but_o prove_v nothing_o let_v he_o show_v that_o the_o primitive_a church_n ever_o interpr_v those_o word_n the_o church_n be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n as_o he_o now_o interpret_v they_o if_o he_o say_v he_o believe_v as_o his_o own_o judgement_n interpret_n i_o grant_v this_o be_v too_o pitiful_o true_a but_o what_o be_o i_o the_o better_a on_o that_o account_n can_v we_o rely_v on_o a_o protestant_n easy_a fallible_a and_o erroneous_a judgement_n in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n at_o last_o sure_o he_o will_v hit_v on_o it_o and_o say_v he_o interpret_v as_o the_o holy_a ghost_n sugge_v happy_a man_n do_v he_o so_o but_o we_o shall_v find_v it_o otherwise_o present_o however_o because_o the_o word_n be_v of_o comfort_n let_v he_o hear_v it_o on_o god_n name_n for_o it_o be_v the_o resolution_n of_o our_o whole_a question_n certain_o the_o holy_a ghost_n only_o interpret_v scripture_n certain_o 6._o i_o say_v therefore_o 3._o no_o other_o but_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n the_o holy_a ghost_n interpret_n scripture_n certain_o john_n 16._o 23._o when_o that_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v come_v he_o will_v teach_v all_o truth_n but_o one_o and_o a_o most_o necessary_a truth_n be_v to_o have_v scripture_n faithful_o interpret_v therefore_o this_o the_o holy_a ghost_n teach_v if_o he_o teach_v all_o truth_n again_o john_n 14._o 16._o he_o be_v call_v a_o paraclete_n or_o comforter_n abide_v with_o we_o for_o ever_o but_o he_o be_v not_o a_o permanent_a comforter_n unless_o he_o solace_n as_o well_o by_o his_o spirit_n of_o truth_n mention_v john_n 17._o 19_o as_o with_o other_o interior_a consolation_n to_o allege_v more_o text_n obvious_a to_o all_o be_v needle_n the_o assertion_n deliver_v in_o these_o general_a term_n be_v undoubted_o true_a and_o protestaent_n i_o think_v who_o endless_o talk_v of_o their_o interior_a spirit_n will_v not_o deny_v it_o interpret_n the_o difficulty_n by_o who_o the_o spirit_n interpret_n 7._o the_o only_a difficulty_n which_o will_v trouble_v they_o be_v see_v this_o al-teaching_a spirit_n usual_o interpret_n not_o by_o private_a illustration_n nor_o assume_v every_o private_a man_n to_o be_v the_o oracle_n whereby_o he_o speak_v and_o interpret_n see_v also_o he_o leave_v scripture_n still_o as_o speechless_a in_o order_n to_o its_o own_o further_a explication_n as_o it_o be_v 16._o hundred_o year_n ago_o the_o difficulty_n i_o say_v be_v to_o find_v out_o that_o oracle_n and_o a_o christian_a society_n it_o must_v be_v for_o angel_n be_v not_o interpreter_n wherein_o he_o presides_n as_o master_n and_o by_o it_o interpret_n scripture_n find_v this_o speak_a oracle_n out_o and_o we_o have_v enough_o hear_v it_o and_o we_o hear_v truth_n to_o our_o purpose_n then_o 8._o do_v this_o spirit_n
because_o the_o church_n stand_v for_o we_o there_o it_o no_o authority_n allegeable_a contrary_n to_o the_o church_n can_v be_v comparable_a to_o it_o can_v be_v no_o competition_n unless_o they_o render_v our_o church_n testimony_n of_o no_o force_n by_o substitute_v a_o great_a in_o its_o place_n for_o their_o sense_n which_o be_v impossible_a alas_o they_o want_v principle_n to_o go_v about_o such_o a_o work_n and_o therefore_o must_v reduce_v all_o they_o talk_v against_o we_o to_o fancy_n only_o 12._o what_o i_o will_v say_v here_o may_v perhaps_o be_v more_o clear_o express_v thus._n if_o sectary_n have_v plain_a scripture_n for_o fundamental_o we_o have_v it_o also_o and_o take_v along_o with_o it_o those_o father_n they_o admit_v of_o if_o in_o spirit_n judgement_n against_o judgement_n spirit_n against_o spirit_n other_o matter_n now_o in_o controversy_n they_o rely_v on_o their_o private_a judgement_n when_o they_o interpret_v scripture_n our_o judgement_n that_o be_v opposite_a be_v to_o say_v no_o more_o as_o good_a as_o they_o if_o they_o plead_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n work_v in_o they_o we_o may_v set_v our_o spirit_n against_o they_o and_o ask_v whether_n better_a thus_o far_o we_o stand_v most_o evident_o upon_o equal_a term_n with_o they_o now_o be_v please_v to_o observe_v what_o i_o say_v they_o have_v not_o one_o plain_a text_n of_o scripture_n nor_o one_o plain_a testimony_n of_o any_o council_n or_o ancient_a father_n whereby_o they_o can_v so_o much_o as_o probably_n offer_v to_o prove_v that_o fancy_n protestant_n have_v nothing_o for_o their_o sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o fancy_n the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n own_v by_o catholic_n be_v erroneous_a in_o point_n debate_v between_o we_o and_o beside_o the_o judgement_n of_o innumerable_a father_n we_o have_v also_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o whole_a learned_a church_n that_o approve_v our_o sense_n they_o have_v neither_o church_n nor_o scripture_n nor_o council_n nor_o father_n for_o they_o let_v therefore_o the_o world_n judge_n how_o far_o they_o be_v from_o convince_a our_o sense_n of_o scripture_n to_o be_v erroneous_a by_o any_o know_v or_o receive_v principle_n unless_o their_o fancy_n enter_v in_o and_o pass_v for_o a_o proof_n which_o we_o utter_o reject_v you_o will_v say_v if_o in_o all_o controvert_v matter_n we_o make_v so_o much_o of_o church_n esteem_v why_o church_n authority_n be_v to_o be_v high_o esteem_v authority_n there_o be_v no_o dispute_v against_o we_o for_o the_o church_n will_v ever_o stand_v for_o its_o own_o doctrine_n i_o answer_v and_o if_o we_o value_v not_o of_o it_o so_o high_o but_o admit_v of_o our_o sectary_n gloss_n upon_o their_o bare_a word_n we_o be_v worse_o than_o mad_a when_o it_o be_v evident_a they_o can_v prove_v that_o sense_n to_o be_v erroneous_a by_o a_o strong_a principle_n than_o our_o church_n authority_n be_v that_o deny_v the_o error_n the_o church_n therefore_o fortify_v with_o most_o solid_a proof_n draw_v from_o scripture_n council_n father_n and_o tradition_n most_o just_o stand_v for_o itâs_n own_o interpretation_n and_o hence_o i_o say_v impertinency_n whatever_o sectary_n can_v allege_v against_o it_o will_v show_v itself_o a_o impertinency_n though_o cavil_n may_v be_v raise_v there_o be_v no_o rational_a dispute_v against_o it_o you_o have_v the_o reason_n hereof_o already_o because_o what_o ever_o sectary_n can_v lay_v hold_v on_o like_o a_o principle_n or_o that_o whereby_o they_o may_v attempt_v to_o prove_v the_o catholic_n interpretation_n false_o will_v appear_v more_o than_o feeble_a to_o stand_v against_o the_o long_a stand_a authority_n of_o this_o one_o holy_a and_o catholic_n church_n but_o of_o this_o subject_n more_o afterward_o in_o the_o follow_a discourse_n 13._o and_o thus_o much_o of_o our_o protestant_n strange_a unsettle_a religion_n and_o vndeniable_a apostasy_n both_o from_o church_n and_o scripture_n we_o shall_v see_v in_o the_o next_o discourse_n how_o they_o recede_v from_o reason_n also_o in_o pass_v be_v please_v to_o take_v these_o few_o consideration_n along_o with_o you_o 14._o a_o religion_n destitute_a of_o all_o appearance_n of_o any_o ancient_a religion_n a_o recapitulation_n of_o the_o enormity_n of_o protestant_a religion_n church_n to_o side_n and_o symbolize_v with_o as_o protestant_n most_o evident_o be_v their_o recours_fw-fr to_o the_o three_o of_o four_o first_o age_n be_v ignotum_fw-la per_fw-la ignotius_fw-la and_o no_o less_o and_o vnproved_a than_o a_o suppose_a whimsy_n a_o religion_n which_o have_v not_o one_o syllable_n of_o scripture_n for_o it_o as_o it_o be_v evident_a man_n of_o this_o profession_n have_v not_o and_o because_o they_o ever_o glory_v in_o scripture-proof_n i_o be_o force_v to_o tell_v they_o they_o can_v produce_v one_o text_n for_o protestancy_n without_o their_o fallible_a gloss_n if_o i_o wrong_v their_o cause_n let_v they_o speak_v out_o and_o shame_v i_o i_o will_v suffer_v the_o affront_n yet_o fear_v it_o not_o but_o remember_v i_o call_v for_o plain_a scripture_n a_o religion_n which_o never_o yet_o have_v one_o general_n council_n to_o confirm_v it_o no_o universal_a tradition_n to_o warrant_n it_o not_o one_o professor_n before_o luther_n to_o own_o it_o a_o religion_n which_o hold_v the_o belief_n of_o all_o christian_n to_o have_v be_v fall_v for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o and_o the_o prelate_n mislead_v by_o error_n who_o teach_v christian_n for_o so_o vast_a a_o time_n a_o religion_n who_o professor_n take_v upon_o they_o to_o reform_v other_o before_o they_o find_v their_o own_o pretend_a reformation_n arrive_v to_o any_o shadow_n of_o perfection_n who_o espy_v error_n in_o a_o church_n never_o discover_v erroneous_a by_o thousand_o more_o ancient_a and_o learned_a than_o they._n a_o religion_n which_o have_v the_o very_a look_n of_o haeresy_n turn_v it_o which_o way_n you_o will_v which_o oppose_v all_o man_n and_o be_v oppose_v by_o the_o rest_n of_o christian_n which_o be_v settle_v on_o no_o other_o ground_n but_o the_o bare_a vnproved_a word_n of_o those_o vncommission_v man_n that_o teach_v it_o which_o change_v every_o year_n and_o have_v no_o seem_a principle_n for_o a_o ground_n of_o constancy_n not_o one_o motive_n to_o make_v it_o rational_o credible_a such_o a_o religion_n i_o say_v dishonour_v god_n injure_v jesus_n christ_n seduce_v poor_a soul_n and_o as_o unworthy_o as_o weak_o stand_v out_o against_o that_o ancient_n roman_n catholic_n church_n which_o be_v every_o way_n blameless_a unless_o faulty_a in_o this_o that_o it_o make_v protestant_n their_o progenitor_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o world_n christian_n if_o i_o here_o overlash_n in_o assert_v too_o much_o let_v our_o adversary_n come_v close_o to_o any_o one_o particular_a and_o vouchsafe_v fair_o and_o rational_o to_o make_v my_o error_n know_v the_o third_z discourse_n of_o the_o unreasonable_a procede_v of_o protestant_n in_o some_o chief_n handle_v point_n of_o controversy_n be_v please_v to_o observe_v what_o i_o shall_v note_v hereafter_o you_o shall_v ever_o find_v our_o sectary_n either_o skulk_a in_o generality_n or_o suppose_v what_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v or_o word_v it_o by_o scripture_n misinterpret_v or_o final_o make_v controversy_n endless_a without_o appeal_n to_o any_o other_o judge_n but_o themselves_o the_o first_o chapter_n protestant_n be_v unreasonable_a whilst_o they_o seem_o hold_v a_o catholic_n church_n distinct_a from_o the_o roman_a neither_o know_v nor_o designable_a by_o any_o 1._o this_o be_v a_o article_n of_o the_o apostle_n creed_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n and_o be_v luther_n sectary_n be_v require_v to_o point_n at_o a_o catholic_n church_n before_o luther_n so_o three_o day_n before_o luther_n desert_v the_o roman_a faith_n my_o humble_a suit_n be_v that_o our_o new_a man_n will_v plea_n by_o a_o plain_a designation_n i_o ask_v not_o for_o a_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n to_o point_v i_o out_o the_o true_a church_n which_o then_o be_v or_o now_o be_v holy_a and_o catholic_n protestant_n as_o i_o here_o suppose_v be_v not_o then_o visible_a in_o the_o world_n there_o be_v it_o be_v true_a arian_n pelagian_o abyssins_n grecian_n and_o perhaps_o some_o remainder_n of_o donatist_n with_o other_o heretic_n whether_o more_o or_o few_o true_a know_a heretic_n constitute_v not_o the_o catholic_n church_n yet_o the_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n be_v then_o true_a it_o import's_n not_o to_o our_o present_a question_n notwithstanding_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o some_o christian_n then_o live_v unanimous_o profess_v their_o belief_n in_o a_o holy_a catholic_n church_n my_o demand_n therefore_o be_v whether_o that_o believe_v article_n be_v then_o true_a or_o falso_n if_o fall_v for_o want_v of_o a_o true_a catholic_n church_n speak_v out_o plain_o and_o say_v that_o christian_n believe_v a_o church_n which_o then_o real_o be_v not_o in_o be_v if_o true_a the_o then_o holy_a catholic_n
church_n which_o verify_v the_o belief_n of_o that_o article_n can_v be_v plain_o and_o without_o fumble_v design_v say_v then_o on_o god_n name_n what_o christian_n have_v we_o who_o constitute_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n grecian_n nor_o papist_n according_a to_o protestant_n nor_o the_o late_a grecian_n in_o those_o day_n papist_n you_o say_v be_v all_o in_o a_o deluge_n of_o error_n which_o make_v luther_n to_o leave_v they_o our_o late_a grecian_n hold_v and_o hold_v still_o a_o true_a mass_n sacrifice_n the_o real_a presence_n pray_v to_o saint_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n they_o therefore_o contrary_a to_o our_o sectary_n be_v neither_o the_o holy_a nor_o universal_a church_n luther_n none_o say_v sectary_n but_o gross_a err_a man_n be_v in_o the_o world_n before_o luther_n much_o les_fw-fr be_v arian_n abyssins_n pelagian_n monotbelits_n or_o all_o of_o they_o together_o now_o beside_o such_o err_a man_n there_o be_v no_o other_o in_o the_o world_n if_o therefore_o the_o universal_a church_n be_v essential_o make_v up_o of_o particular_a church_n as_o true_o it_o be_v for_o there_o be_v no_o vniversale_fw-la à _fw-la parte_fw-la rei_fw-la and_o all_o particular_a church_n nameable_a in_o those_o day_n gross_o err_v it_o follow_v evident_o that_o then_o no_o holy_a catholic_n church_n can_v be_v believe_v since_o those_o time_n our_o protestant_n come_v in_o church_n protestant_n only_o be_v not_o the_o holy_a universal_a church_n and_o will_v they_o if_o that_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n be_v falso_n in_o the_o last_o age_n verify_v it_o now_o and_o style_v themselves_o the_o only_a universal_a church_n i_o be_o confident_a they_o will_v not_o donatize_v so_o far_o or_o dare_v to_o do_v so_o the_o question_n therefore_o propose_v deserve_v a_o exact_a answer_n viz._n where_o or_o among_o what_o christian_n shall_v we_o find_v the_o answer_n the_o question_n propose_v deserve_v a_o clear_a answer_n holy_a universal_a church_n then_o free_a from_o notable_a error_n 2._o can_v our_o novellist_n rational_o say_v that_o all_o those_o who_o right_o believe_v in_o christ_n constitute_v the_o holy_a universal_a church_n if_o so_o the_o reply_n be_v too_o general_a faith_n a_o abstract_a belief_n in_o christ_n insufficient_a to_o constitute_v true_a catholic_n faith_n and_o we_o ask_v again_o who_o those_o be_v and_o urge_v to_o have_v the_o particular_a community_n specify_v that_o catholick_o believe_v in_o christ_n we_o demand_v moreover_o what_o they_o mean_v by_o that_o belief_n in_o christ_n be_v it_o enough_o to_o confess_v he_o to_o be_v the_o true_a messus_n our_o redeemer_n our_o master_n or_o to_o acknowledge_v his_o death_n his_o resurrection_n without_o believe_v more_o of_o his_o doctrine_n sure_o salvation_n more_o be_v require_v and_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n no._n for_o first_o god_n never_o speak_v those_o other_o excellent_a verity_n register_v in_o scripture_n whether_o dogmatical_a or_o relate_v to_o manner_n in_o vain_a but_o to_o good_a purpose_n and_o with_o intention_n that_o they_o shall_v beside_o that_o abstract_a faith_n in_o christ_n both_o be_v hearken_v to_o and_o believe_v after_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n again_o be_v the_o late_a grecian_n who_o firm_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o hold_v never_o the_o les_fw-fr almost_o all_o the_o tenant_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n catholic_n believer_n also_o if_o so_o papist_n can_v in_o no_o justice_n be_v exclude_v from_o that_o communion_n perhaps_o you_o will_v say_v you_o do_v not_o exclude_v they_o no._n why_o then_o have_v you_o hang_v they_o upon_o gibbet_n mere_o for_o be_v papist_n if_o you_o answer_v you_o do_v so_o upon_o the_o account_n of_o their_o particular_a error_n then_o hang_v up_o a_o number_n of_o your_o own_o minister_n who_o confess_o have_v more_o error_n among_o they_o or_o if_o petty_a difference_n in_o point_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v pardon_v in_o the_o one_o why_o be_v they_o so_o severe_o punish_v in_o the_o other_o but_o ad_fw-la rem_fw-la 3._o say_v plain_o and_o answer_v categorical_o without_o christ_n arian_n and_o pelagian_o believe_v in_o christ_n shuffle_n be_v arian_n pelagian_o nestorian_n monothelits_n part_n and_o member_n of_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n for_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o own_v he_o for_o their_o redeemer_n master_n and_o doctor_n yea_o and_o admit_v of_o scripture_n also_o if_o you_o affirm_v it_o then_o there_o never_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v heresy_n in_o the_o christian_a haretick_n yet_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n as_o haretick_n world_n whilst_o christ_n be_v acknowledge_v in_o this_o general_n way_n and_o consequent_o the_o ancient_a council_n deal_v most_o unjust_o with_o these_o man_n in_o cast_v they_o out_o of_o the_o church_n communion_n and_o proclaim_v they_o heretic_n beside_o observe_v i_o pray_v you_o what_o a_o pretty_a church_n be_v here_o make_v up_o of_o man_n irreconciliable_a in_o their_o dispute_n be_v this_o think_v you_o that_o holy_a universal_a church_n a_o church_n compound_v of_o hideous_a dissent_v member_n be_v not_o christ_n church_n and_o unite_a society_n of_o christian_n which_o christ_n jesus_n cement_v together_o in_o one_o faith_n who_o do_v nothing_o but_o clash_v one_o with_o another_o and_o will_v he_o own_v this_o for_o his_o spouse_n when_o he_o come_v to_o judge_v the_o world_n yet_o far_o no_o doctrine_n proper_a to_o particular_a sectary_n as_o arianism_n be_v to_o arian_n pelagianism_n to_o pelagian_n protestanism_n to_o protestant_n can_v because_o bind_v up_o within_o the_o narrow_a compass_n of_o these_o community_n deserve_v catholic_n no_o doctrine_n peculiar_a to_o sectary_n can_v be_v catholic_n the_o name_n or_o notion_n of_o either_o holy_a universal_a or_o catholic_n doctrine_n prescind_v therefore_o from_o these_o particular_a doctrine_n or_o lay_v they_o aside_o which_o as_o protestant_n must_v say_v do_v not_o vnchurch_n they_o my_o demand_n be_v and_o it_o shall_v never_o be_v answer_v wherein_o consist_v the_o question_n protestant_n can_v answer_v the_o question_n remainder_n of_o that_o doctrine_n which_o imply_v the_o pure_a essential_o of_o christian_a religion_n join_v man_n together_o in_o one_o faith_n and_o make_v they_o true_a member_n of_o the_o holy_a and_o universal_a church_n 4._o will_v you_o hear_v as_o i_o think_v the_o best_a answer_n of_o some_o new_a protestant_n they_o may_v say_v who_o ever_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o scripture_n and_o join_v in_o that_o belief_n which_o be_v universal_o own_v by_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n before_o luther_n be_v right_o in_o faith_n and_o a_o member_n of_o the_o holy_a universal_a church_n though_o perhaps_o he_o believe_v with_o his_o taint_a church_n some_o error_n a_o most_o wretched_a refute_v the_o first_o answer_n refute_v and_o unproved_a assertion_n for_o who_o ever_o yet_o maintain_v that_o a_o society_n of_o christian_n own_v some_o doctrine_n true_a as_o all_o have_v do_v and_o more_o perhaps_o fall_v be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o true_a holy_a catholic_n church_n we_o say_v bonum_fw-la ex_fw-la integrâ_fw-la causâ_fw-la malum_fw-la ex_fw-la quolibet_fw-la defectu_fw-la a_o faith_n therefore_o true_o good_a be_v entire_o good_a any_o falsity_n spoil_n it_n and_o then_o most_o when_o it_o be_v vitiate_v with_o notable_a error_n tell_v i_o if_o scripture_n word_n a_o church_n vitiate_v with_o gross_a error_n be_v no_o more_o a_o church_n then_o the_o bible_n notable_o corrupt_v be_v god_n word_n be_v corrupt_v in_o some_o point_n of_o consequence_n will_v you_o own_v the_o whole_a bible_n for_o god_n word_n no_o certain_o how_o then_o can_v we_o own_o that_o for_o christ_n true_a church_n which_o be_v corrupt_v with_o falso_n doctrine_n you_o will_v say_v we_o must_v take_v the_o good_a without_o the_o bad_a and_o believe_v as_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o essential_a be_v of_o a_o church_n and_o that_o make_v we_o catholic_n though_o we_o joint_o believe_v some_o error_n with_o it_o answer_n this_o be_v worse_a than_o before_o and_o more_o confuse_a stuff_n who_o be_v those_o we_o that_o can_v choose_v thus_o church_n none_o can_v separate_v truth_n from_o falsehood_n if_o i_o live_v in_o a_o err_v church_n or_o tell_v i_o if_o i_o live_v in_o a_o err_v church_n where_o fall_v doctrine_n be_v secret_o mingle_v with_o truth_n what_o i_o be_o to_o choose_v or_o what_o be_v good_a or_o bad_a if_o a_o poor_a simple_a man_n deceive_v by_o his_o pastor_n fall_v into_o a_o error_n there_o be_v other_o ready_a to_o unbeguile_v he_o but_o himself_o because_o he_o who_o endeavour_v to_o unbeguile_v i_o may_v then_o most_o err_v himself_o here_o be_v none_o to_o do_v this_o service_n because_o none_o can_v certain_o judge_v of_o the_o right_n or_o wrong_n will_v you_o say_v that_o scripture_n be_v to_o decide_v in_o such_o doubt_n pray_v you_o tell_v i_o if_o by_o a_o suppose_a impossibility_n scripture_n
itself_o be_v corrupt_v in_o certain_a great_a matter_n and_o no_o body_n know_v where_o on_o who_o judgement_n shall_v we_o rely_v to_o single_a out_o those_o corruption_n this_o case_n only_o suppose_v be_v a_o real_a one_o in_o the_o church_n before_o luther_n if_o the_o roman_a fail_v we_o for_o all_o other_o be_v corrupt_v exigency_n neither_o scripture_n nor_o man_n own_o private_a judgement_n can_v help_v in_o such_o a_o exigency_n and_o no_o protestant_n can_v certain_o say_v in_o what_o however_o take_v scripture_n as_o it_o be_v most_o pure_a and_o plead_v with_o it_o against_o a_o arian_n he_o laugh_v at_o you_o and_o say_v he_o have_v more_o clear_a scripture_n for_o his_o particular_a tenant_n than_o protestant_n have_v for_o they_o what_o then_o be_v next_o every_o private_a man_n must_v in_o such_o exigency_n judge_v for_o himself_o the_o arian_n answer_v he_o do_v so_o and_o think_v his_o judgement_n as_o good_a as_o you_o yet_o still_o remain's_n in_o his_o error_n well_o at_o last_o you_o shall_v hear_v the_o right_a solution_n chap._n ii_o of_o a_o late_a writer_n doctrine_n 1._o when_o all_o christian_a society_n say_v he_o consent_n to_o such_o stillingfleet_n mr._n stillingfleet_n thing_n as_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o those_o society_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n then_o we_o be_v right_o in_o faith_n and_o this_o judgement_n be_v best_a make_v refute_v a_o second_o answer_v refute_v when_o we_o regulate_v our_o belief_n by_o the_o catholic_n doctrine_n of_o the_o first_o age_n here_o be_v no_o man_n know_v what_o and_o not_o only_o a_o generality_n but_o impossibility_n upon_o impossibility_n say_v therefore_o shall_v we_o ever_o see_v that_o day_n when_o all_o christian_a society_n will_v stand_v thus_o unite_v in_o one_o judgement_n concern_v the_o be_v or_o the_o essential_o impossibility_n these_o man_n propose_v impossibility_n of_o a_o church_n never_o unless_o every_o particular_a society_n first_o lay_v down_o its_o own_o suppose_a error_n and_o say_v so_o much_o be_v not_o essential_o necessary_a 2._o do_v you_o think_v that_o catholic_n will_v ever_o come_v in_o and_o acknowledge_v either_o their_o belief_n of_o a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n or_o transubstantiation_n to_o be_v error_n no._n they_o hold_v these_o doctrine_n as_o essential_a as_o to_o believe_v a_o trinity_n do_v you_o think_v that_o arian_n pelagian_o and_o other_o heretic_n will_v so_o far_o disow_v their_o particular_a tenant_n as_o to_o lay_v they_o down_o or_o grant_v they_o make_v not_o up_o a_o church_n no_o certain_o this_o confent_n of_o judgement_n therefore_o in_o all_o christian_n society_n for_o the_o belief_n the_o suppose_a consent_n of_o judgement_n for_o own_v so_o much_o precise_a doctrine_n essential_a be_v a_o chimaera_n sectary_n can_v propound_v that_o precise_a doctrine_n whereof_o god_n require_v explicit_a belief_n own_n of_o so_o much_o precise_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o essential_a be_v of_o a_o church_n be_v a_o most_o unlearned_a speculation_n neither_o do_v we_o mend_v the_o matter_n in_o say_v as_o some_o do_v that_o nothing_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n but_o what_o may_v be_v evident_o propound_v to_o all_o person_n as_o a_o thing_n whereof_o god_n require_v explicit_fw-la belief_n for_o upon_o who_o proposition_n make_v evident_a to_o we_o may_v we_o assure_o rest_v and_o hold_v that_o god_n require_v a_o explicit_fw-la belief_n of_o so_o many_o article_n and_o no_o more_o if_o you_o answer_v it_o be_v so_o much_o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o all_o age_n receive_v you_o still_o lurk_v in_o darkness_n and_o prove_v ignotum_fw-la per_fw-la ignotius_fw-la for_o you_o never_o yet_o tell_v we_o nor_o can_v tell_v we_o where_o this_o catholic_n church_n be_v or_o what_o it_o teach_v you_o will_v say_v it_o be_v that_o church_n or_o the_o agreed-on_a doctrine_n which_o all_o who_o go_v under_o the_o notion_n of_o christian_n own_v as_o holy_a and_o catholic_n answ_n there_o never_o be_v any_o such_o church_n nor_o such_o doctrine_n own_v by_o all_o in_o the_o world_n for_o christ_n true_a doctrine_n always_o meet_v with_o opposition_n and_o have_v falso_n doctrine_n against_o it_o you_o will_v say_v the_o primitive_a ancient_n arian_n oppose_v as_o much_o the_o ancient_n church_n and_o doctrine_n be_v pure_a let_v we_o stick_v to_o that_o and_o all_o be_v well_o i_o answer_v first_o it_o be_v most_o pure_a yet_o both_o arian_n and_o other_o oppose_v it_o they_o therefore_o will_v not_o agree_v to_o it_o and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n i_o may_v ask_v why_o their_o authority_n be_v not_o then_o every_o whit_n as_o good_a to_o vncatholick_n that_o first_o church_n as_o sectary_n church_n as_o protetant_n do_v the_o present_a church_n be_v now_o to_o uncatholick_n the_o roman_a 2._o it_o be_v a_o mere_a subterfuge_n thus_o to_o run_v up_o to_o the_o primitive_a church_n whilst_o you_o and_o we_o agree_v not_o though_o it_o be_v your_o fault_n what_o that_o ancient_a church_n teach_v in_o many_o particular_n if_o you_o say_v we_o must_v read_v and_o judge_v alas_o we_o have_v all_o be_v read_v these_o hundred_o year_n and_o yet_o be_v at_o variance_n about_o that_o doctrine_n you_o see_v then_o how_o controversy_n be_v make_v endless_a by_o this_o proceed_v but_o what_o will_v you_o it_o be_v a_o old_a fallacy_n of_o our_o new_a man_n who_o first_o suppose_v and_o then_o go_v on_o to_o prove_v they_o suppose_v the_o primitive_a doctrine_n to_o be_v know_v and_o agree_v on_o by_o themselves_o and_o we_o and_o then_o appeal_v to_o it_o there_o church_n why_o sectary_n recur_v to_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v no_o such_o thing_n the_o real_a truth_n therefore_o be_v they_o take_v up_o shelter_v here_o because_o controversy_n that_o be_v now_o most_o handle_v be_v in_o those_o day_n the_o least_o examine_v 2._o some_o of_o our_o late_a man_n may_v perhaps_o pretend_v that_o we_o have_v not_o be_v able_a hitherto_o to_o understand_v their_o meaning_n or_o to_o dive_v into_o the_o speculative_a conceit_n resute_v a_o three_o answer_v resute_v of_o the_o church_n catholic_n and_o therefore_o teach_v we_o thus_o that_o doctrine_n wherein_o all_o church_n have_v agree_v on_o ever_o since_o christ_n time_n can_v be_v no_o matter_n of_o discord_n for_o where_o all_o agree_v there_o can_v be_v no_o disagreement_n take_v therefore_o that_o precise_a and_o vniform_a doctrine_n which_o all_o christian_n have_v antecedent_o to_o particular_a error_n universal_o own_v as_o unquestioned_a christian_a doctrine_n therein_o consist_v the_o essential_o of_o save_v faith_n or_o the_o very_a quintessence_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o in_o no_o more_o 3._o mark_v well_o a_o strong_a speculation_n about_o nothing_o you_o must_v prescind_v one_o vniform_a vnivocal_a true_a religion_n from_o nothing_o the_o abstract_n true_a doctrine_n from_o fall_n be_v a_o speculation_n worth_n nothing_o all_o fall_v religion_n in_o the_o world_n and_o then_o you_o have_v the_o true_a religion_n that_o be_v you_o must_v cut_v of_o from_o arianism_n from_o pelagianism_n from_o donatism_n from_o protestanism_n from_o popery_n for_o here_o be_v also_o some_o thing_n suppose_v amiss_o what_o be_v error_n and_o the_o remainder_n of_o doctrine_n wherein_o all_o agree_v constitute_v the_o essence_n of_o save_v faith_n believe_v it_o it_o will_v prove_v a_o mighty_a diffic_n ãâ¦ã_o thy_fw-mi to_o cut_v and_o carve_v right_a in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matteâ_n pray_v you_o who_o must_v go_v above_o this_o work_n protestant_n error_n protestant_n aught_o first_o to_o lay_v down_o their_o own_o error_n toy_n let_v they_o on_o god_n name_n who_o be_v so_o much_o upon_o reformation_n first_o lead_v the_o way_n and_o lay_v down_o their_o own_o error_n next_o we_o shall_v see_v who_o follow_v they_o i_o be_o sure_a catholic_n will_v not_o disow_v the_o belief_n catholic_n will_v abute_v nothing_o of_o their_o belief_n least_o article_n of_o their_o belief_n for_o they_o as_o i_o tell_v you_o just_a now_o assent_n with_o equal_a assurance_n to_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o do_v also_o i_o think_v the_o arian_n and_o other_o sectary_n to_o their_o particular_a error_n but_o suppose_v conclude_v admit_v of_o the_o supposition_n nothing_o be_v conclude_v that_o we_o mental_o conceive_v one_o agreed-on_a harmonious_a doctrine_n universal_o hold_v by_o all_o christian_n who_o can_v assure_v i_o that_o so_o much_o precise_o be_v enough_o for_o save_v faith_n you_o may_v say_v that_o that_o doctrine_n wherein_o all_o christian_n agree_v can_v but_o be_v true_a because_o all_o own_o it_o but_o you_o shall_v never_o so_o much_o as_o probable_o show_v that_o save_a faith_n require_v no_o more_o or_o stand_v safe_a upon_o such_o a_o generality_n the_o arian_n believe_v in_o christ_n that_o be_v general_a doctrine_n but_o deny_v his_o godhead_n cerinthus_n and_o ebion_n believe_v in_o
no_o truth_n in_o that_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n to_o evidence_n further_o what_o i_o now_o assert_v do_v no_o more_o but_o forget_v as_o it_o be_v or_o cast_v out_o of_o your_o mind_n all_o thought_n of_o roman_a catholic_n from_o luther_n upward_o to_o the_o four_o age._n then_o look_v about_o you_o and_o consider_v remain_v exclude_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n heretic_n only_o remain_v well_o the_o remainder_n of_o other_o christian_n for_o that_o vast_a interval_n of_o time_n you_o will_v find_v none_o but_o profess_a heretic_n schismatic_n or_o both_o as_o arian_n nestorian_n pelagian_n and_o such_o a_o like_a rabble_n of_o man_n again_o forget_v these_o as_o much_o as_o if_o they_o have_v never_o be_v and_o only_o think_v of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n diffuse_v the_o whole_a world_n over_o continue_a age_n after_o age_n will_v you_o not_o have_v a_o holy_a and_o universal_a church_n present_v church_n exclude_v heretic_n you_o yet_o have_v a_o glorious_a church_n to_o your_o thought_n yea_o most_o assure_o and_o a_o glorious_a church_n too_o it_o be_v therefore_o evident_a that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n society_n be_v not_o only_o necessary_a to_o make_v up_o the_o church_n but_o be_v moreover_o the_o sole_a and_o only_o essential_a church_n of_o christ_n as_o i_o have_v already_o prove_v chap._n iii_o the_o pretend_a reformation_n of_o protestant_n be_v unreasonable_a if_o faith_n in_o christ_n only_o suffice_v for_o salvation_n a_o more_o explicit_fw-la faith_n be_v prove_v necessary_a 1._o i_o must_v needs_o have_v a_o word_n more_o with_o our_o adversary_n upon_o this_o subject_a and_o note_v that_o if_o a_o general_n belief_n in_o christ_n sacred_a person_n office_n and_o dignity_n be_v save_v faith_n enough_o for_o a_o christian_a which_o some_o endeavour_n to_o prove_v by_o that_o text_n of_o st._n john_n 20._o 31._o and_o these_o thing_n be_v write_v that_o you_o may_v believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n and_o that_o believe_v you_o may_v have_v life_n in_o his_o name_n if_o such_o a_o general_n faith_n i_o say_v make_v we_o all_o as_o well_o catholic_n as_o christian_n without_o more_o our_o protestant_n need_v not_o to_o storm_v at_o we_o as_o they_o do_v for_o want_v of_o true_a faith_n for_o we_o catholic_n agree_v and_o believe_v in_o christ_n god_n and_o man_n as_o firm_o as_o they_o do_v and_o in_o this_o one_o article_n only_o may_n we_o credit_v they_o all_o necessary_a essential_o of_o christian_a faith_n be_v include_v it_o be_v true_a catholic_n say_v a_o more_o explicit_fw-la faith_n be_v require_v as_o i_o shall_v present_o declare_v but_o protestant_n who_o do_v not_o may_v rest_v essential_n protestant_n slight_v work_n about_o thing_n not_o essential_n content_v and_o withal_o confess_v that_o the_o great_a coyle_n they_o have_v keep_v in_o reform_v catholic_n doctrine_n come_v to_o no_o more_o but_o to_o a_o slight_a piddle_a about_o non-essentials_a which_o for_o aught_o be_v yet_o know_v have_v do_v more_o hurt_n than_o good_a and_o make_v thing_n worse_a than_o they_o good_a may_v have_v do_v more_o hurt_n than_o good_a be_v before_o 2._o to_o drive_v the_o difficulty_n home_o i_o ask_v serious_o whether_o any_o one_o article_n peculiar_a to_o this_o religion_n as_o like_a if_o protestant_n hold_v their_o particular_a doctrine_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n other_o haretick_n will_v pretend_v the_o like_a protestancy_n that_o be_v beside_o the_o general_n belief_n in_o christ_n and_o own_v scripture_n etc._n etc._n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n if_o yes_o then_o will_n arian_n pelagian_o donatist_n and_o other_o sectary_n say_v also_o what_o they_o hold_v particular_a be_v also_o necessary_a and_o therefore_o doctrine_n above_o or_o beyond_o the_o belief_n in_o christ_n or_o not_o universal_a be_v of_o like_a necessity_n if_o protestant_n answer_n no_o or_o assert_v that_o nothing_o particular_o hold_v by_o they_o because_o not_o universal_a catholic_n doctrine_n imply_v this_o follow_v and_o if_o not_o two_o strange_a sâquâls_n undeniable_o follow_v necessity_n but_o a_o belief_n in_o christ_n only_o two_o rhing_n follow_v the_o one_o be_v as_o i_o have_v now_o note_a that_o without_o fruit_n at_o all_o they_o have_v make_v a_o shameful_a stir_n with_o their_o schism_n in_o bluster_a all_o this_o while_n about_o non-essentials_a and_o petty_a difference_n which_o may_v be_v believe_v or_o not_o without_o danger_n of_o lose_v salvation_n 2._o it_o follow_v that_o as_o protestant_n here_o acknowledge_v a_o church_n so_o universal_a wherein_o all_o may_v be_v save_v that_o believe_v in_o christ_n in_o like_a manner_n any_o one_o and_o upon_o as_o good_a reason_n may_v make_v it_o wide_a and_o allow_v salvation_n protestant_n a_o large_a church_n must_v be_v allow_v of_o by_o protestant_n to_o all_o whither_o jew_n or_o turk_n that_o believe_v in_o god_n only_o without_o explicit_fw-la faith_n in_o christ_n vnus_fw-la deus_fw-la una_fw-la fides_n therefore_o in_o place_n of_o christ_n church_n we_o may_v have_v a_o god_n church_n more_o large_a and_o ample_a erect_v in_o the_o world_n 3._o you_o will_v say_v scripture_n be_v most_o evident_a for_o a_o belief_n in_o christ_n may_v a_o defender_n of_o the_o now_o large_a imagine_a church_n which_o afford_v salvation_n to_o all_o that_o believe_v in_o god_n answer_v he_o will_v tell_v you_o that_o the_o explicit_fw-la belief_n in_o god_n imply_v some_o kind_n of_o implicit_a belief_n in_o christ_n and_o that_o be_v enough_o which_o he_o be_v ready_a to_o make_v good_a when_o you_o have_v prove_v your_o abstract_a faith_n in_o christ_n sacred_a person_n to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n a_o better_a answer_n be_v scripture_n most_o certain_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n explicit_o but_o do_v it_o leave_v of_o there_o and_o not_o joint_o oblige_v we_o to_o only_o more_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n then_o belief_n in_o christ_n only_o believe_v other_o article_n also_o explicit_o when_o they_o be_v plain_a in_o scripture_n and_o sufficient_o propose_v such_o be_v the_o sacrament_n of_o baptism_n and_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n etc._n etc._n can_v we_o therefore_o after_o we_o own_o these_o truth_n deliver_v in_o god_n word_n hope_v for_o salvation_n without_o a_o explicit_a belief_n of_o they_o if_o so_o st._n john_n c._n 6._o 53._o say_v not_o true_a unless_o you_o eat_v the_o flesh_n of_o the_o son_n of_o man_n and_o drink_v his_o blood_n you_o have_v no_o life_n in_o you_o sure_o we_o can_v do_v this_o like_a christian_n unless_o we_o believe_v it_o necessary_a the_o belief_n of_o sacrament_n necessary_a if_o no_o the_o belief_n of_o these_o sacrament_n constitute_v the_o essential_o of_o save_v faith_n and_o so_o do_v also_o the_o belief_n of_o much_o moral_a doctrine_n set_v down_o in_o scripture_n read_v what_o st._n paul_n write_v cor._n 1._o 6._o 9_o concern_v the_o unrighteous_a idolater_n and_o fornicator_n etc._n etc._n and_o tell_v i_o if_o you_o own_o god_n word_n whether_o the_o apostle_n do_v doctrine_n and_o of_o other_o moral_a doctrine_n not_o disinherit_v all_o unbeliever_n of_o his_o doctrine_n therefore_o something_o more_o be_v necessary_a for_o christian_n unite_v in_o one_o faith_n to_o assent_v to_o then_o only_o to_o believe_v in_o christ_n 4._o the_o true_a fundamental_a ground_n of_o my_o assertion_n be_v this._n what_o ever_o god_n speak_v in_o scripture_n who_o never_o speak_v idle_a word_n whether_o the_o matter_n may_v seem_v to_o our_o weak_a capacity_n little_a or_o great_a be_v after_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n of_o the_o same_o weight_n and_o authority_n to_o believe_v rherfore_o in_o christ_n be_v a_o fundamental_a article_n and_o in_o one_o sense_n know_v to_o every_o one_o most_o fundamental_a but_o to_o reject_v or_o abstract_n from_o his_o other_o verity_n reveal_v in_o scripture_n or_o to_o make_v les_fw-fr reckon_a of_o they_o because_o they_o appear_v little_a to_o we_o be_v to_o affront_n god_n and_o tell_v he_o that_o we_o will_v believe_v he_o so_o far_o as_o we_o plea_n but_o no_o far_o whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n he_o assure_v we_o that_o his_o word_n be_v equal_o engage_v in_o all_o he_o say_v and_o authority_n all_o truth_n in_o scripture_n be_v of_o equal_a authority_n that_o his_o eternal_a truth_n whether_o little_a or_o great_a be_v not_o to_o be_v value_v of_o by_o what_o be_v speak_v but_o by_o the_o certain_a authority_n of_o he_o that_o speak_v they_o hence_o divins_n assert_v and_o most_o true_o that_o no_o man_n can_v believe_v so_o much_o as_o one_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n upon_o the_o motive_n of_o god_n reveal_v testimony_n unless_o he_o ready_o embrace_v all_o other_o alike_o as_o equal_o propose_v upon_o the_o same_o authority_n for_o where_o we_o have_v the_o same_o motive_n we_o must_v yield_v the_o same_o
nor_o can_v say_v that_o the_o belief_n of_o such_o and_o such_o article_n be_v to_o be_v exclude_v as_o unnecessary_a to_o salvation_n 7._o nay_o i_o affirm_v more_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o by_o their_o own_o principle_n to_o exclude_v any_o to_o prove_v my_o assertion_n observe_v first_o they_o can_v no_o more_o say_v by_o a_o true_a general_a proposition_n this_o whole_a bible_n i_o have_v now_o other_o sectary_n can_v by_o their_o principle_n distinguish_v between_o fundamental_o and_o other_o in_o my_o hand_n be_v god_n own_o word_n and_o exclude_v the_o least_o verity_n in_o it_o from_o be_v god_n true_a word_n then_o they_o can_v say_v by_o a_o true_a general_a proposition_n all_o man_n be_v by_o nature_n mortal_a and_o exclude_v any_o particular_a man_n from_o be_v mortal_a for_o as_o the_o mortality_n of_o every_o particular_a man_n make_v so_o far_o forth_o this_o proposition_n true_a that_o if_o one_o be_v by_o nature_n immortal_a it_o be_v falso_n so_o the_o truth_n of_o every_o particular_a article_n in_o scripture_n verify_v so_o far_o the_o other_o proposition_n salvation_n to_o believe_v scripture_n in_o a_o general_a way_n that_o imply_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n that_o if_o one_o article_n be_v not_o god_n true_a word_n the_o general_n proposition_n be_v falso_n also_o now_o i_o assume_v but_o protestant_n say_v to_o believe_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o true_a word_n of_o god_n at_o least_o in_o a_o general_n way_n which_o imply_v the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n and_o faith_n in_o christ_n be_v indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n therefore_o they_o must_v also_o say_v to_o believe_v every_o particular_a article_n contain_v in_o scripture_n as_o be_v true_o god_n word_n be_v in_o like_a manner_n indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n because_o this_o general_a belief_n carry_v as_o well_o in_o reason_n the_o reason_n it_o a_o own_v of_o every_o particular_a truth_n in_o scripture_n as_o the_o general_n assertion_n of_o all_o mortal_a ascrib_n mortality_n to_o every_o particular_a man_n the_o reason_n be_v clear_a for_o as_o scripture_n be_v not_o make_v up_o of_o generality_n but_o essential_o verity_n scripture_n cansist'_v of_o particular_a verity_n be_v constitute_v of_o the_o particular_a verity_n contain_v therein_o so_o if_o my_o faith_n true_o and_o entire_o own_o scripture_n for_o god_n word_n it_o be_v extend_v to_o no_o generality_n in_o the_o object_n for_o there_o be_v none_o but_o to_o particular_a verity_n though_o the_o mode_n or_o tendency_n of_o the_o act_n be_v particular_n faith_n must_v be_v of_o particular_n nos_fw-la always_o perfect_o explicit_fw-la 8._o if_o you_o say_n the_o argument_n here_o propose_v seem_v fallacious_a because_o it_o prove_v at_o most_o that_o every_o little_a matter_n in_o scripture_n may_v be_v a_o object_n of_o faith_n but_o no_o way_n inferr'_v the_o belief_n of_o they_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o it_o be_v very_o different_a to_o affirm_v such_o a_o thing_n i_o may_v believe_v and_o another_o to_o own_o the_o belief_n of_o happiness_n the_o belief_n of_o every_o particular_a in_o scripture_n relate_v to_o eternal_a happiness_n it_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n if_o this_o i_o say_v be_v the_o reply_n my_o answer_n be_v that_o as_o well_o the_o belief_n of_o every_o particular_a verity_n in_o scripture_n have_v the_o same_o relation_n to_o man_n eternal_a happiness_n as_o the_o general_a belief_n of_o own_v scripture_n for_o god_n word_n have_v not_o only_o because_o the_o particular_a be_v include_v in_o the_o general_n but_o chief_o on_o this_o other_o account_n that_o be_v a_o supernatural_a elicit_v act_n of_o faith_n it_o can_v aim_n at_o no_o other_o end_n but_o man_n supernatural_a happiness_n for_o under_o this_o notion_n of_o supernaturality_n it_o leave_v as_o it_o be_v the_o limit_n of_o nature_n and_o raise_v a_o soul_n to_o eternal_a bliss_n where_o you_o see_v that_o both_o the_o mean_n and_o end_v vnivocal_o agree_v in_o be_v supernatural_a and_o be_v alike_o suitable_a to_o one_o another_o permit_v i_o to_o evidence_n this_o truth_n further_o and_o ask_v whether_o the_o denial_n or_o disbelief_n of_o the_o least_o truth_n haeretick_n the_o disbelief_n of_o the_o least_o matter_n in_o scripture_n make_v one_o a_o haeretick_n that_o god_n speak_v in_o scripture_n once_o own_a for_o his_o word_n and_o sufficient_o propound_v make_v not_o a_o man_n a_o haeretick_n yes_o most_o assure_o for_o by_o deny_v that_o to_o be_v true_a which_o he_o know_v god_n say_v be_v true_a he_o pertinacious_o oppose_v himself_o to_o a_o infinite_a veracity_n ergo_fw-la the_o true_a act_n of_o faith_n contrary_n salvation_n that_o which_o make_v one_o a_o faithful_a believer_n have_v reference_n to_o salvation_n to_o this_o infidelity_n of_o necessity_n make_v he_o a_o faithful_a believer_n but_o that_o which_o necessary_o make_v he_o a_o faithful_a believer_n have_v not_o only_a reference_n to_o his_o last_o end_n but_o be_v also_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o as_o infidelity_n lose_v heaven_n so_o true_a faith_n be_v necessary_a to_o gain_v it_o therefore_o the_o belief_n of_o every_o little_a article_n be_v not_o of_o little_a but_o in_o this_o sense_n of_o as_o main_a consequence_n as_o the_o great_a little_a the_o belief_n of_o every_o little_a matter_n in_o the_o sense_n now_o explicate_v be_v not_o little_a and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n you_o may_v well_o reflect_v upon_o the_o desperate_a talk_n of_o some_o late_a man_n who_o tell_v we_o that_o all_o thing_n contain_v in_o scripture_n be_v not_o so_o necessary_a in_o order_n to_o our_o end_n some_o be_v at_o so_o great_a a_o remove_n from_o this_o end_n that_o the_o only_a reason_n of_o believe_v they_o be_v because_o they_o be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n a_o most_o unworthy_a say_n refute_v mr._n still_v fleet_n be_v doctrine_n refute_v which_o make_v god_n to_o have_v speak_v a_o thousand_o idle_a word_n in_o scripture_n for_o there_o they_o stand_v useless_o in_o the_o book_n without_o benefit_n without_o subserviency_n or_o relation_n to_o any_o further_a good_a but_o only_o to_o be_v look_v on_o you_o may_v read_v they_o and_o pass_v by_o they_o as_o thing_n whole_o unnecessary_a to_o our_o final_a end_n a_o strange_a conceit_n they_o frame_v of_o scripture_n that_o make_v it_o up_o as_o ill_a apothecary_n do_v sometime_o physic_v of_o unnecessary_a ingredient_n 9_o you_o may_v reply_v some_o catholic_n seem_v to_o necessary_a the_o sense_n of_o divine_n concern_v matter_n necessary_a per_fw-la se_fw-la and_o secundary_o necessary_a divide_v the_o object_n of_o faith_n into_o that_o which_o be_v per_fw-la se_fw-la by_o itself_o necessary_a and_o by_o accident_n or_o secondary_o necessary_a ergo_fw-la they_o acknowledge_v fundamental_a and_o not_o fundamental_a doctrine_n in_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o question_n now_o propose_v i_o deny_v the_o consequence_n for_o they_o only_o hold_v some_o verity_n to_o be_v so_o principal_o necessary_a to_o the_o essence_n of_o christian_a faith_n that_o if_o they_o have_v not_o be_v reveal_v at_o all_o or_o now_o be_v unknown_a christian_a religion_n will_v absolute_o perish_v but_o it_o be_v not_o so_o in_o other_o for_o example_n have_v god_n never_o reveal_v any_o thing_n touch_v christ_n our_o lord_n the_o sacred_a mystery_n of_o the_o incarnation_n or_o a_o trinity_n etc._n etc._n the_o very_a essence_n faith_n why_o call_v primacy_n object_n of_o faith_n of_o our_o religion_n will_v not_o have_v be_v and_o therefore_o these_o be_v call_v primary_n object_n ratione_fw-la materiae_fw-la because_o if_o we_o have_v no_o knowledge_n or_o faith_n in_o christ_n we_o have_v no_o christian_a religion_n contrariwise_o have_v the_o holy_a ghost_n not_o at_o all_o inspire_a the_o hagiographer_n to_o write_v much_o of_o the_o historical_a part_n in_o scripture_n which_o be_v write_v or_o never_o tell_v we_o that_o abraham_n have_v two_o son_n yet_o we_o may_v have_v know_v christ_n and_o perfect_o believe_v in_o he_o such_o necessary_a something_o be_v in_o regard_n of_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o necessary_a though_o be_v write_v become_v necessary_a verity_n then_o because_o of_o the_o matter_n be_v not_o per_n see_v so_o necessary_a however_o be_v now_o write_v they_o be_v true_a object_n of_o faith_n because_o god_n speak_v them_o it_o be_v therefore_o one_o thing_n to_o say_v these_o lesser_a matter_n if_o not_o write_v at_o all_o have_v not_o be_v necessary_a to_o constitute_v religion_n and_o another_o thing_n to_o say_v now_o when_o they_o be_v write_v and_o speak_v by_o almighty_a god_n they_o do_v not_o integrate_a the_o total_a object_n of_o faith_n but_o faith_n they_o least_o matter_n in_o scripture_n be_v a_o object_n of_o faith_n may_v be_v look_v on_o as_o parergons_n or_o as_o thing_n void_a of_o all_o reference_n to_o our_o eternal_a happiness_n it_o be_v i_o say_v impossible_a to_o own_v they_o
to_o observe_v these_o three_o thing_n 1._o if_o we_o consider_v the_o motive_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v god_n veracity_n what_o ever_o he_o speak_v little_a or_o great_a be_v with_o one_o and_o the_o same_o respect_n and_o profound_a reverence_n to_o be_v assent_v to_o and_o here_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o fundamental_o and_o other_o 2._o if_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o proposition_n faith_n one_o concern_v the_o formal_a object_n of_o faith_n of_o faith_n herein_o also_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n for_o no_o man_n can_v believe_v a_o fundamental_a doctrine_n soon_o than_o not_o fundamental_a unless_o the_o one_o as_o well_o as_o the_o other_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v 3._o if_o we_o proposal_n the_o other_o relate_v to_o its_o proposal_n speak_v of_o the_o matter_n reveal_v i_o have_v show_v above_o that_o some_o point_n in_o themselves_o or_o per_fw-la se_fw-la more_o essential_o constitute_v yea_o and_o more_o conduce_v to_o piety_n then_o other_o but_o this_o make_v no_o distinction_n between_o believe_v the_o three_o to_o the_o matter_n believe_v fundamental_o and_o not_o fundamental_o in_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o our_o question_n because_o the_o lesser_a as_o well_o as_o the_o great_a be_v upon_o god_n testimony_n equal_o believe_v in_o every_o true_a universal_a act_n of_o supernatural_a faith_n whereby_o we_o say_v all_o be_v to_o be_v assent_v to_o that_o god_n reveal_n chap._n vi_o some_o few_o proposition_n of_o a_o late_a writer_n be_v brief_o examine_v his_o discourse_n of_o fundamental_o destroy_n protestant_n religion_n 1._o i_o say_v brief_o for_o i_o leave_v much_o to_o be_v answer_v refute_v mr._n stillingfleet_v proposition_n refute_v by_o more_o learned_a adversary_n one_o proposition_n be_v the_o very_a be_v of_o a_o church_n do_v suppose_v the_o necessity_n of_o what_o be_v require_v to_o be_v believe_v in_o order_n to_o salvation_n very_o good_a but_o what_o then_o marry_o this_o follow_v if_o it_o be_v a_o church_n it_o believe_v all_o thing_n necessary_a before_o it_o define_v how_o come_v it_o therefore_o to_o make_v more_o thing_n necessary_a by_o its_o definition_n first_o a_o word_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la principle_n protestant_n add_v to_o what_o they_o conceive_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n a_o company_n of_o new_a unproved_a negative_a article_n they_o proceed_v not_o consequent_o to_o their_o principle_n protestant_n have_v now_o a_o church_n essential_o constitute_v or_o have_v not_o if_o not_o protestancy_n be_v no_o christian_a religion_n if_o they_o have_v such_o a_o church_n why_o do_v they_o add_v to_o that_o which_o they_o conceive_v to_o be_v the_o essential_o of_o it_o a_o cluster_n of_o new_a article_n never_o own_v by_o any_o orthodox_n society_n for_o example_n no_o sacrifice_n no_o purgatory_n no_o transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n can_v they_o proceed_v consequent_o to_o their_o principle_n they_o shall_v neither_o deny_v a_o sacrifice_n a_o purgatory_n etc._n etc._n nor_o assert_v they_o but_o hold_v they_o mere_a parergons_n because_o they_o have_v a_o church_n essential_o found_v without_o they_o why_o therefore_o do_v they_o either_o deny_v or_o affirm_v why_o meddle_v they_o at_o all_o with_o these_o article_n why_o load_n they_o protestancy_n with_o the_o unnecessary_a burden_n of_o so_o many_o unproved_a negative_n when_o their_o church_n have_v its_o whole_a be_v before_o these_o negative_n can_v be_v think_v of_o 2._o in_o catholic_n principle_n both_o the_o proposition_n and_o question_n be_v most_o simple_a for_o we_o own_o more_o essential_o simple_a in_o catholic_n principle_n the_o proposition_n and_o question_n be_v more_o than_o simple_a than_o sectary_n do_v and_o therefore_o say_v as_o there_o be_v a_o church_n in_o be_v before_o any_o word_n of_o scripture_n be_v write_v and_o consequent_o the_o write_n of_o scripture_n add_v no_o new_a be_v to_o it_o though_o it_o declare_v thing_n more_o explicit_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o present_a definition_n of_o the_o church_n alter_v nothing_o of_o the_o ancient_a foundation_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o declare_v more_o faith_n as_o scripture_n when_o first_o write_v alter_v not_o the_o antecedent_n church_n doctrine_n so_o the_o church_n now_o alter_v nothing_o of_o the_o ancient_n faith_n explicit_o christ_n verity_n contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o tradition_n and_o this_o power_n the_o church_n ever_o have_v in_o all_o age_n mark_v well_o what_o be_v say_v here_o for_o it_o clear'_v all_o the_o follow_a fallacy_n of_o our_o adversary_n discourse_n 3._o a_o second_o proposition_n what_o ever_o church_n own_o be_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v antecedent_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n can_v so_o long_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o here_o they_o say_v we_o must_v distinguish_v those_o thing_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n which_o give_v it_o be_v from_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a act_n of_o it_o as_o the_o catholic_n church_n very_o true_a but_o the_o only_a question_n difficulty_n they_o wave_v the_o difficulty_n be_v how_o much_o precise_a doctrine_n that_o be_v which_o give_v be_v to_o the_o catholic_n church_n this_o our_o adversary_n content_a with_o a_o general_a word_n of_o a_o church_n be_v wave_v whilst_o catholic_n church_n catholic_n say_v all_z that_o god_n reveal_n be_v necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n say_v plain_o all_o that_o god_n reveal_n and_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o church_n as_o reveal_v be_v so_o essential_o necessary_a to_o the_o very_o be_v of_o it_o that_o not_o one_o article_n can_v be_v reject_v after_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n dare_v protestant_n say_v thus_o much_o of_o their_o negative_a article_n no_o purgatory_n no_o real_a presence_n no_o sacrifice_n etc._n etc._n or_o own_o these_o as_o essential_o of_o their_o church_n of_o protestancy_n to_o that_o distinction_n of_o the_o proper_a act_n of_o the_o church_n and_o one_o be_v the_o due_a administration_n of_o sacrament_n from_o the_o sacrament_n i'faith_o connatural_o precede_v the_o use_n of_o sacrament_n be_v of_o it_o i_o answer_v the_o faith_n of_o sacrament_n which_o connatural_o preced'_v the_o use_n or_o exercise_v of_o they_o be_v most_o essential_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n and_o this_o belief_n every_o true_a christian_a have_v 4._o a_o three_o proposition_n the_o union_n of_o the_o catholic_n same_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o agreement_n be_v the_o same_o church_n depend_v upon_o the_o agreement_n of_o it_o in_o make_v the_o foundation_n of_o its_o be_v to_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o its_o communion_n for_o the_o unity_n be_v intend_v to_o preserve_v the_o be_v there_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n give_v why_o the_o bond_n of_o union_n shall_v extend_v beyond_o the_o foundation_n of_o its_o be_v which_o be_v the_o own_v the_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n it_o be_v not_o worth_a the_o while_n to_o catch_v at_o these_o improper_a expression_n the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n depend_v upon_o the_o agreement_n of_o it_o for_o nothing_o certain_o depend_v on_o itself_o now_o the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n whether_o we_o speak_v of_o the_o objective_a doctrine_n or_o of_o faith_n tend_v into_o that_o doctrine_n be_v essential_o its_o agreement_n therefore_o proper_o it_o depend_v not_o on_o agreement_n but_o real_o be_v agreement_n as_o true_o as_o vnum_fw-la verum_fw-la and_o bonum_fw-la be_v ens_fw-la à _fw-la parte_fw-la rei_fw-la whence_o i_o say_v unity_n be_v not_o intend_v to_o preserve_v the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n as_o a_o cause_n preserve_v its_o effect_n for_o unity_n essential_a to_o the_o be_v be_v the_o very_a thing_n preserve_v god_n unity_n essential_a to_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n be_v the_o thing_n preserve_v by_o almighty_a god_n by_o almighty_a god_n and_o therefore_o can_v preserve_v a_o antecedent_n conceive_v be_v without_o unity_n but_o let_v this_o pass_v consider_v what_o follow_v they_o say_v the_o bond_n of_o union_n shall_v not_o extend_v beyond_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n be_v etc._n etc._n very_o good_a what_o be_v next_o this_o it_o be_v whatsoever_o church_n impose_v the_o belief_n of_o other_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o be_v not_o so_o antecedent_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_n proof_n mere_a talk_n without_o proof_n church_n break_v his_o the_o unity_n of_o it_o and_o those_o church_n who_o desire_v to_o preserve_v unity_n be_v bind_v thereby_o not_o to_o have_v communion_n with_o it_o so_o long_o as_o it_o do_v so_o here_o be_v little_o say_v less_o explicate_v and_o least_o of_o all_o prove_v first_o they_o say_v not_o how_o much_o doctrine_n precise_o make_v up_o the_o more_o catholic_n extend_v not_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n beyond_o its_o foundation_n for_o they_o believe_v so_o much_o as_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o no_o more_o church_n be_v nor_o shall_v ever_o tell_v we_o by_o their_o principle_n 2._o
they_o name_v not_o the_o guilty_a person_n that_o extend_v the_o union_n of_o the_o church_n beyond_o its_o foundation_n be_v they_o catholic_n who_o believe_v all_o that_o god_n reveal_n and_o be_v declare_v by_o the_o church_n to_o be_v reveal_v or_o sectary_n that_o have_v neither_o church_n nor_o scripture_n for_o any_o article_n of_o their_o protestancy_n 3._o if_o they_o hold_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o preserver_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n they_o must_v prove_v it_o by_o strong_a principle_n and_o first_o show_n positive_o by_o scripture_n that_o they_o have_v just_a so_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a and_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n before_o unity_n sectary_n who_o have_v neither_o church_n nor_o scripture_n for_o one_o word_n of_o protestancy_n most_o unreasonable_o pretend_v to_o be_v the_o preserver_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n they_o make_v we_o guilty_a of_o any_o breach_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n this_o will_v be_v a_o hard_a task_n for_o if_o they_o say_v we_o break_v the_o church_n unity_n in_o believe_v a_o sacrifice_n a_o purgatory_n etc._n etc._n they_o be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v and_o by_o plain_a scripture_n that_o either_o their_o contrary_a negative_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v or_o that_o neither_o our_o positives_n nor_o their_o negative_n merit_v a_o act_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v impossible_a for_o what_o scripture_n say_v we_o be_v neither_o to_o believe_v a_o sacrifice_n nor_o the_o contrary_a 5._o in_o the_o next_o place_n they_o come_v to_o solve_n the_o enigma_n to_o explicate_v the_o main_a subject_n of_o the_o present_a dispute_n and_o it_o be_v to_o tell_v we_o what_o those_o thing_n be_v proof_n their_o own_o say_n be_v the_o only_a proof_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v own_v by_o all_o christian_a society_n as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n on_o which_o the_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n depend_v happy_a be_v they_o can_v they_o unridle_v the_o mystery_n necessary_a protestant_n can_v show_v what_o thing_n be_v necessary_a and_o say_v what_o thing_n be_v thus_o necessary_a but_o our_o author_n still_o run_v on_o in_o general_n and_o determin_n nothing_o be_v please_v to_o hear_v his_o resolution_n 6._o nothing_o ought_v to_o be_v own_v as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n by_o christian_a society_n but_o such_o thing_n which_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o all_o those_o society_n be_v antecedent_o necessary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o the_o catholic_n church_n no_o man_n i_o think_v know_v to_o what_o that_o word_n antecedent_o relate_v nor_o can_v this_o author_n make_v sense_n of_o it_o one_o may_v guess_v what_o he_o will_v be_v at_o he_o will_v perhaps_o say_v when_o all_o christian_a impossibility_n they_o fall_v upon_o impossibility_n society_n stand_v firm_o unite_v in_o one_o judgement_n concern_v the_o be_v and_o the_o essential_o of_o a_o church_n than_o we_o be_v right_a in_o these_o essential_o answ_n but_o this_o be_v never_o yet_o see_v nor_o will_v be_v see_v as_o be_v more_o large_o declare_v chap._n 2._o n._n 1._o whither_o i_o remit_v the_o reader_n for_o further_a satisfaction_n he_o add_v two_o thing_n more_o one_o be_v there_o can_v be_v any_o reason_n give_v why_o any_o thing_n else_o shall_v be_v judge_v necessary_a to_o the_o church_n communion_n he_o mean_v not_o who_o be_v to_o judge_v he_o that_o say_v he_o dissent_v not_o in_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o all_o those_o church_n who_o do_v not_o manifest_o dissent_n from_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o the_o first_o age_n be_v agree_v in_o as_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o all_o my_o god_n what_o confusion_n have_v we_o here_o where_o be_v the_o protestant_n that_o can_v assure_v we_o without_o believe_v protestant_n can_v show_v what_o the_o primitive_a church_n believe_v dispute_n what_o the_o catholic_n church_n of_o the_o first_o age_n positive_o believe_v and_o positive_o reject_v can_v this_o one_o point_n be_v clear_v without_o endless_a debate_n a_o better_a union_n may_v be_v hope_a for_n but_o herein_o both_o we_o and_o sectary_n dissent_n as_o be_v prove_v above_o therefore_o by_o church_n no_o appeal_n to_o the_o primitive_a church_n without_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o present_a church_n their_o appeal_n to_o the_o ancient_a church_n whilst_o they_o abstract_v from_o the_o tradition_n of_o a_o present_a catholic_n church_n they_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v ignotum_fw-la per_fw-la ignotius_fw-la and_o convince_v nothing_o 7._o they_o add_v a_o second_o consideration_n which_o may_v be_v reflect_v on_o ad_fw-la perpetuam_fw-la rei_fw-la memoriam_fw-la and_o it_o be_v to_o doctrine_n memorable_a doctrine_n this_o sense_n after_o their_o tell_v we_o that_o in_o case_n of_o great_a division_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n any_o national_a church_n may_v reform_v itself_o as_o be_v suppose_v england_n abuse_v man_n uncertain_a in_o all_o they_o say_v take_v on_o to_o teach_v wherein_o faith_n be_v abuse_v have_v do_v and_o declare_v its_o sense_n of_o those_o abuse_n in_o article_n of_o religion_n yea_o and_o require_v of_o man_n a_o subscription_n against_o those_o abuse_n etc._n etc._n they_o go_v on_o we_o be_v to_o consider_v that_o there_o be_v a_o great_a difference_n between_o the_o own_v some_o proposition_n in_o order_n to_o peace_n and_o the_o believe_v of_o they_o as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n now_o mark_v what_o follow_v doctrine_n no_o orthodox_n church_n ever_o except_v against_o our_o church_n doctrine_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n impose_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n to_o be_v believe_v a_o most_o unproved_a assertion_n which_o article_n be_v except_v against_o by_o other_o church_n name_n the_o orthodox_n church_n that_o ever_o except_v against_o they_o it_o can_v be_v do_v but_o the_o church_n of_o england_n make_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n doctrine_n mark_v the_o doctrine_n but_o such_o as_o have_v the_o testimony_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o all_o age_n and_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v such_o by_o rome_n itself_o and_o in_o other_o thing_n she_o require_v subscription_n to_o truth_n protestant_n religion_n reduce_v to_o inferior_a truth_n they_o not_o as_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o as_o inferior_a truth_n which_o she_o expect_v submission_n to_o in_o order_n to_o her_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n and_o thus_o much_o the_o late_a primate_n of_o ireland_n express_v to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o to_o her_o thirtynine_a article_n 8._o be_v it_o know_v to_o all_o man_n by_o these_o present_n that_o the_o church_n of_o england_n so_o far_o as_o it_o maintain_v these_o church_n the_o english_a church_n consist_v of_o negative_n be_v no_o church_n negative_a protestant_a article_n of_o no_o sacrifice_n no_o real_a presence_n no_o purgatory_n be_v here_o confess_o own_v to_o have_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n reveal_v by_o almighty_a god_n and_o therefore_o so_o far_o it_o be_v neither_o any_o christian_n or_o catholic_n church_n because_o these_o negative_n the_o very_a marrow_n of_o protestancy_n be_v now_o degrade_v and_o throw_v down_o from_o their_o ancient_a height_n of_o article_n to_o the_o low_a rank_n of_o a_o few_o humble_a and_o inferior_a truth_n 9_o but_o let_v we_o go_v on_o who_o assure_v you_o sir_n of_o truth_n inferior_a truth_n be_v none_o of_o god_n truth_n their_o be_v truth_n at_o all_o god_n you_o say_v that_o reveal_n nothing_o but_o most_o supreme_a truth_n own_o be_v none_o of_o them_o no_o orthodox_n church_n no_o ancient_a council_n no_o vnanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n no_o nor_o your_o own_o synod_n in_o england_n though_o without_o proof_n they_o suppose_v they_o to_o be_v truth_n ever_o yet_o define_v they_o as_o you_o two_o young_a pope_n do_v doctor_n bramhal_o and_o yourself_o to_o be_v truth_n of_o a_o inferior_a rank_n and_o order_n be_v it_o how_o you_o will_v i_o be_o sure_a the_o declaration_n before_o these_o article_n say_v they_o be_v article_n of_o religion_n article_n these_o author_n clash_n with_o the_o 39_o article_n and_o contain_v the_o true_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n agreeable_a to_o god_n word_n if_o so_o god_n word_n be_v agreeable_a to_o these_o article_n and_o prove_v they_o again_o some_o of_o your_o own_o coat_n and_o perhaps_o as_o learned_a as_o you_o call_v they_o article_n of_o faith_n certain_o they_o truth_n these_o negative_n of_o the_o 39_o article_n be_v neither_o article_n of_o faith_n nor_o inferior_a truth_n be_v none_o of_o our_o faith_n ergo_fw-la they_o be_v you_o or_o no_o body_n upon_o who_o then_o shall_v we_o rely_v for_o the_o last_o definition_n i_o will_v tell_v you_o both_o the_o assertion_n of_o their_o be_v either_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o inferior_a truth_n stand_v totter_v without_o proof_n or_o principle_n upon_o the_o sole_a fancy_n of_o those_o who_o say_v so_o 10._o 3._o if_o these_o dull_a negative_n be_v only_o vote_v for_o
peace_n among_o you_o without_o reference_n to_o your_o faith_n your_o church_n be_v essential_o hypocritical_a which_o may_v believe_v hypocritical_a the_o english_a church_n be_v essential_o hypocritical_a one_o thing_n and_o must_v profess_v a_o other_o i_o now_o say_v no_o more_o have_v tell_v you_o enough_o to_o this_o sense_n in_o another_o place_n though_o all_o the_o protestant_n in_o england_n do_v not_o only_a dissent_n in_o judgement_n from_o the_o own_n of_o these_o faith_n protestant_n may_v curse_v these_o negative_a article_n and_o yet_o besound_v in_o faith_n negative_n though_o they_o be_v plain_a papist_n in_o hart_n yea_o and_o interior_o curse_v and_o anathematise_v all_o your_o new_a article_n if_o the_o exterior_a demeanour_n be_v fair_o good_a all_o be_v fine_a they_o may_v be_v still_o look_v on_o as_o bless_a child_n of_o your_o new_a negative_a church_n the_o sequel_n be_v undeniable_a for_o they_o may_v believe_v all_o that_o scripture_n say_v and_o this_o be_v faith_n enough_o to_o salvation_n and_o yet_o anathematise_v your_o negative_n not_o at_o all_o contain_v in_o scripture_n and_o whole_o unnecessary_a to_o salvation_n 11._o yet_o far_o you_o protestant_n endless_o talk_v sectary_n a_o hard_a question_n propose_v to_o sectary_n of_o reform_v we_o papist_n by_o scripture_n speak_v once_o plain_o and_o tell_v we_o how_o can_v you_o go_v about_o such_o a_o work_n as_o to_o reclaim_v we_o by_o scripture_n to_o a_o belief_n of_o your_o negative_n when_o you_o have_v not_o one_o syllable_n of_o god_n word_n for_o they_o for_o if_o you_o have_v scripture_n they_o be_v superior_a truth_n reveal_v by_o god_n and_o consequent_o article_n of_o faith_n if_o you_o have_v no_o scripture_n why_o preach_v you_o fall_v doctrine_n why_o teach_v you_o that_o you_o can_v draw_v we_o from_o our_o old_a faith_n to_o your_o new_a negative_a religion_n by_o plain_a scripture_n no_o protestant_a shall_v answer_v to_o answer_v it_o can_v be_v answer_v this_o short_a demand_n 4._o you_o cheat_v the_o world_n when_o you_o offer_v to_o resolve_v protestant_n faith_n which_o be_v no_o more_o resolvable_a into_o divine_a revelation_n than_o arianism_n cheat._n protestant_n resolve_v faith_n a_o mere_a cheat._n be_v because_o you_o must_v now_o confess_v that_o god_n never_o speak_v word_n of_o protestancy_n as_o protestancy_n in_o the_o whole_a bible_n let_v therefore_o the_o world_n judge_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o a_o pure_a cheat_n to_o give_v a_o title_n of_o the_o protestant_n way_n of_o resolve_v faith_n and_o then_o leave_v that_o which_o the_o title_n promise_v to_o talk_v of_o resolve_v a_o faith_n in_o communi_fw-la which_o stand_v in_o no_o need_n of_o your_o resolution_n 12._o to_o see_v this_o more_o evidence_v and_o to_o end_v with_o these_o mere_a nothing_o of_o sectary_n our_o now_o author_n tell_v we_o we_o that_o the_o english_a church_n make_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o such_o as_o have_v the_o testimony_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o all_o age_n yes_o and_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o rome_n etc._n protestant_n church_n no_o more_o a_o church_n then_o a_o arian_n etc._n etc._n itself_o if_o this_o be_v so_o it_o be_v no_o more_o a_o english_a than_o a_o church_n of_o arian_n of_o pelagian_o and_o of_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n for_o this_o man_n will_v say_v that_o a_o faith_n common_a to_o all_o call_v christian_n without_o believe_v more_o be_v the_o english_a faith_n and_o sufficient_a to_o acquire_v heaven_n mark_v the_o proposition_n and_o ask_v first_o what_o be_v now_o become_v of_o the_o christian_n the_o arian_n and_o english_a faith_n agree_v in_o doctrine_n common_a to_o all_o christian_n protestant_n way_n of_o resolve_v protestant_n faith_n next_o and_o most_o just_o call_v it_o a_o mere_a fancy_n a_o new_a coin_a haeresy_n contrary_a to_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n for_o neither_o scripture_n nor_o council_n nor_o father_n nor_o any_o particular_a orthodox_n or_o haeretical_a church_n much_o less_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n own_v the_o belief_n of_o that_o abstract_a doctrine_n wherein_o all_o heretic_n agree_v to_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n all._n a_o new_a coin_a haeresy_n contrary_a to_o all._n the_o whole_a christian_a world_n never_o yet_o say_v to_o believe_v in_o christ_n abstract_v from_o his_o godhead_n and_o two_o nature_n be_v sufficient_a catholic_n hold_v the_o belief_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n and_o transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n as_o arian_n monothelit_n only_o no_o heretic_n much_o less_o catholic_n ever_o yet_o defend_v what_o our_o sectary_n here_o vent_v upon_o fancy_n only_o and_o other_o as_o firm_o adhere_v to_o their_o particular_a heresy_n as_o to_o the_o abstract_a doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n otherwise_o they_o have_v be_v worse_a than_o mad_a to_o have_v abandon_v a_o ancient_a church_n for_o a_o few_o suppose_a inferior_a truth_n which_o neither_o can_v vncatholick_n any_o if_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n be_v enough_o nor_o make_v they_o in_o reaelity_n worse_a or_o better_a christian_n and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n you_o see_v the_o hideous_a sin_n of_o sectary_n who_o mere_o for_o a_o company_n of_o inferior_a truth_n if_o yet_o they_o be_v truth_n have_v shameful_o deserted_n the_o true_a mother_n church_n that_o make_v their_o progenitour_n truth_n the_o sin_n of_o sectary_n who_o have_v trouble_v â_o the_o world_n for_o a_o company_n of_o suppose_a inferior_a truth_n to_o be_v christian_n i_o say_v if_o they_o be_v truth_n for_o i_o utter_o deny_v the_o fall_v supposition_n and_o therefore_o press_v our_o adversary_n to_o speak_v to_o the_o cause_n that_o be_v to_o come_v to_o proof_n and_o principle_n whereby_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o these_o negative_a doctrine_n no_o sacrifice_n no_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n merit_v so_o much_o as_o the_o very_a name_n of_o inferior_a truth_n these_o negative_n can_v be_v prove_v even_o by_o their_o wont_a weak_a way_n of_o argue_v negative_o we_o read_v not_o of_o a_o sacrifice_n or_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a for_o there_o be_v no_o man_n that_o read_v antiquity_n but_o he_o find'_v these_o doctrine_n positive_o assert_v 13._o from_o what_o be_v now_o say_v these_o sequels_fw-fr undeniable_o follow_v first_o that_o protestant_n can_v resolve_v reason_n protestant_n faith_n but_o fancy_n the_o reason_n their_o faith_n but_o into_o fancy_n only_o for_o if_o they_o make_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n only_o to_o be_v their_o sufficient_a faith_n for_o salvation_n and_o resolve_v that_o into_o its_o principle_n both_o fancy_n and_o haeresy_n lie_v at_o the_o very_a bottom_n of_o the_o resolution_n and_o if_o they_o go_v about_o to_o resolve_v their_o negative_a article_n the_o whole_a analysis_n the_o regress_n the_o reduction_n of_o they_o will_v come_v at_o last_o to_o no_o other_o principle_n but_o to_o the_o sole_a fancy_n of_o sectary_n who_o call_v they_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o inferior_a truth_n it_o follow_v 2._o if_o the_o english_a church_n make_v world_n the_o english_a church_n contradict_v the_o whole_a christian_n world_n no_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o such_o as_o have_v the_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n of_o all_o age_n exclude_v other_o it_o do_v not_o only_o contradict_v the_o whole_a christian_a world_n who_o particular_a community_n own_v the_o belief_n of_o more_o doctrine_n necessary_a but_o have_v neither_o all_o and_o therefore_o have_v no_o faith_n at_o all_o faith_n of_o those_o abstract_a article_n now_o believe_v nor_o any_o faith_n at_o all_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n as_o be_v large_o prove_v in_o the_o 2._o chap._n if_o final_o to_o assoil_v these_o difficulty_n sectary_n will_v restrain_v that_o ample_a term_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n to_o their_o imagine_a catholic_n church_n in_o the_o air_n they_o be_v to_o specify_v the_o particular_a society_n of_o this_o vast_a church_n and_o when_o that_o be_v don_n they_o will_v find_v no_o abstract_a doctrine_n common_a to_o salvation_n there_o never_o have_v be_v haeresy_n in_o the_o world_n may_v faith_n common_a to_o all_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n all_o christian_n admit_v of_o by_o any_o sufficient_a to_o gain_v heaven_n for_o be_v this_o true_a there_o have_v never_o be_v heretic_n or_o schismatic_n in_o the_o world_n whilst_o christ_n only_o though_o his_o divinity_n be_v deny_v be_v own_v in_o a_o general_a way_n whereof_o more_o in_o the_o 3._o chap._n 14._o here_o i_o will_v only_o propose_v one_o question_n to_o our_o adversary_n when_o they_o positive_o teach_v that_o that_o which_o our_o saviour_n give_v his_o apostle_n in_o his_o last_o supper_n and_o priest_n now_o consecrate_v daily_o be_v and_o be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o sign_n a_o figure_n only_o of_o christ_n body_n my_o question_n
prove_v it_o in_o every_o place_n of_o their_o faith_n spread_v abroad_o etc._n etc._n what_o think_v you_o be_v this_o not_o yet_o write_v word_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o the_o true_a analogy_n of_o the_o thessalonian_o faith_n as_o well_o dilate_v as_o approve_v of_o what_o final_o be_v that_o form_n of_o doctrine_n commend_v in_o the_o roman_n cap._n 6._o 17_o why_o do_v the_o apostle_n blame_v the_o unsettle_a galatian_n for_o be_v so_o soon_o transfer_v into_o another_o gospel_n and_o denounce_v anathema_n cap._n 1._o 6._o if_o they_o believe_v a_o angel_n preach_v contrary_a to_o his_o former_a doctrine_n all_o these_o and_o many_o other_o passage_n of_o holy_a writ_n manifest_o declare_v religion_n before_o the_o write_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v a_o platform_n of_o christian_a religion_n that_o there_o be_v divine_a doctrine_n teach_v by_o the_o very_a founder_n of_o christianity_n before_o the_o write_n of_o scripture_n there_o be_v a_o platform_n of_o christian_a religion_n make_v by_o the_o very_a apostle_n before_o they_o separate_v themselves_o and_o begin_v their_o preach_v to_o several_a nation_n and_o to_o comply_v with_o this_o rule_n or_o form_n of_o faith_n bless_v st._n paul_n though_o full_a of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n go_v to_o confer_v with_o st._n peter_n and_o the_o rest_n gal._n 2._o 2._o act._n 15._o 36._o upon_o it_o the_o apostle_n hold_v council_n yea_o write_v council_n hold_v upon_o that_o platform_n and_o scripture_n write_v and_o as_o some_o grave_a and_o learned_a doctor_n affirm_v by_o the_o measure_n thereof_o the_o holy_a scripture_n be_v write_v see_v the_o note_n on_o the_o rheims_n testament_n rom._n cap._n 12._o v._n 6._o 3._o be_v it_o how_o sectary_n will_v there_o be_v faith_n in_o the_o world_n before_o write_v scripture_n the_o apostle_n who_o teach_v it_o have_v their_o rule_n of_o doctrine_n prescribe_v by_o a_o master_n the_o apostle_n have_v their_o rule_n of_o doctrine_n from_o a_o certain_a master_n good_a master_n the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o they_o teach_v not_o christian_a doctrine_n upon_o their_o own_o frail_a judgement_n consider_v as_o men._n no_o they_o have_v ever_o the_o guidance_n and_o direction_n of_o this_o bless_a spirit_n with_o they_o and_o as_o his_o instrument_n deliver_v so_o much_o as_o this_o master_n according_a to_o christ_n promise_n give_v assistance_n to_o and_o neither_o more_o nor_o less_o now_o those_o pious_a christian_n apostle_n the_o first_o pious_a christian_n have_v their_o rule_n from_o the_o apostle_n who_o hear_v this_o apostolical_a learning_n make_v it_o most_o certain_o their_o rule_n their_o measure_n of_o faith_n their_o analogy_n and_o form_n of_o doctrine_n whence_o i_o argue_v this_o form_n or_o rule_n of_o oral_a doctrine_n first_o lay_v up_o in_o the_o breast_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o afterward_o deliver_v to_o different_a nation_n be_v neither_o all_o set_v down_o in_o holy_a scripture_n for_o volume_n will_v not_o contain_v it_o nor_o all_o entire_o lose_v it_o be_v pity_n such_o a_o rich_a depositum_fw-la shall_v perish_v therefore_o it_o yet_o remain_v somewhere_o in_o safe_a custody_n church_n that_o doctrine_n be_v yet_o preserve_v in_o the_o church_n but_o no_o place_n be_v fit_a for_o it_o then_o that_o which_o the_o father_n call_v thesaurarium_fw-la dive_v the_o rich_a treasury_n of_o the_o church_n where_o it_o be_v still_o preserve_v and_o those_o timothy_n i_o mean_v those_o evangelist_n those_o pastor_n those_o doctor_n mention_v ephes_n 4._o 11._o appoint_a by_o providence_n to_o edify_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n the_o chief_a preserver_n of_o this_o legacy_n and_o noble_a depositum_fw-la be_v as_o necessity_n require_v to_o impart_v it_o and_o make_v it_o know_v to_o the_o world_n by_o their_o definition_n lest_o like_o child_n we_o be_v carry_v away_o with_o every_o wind_n of_o false_a doctrine_n and_o tradition_n the_o ground_n of_o tradition_n herein_o lie_v the_o very_a ground_n of_o all_o apostolical_a tradition_n this_o be_v not_o i_o but_o the_o great_a vincentius_n lirinensis_n own_o doctrine_n now_o cite_v where_o ponder_v that_o of_o the_o apostle_n o_o timothy_n keep_v thy_o depositum_fw-la he_o ask_v quis_fw-la est_fw-la body_n timotheus_n nisi_fw-la vel_fw-la universa_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la vel_fw-la specialiter_fw-la totum_fw-la corpus_fw-la praepositorum_fw-la &_o c._n who_o be_v now_o or_o at_o this_o depositum_fw-la the_o whole_a church_n or_o ruler_n of_o it_o preserve_v this_o depositum_fw-la day_n our_o timothy_n but_o either_o the_o universal_a church_n or_o more_o special_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o those_o guide_n and_o ruler_n set_v over_o it_o that_o be_v themselves_o to_o have_v the_o entire_a knowledge_n of_o divine_a worship_n or_o to_o infuse_v it_o into_o other_o &_o c_o afterward_o quid_fw-la est_fw-la hoc_fw-la depositum_fw-la what_o be_v this_o deposit_v doctrine_n he_o answer_v id_fw-la quod_fw-la tibi_fw-la creditum_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v that_o which_o be_v commit_v to_o thou_o not_o that_o thou_o invent'_v that_o which_o thou_o have_v receive_v not_o what_o thou_o have_v fancy_v of_o thy_o own_o head_n it_o be_v a_o thing_n not_o of_o wit_n but_o of_o doctrine_n non_fw-la usurpationis_fw-la propriae_fw-la not_o of_o thy_o private_a use_n fashion_v or_o practise_v sed_fw-la doctrine_n the_o church_n no_o author_n but_o keeper_n of_o divine_a doctrine_n publicae_fw-la traditionis_fw-la but_o of_o public_a and_o know_a tradition_n bring_v to_o thou_o handed_z to_o thou_o whereof_o thou_o be_v not_o to_o be_v author_n sed_fw-la custos_fw-la but_o a_o keeper_n and_o preserver_n then_o he_o go_v on_o depositum_fw-la custodi_fw-la catholicae_fw-la fidei_fw-la talentum_fw-la etc._n etc._n 4._o and_o thus_o you_o see_v we_o have_v a_o church_n a_o catholic_a proceed'_v principles_n whereon_o the_o church_n proceed'_v talon_n of_o faith_n commit_v to_o it_o a_o depositum_fw-la of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n lay_v up_o in_o its_o treasury_n we_o have_v a_o moral_a body_n of_o timothy_n of_o teacher_n unite_v with_o one_o supreme_a head_n and_o pastor_n that_o assure_v we_o more_o explicit_o by_o its_o definition_n what_o the_o ancient_n deposit_v doctrine_n be_v and_o reclaim_v we_o if_o we_o swerve_v from_o it_o we_o have_v express_a scripture_n that_o both_o all_o a_o mystical_a body_n of_o teacher_n god_n write_v and_o unwritten_a word_n sectary_n want_v all_o prove_v and_o approve_v the_o church_n proceed_v in_o do_v so_o and_o this_o sacred_a write_v word_n faithful_o interpret_v and_o the_o unwritten_a deposit_v word_n also_o most_o infallible_o propose_v be_v our_o form_n our_o rule_n and_o perfect_a analogy_n of_o faith_n o_o have_v sectary_n but_o half_a as_o much_o for_o what_o they_o bold_o assert_v contrary_a to_o we_o and_o because_o every_o man_n be_v a_o chutch_n with_o they_o they_o define_v more_o than_o our_o church_n define_v the_o consecrate_a host_n be_v bread_n only_o a_o figure_n of_o christ_n body_n only_o there_o be_v two_o sacrament_n only_o work_n justify_v not_o but_o faith_n only_o etc._n etc._n have_v i_o say_v these_o man_n but_o half_a definition_n protestant_n have_v no_o authority_n for_o their_o definition_n so_o much_o authority_n for_o their_o definition_n how_o will_v they_o warble_v out_o the_o note_n of_o their_o novelty_n but_o god_n have_v silence_v they_o for_o they_o have_v neither_o church_n nor_o scripture_n nor_o ancient_a depositum_fw-la nor_o tradition_n nor_o analogy_n nor_o rule_n of_o faith_n nor_o motive_n to_o make_v religion_n talk_v only_o of_o a_o nullity_n and_o a_o unproved_a negative_a religion_n what_o they_o define_v probable_a nor_o any_o other_o thing_n to_o talk_v of_o but_o of_o a_o mere_a nothing_o i_o mean_v the_o nullity_n of_o their_o unproved_a negative_a religion_n 5._o what_o hitherto_o be_v say_v of_o catholic_n definition_n make_v by_o pope_n and_o council_n chief_o relate_v to_o such_o matter_n as_o have_v be_v ancient_o without_o dispute_n reveal_v yea_o and_o believe_v also_o though_o not_o perhaps_o in_o order_n defining_n one_o way_n of_o defining_n to_o all_o so_o explicit_o and_o this_o way_n of_o defining_n some_o divine_n call_v propositionem_fw-la that_o be_v a_o repropose_v of_o mystery_n former_o believe_v whether_o clear_o deduce_v word_n god_n unwritten_a word_n of_o equal_a authority_n with_o his_o write_a word_n out_o of_o god_n word_n or_o draw_v from_o undoubted_a tradition_n it_o be_v the_o very_a same_o for_o as_o the_o oral_n teach_v doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v and_o be_v certain_a as_o doctrine_n register_v in_o scripture_n so_o all_o that_o real_o be_v god_n unwritten_a word_n when_o propose_v to_o we_o by_o the_o church_n as_o such_o be_v in_o substance_n of_o equal_a authority_n and_o credit_n with_o the_o write_a for_o it_o be_v not_o the_o set_n down_o of_o truth_n in_o velume_v or_o parchment_n that_o add_n more_o weight_n to_o they_o or_o make_v they_o high_a verity_n and_o here_o by_o the_o way_n i_o can_v but_o reflect_v on_o the_o
succession_n of_o their_o church_n of_o their_o bishop_n of_o their_o pastor_n by_o virtue_n of_o any_o immemorial_n tradition_n let_v argument_n sectary_n must_v solve_v their_o own_o argument_n they_o also_o vouchsafe_v to_o give_v in_o that_o title_n whereby_o they_o lie_v claim_v to_o a_o possession_n of_o truth_n what_o ever_o be_v allegeable_a for_o the_o one_o or_o other_o whether_o it_o be_v tradition_n scripture_n or_o father_n will_v suffer_v more_o contradiction_n from_o innumerable_a call_v christian_n than_o the_o least_o article_n if_o any_o be_v little_a of_o our_o catholic_n faith_n therefore_o they_o must_v solve_n their_o own_o argument_n the_o reason_n be_v if_o they_o plead_v traditjoin_v for_o a_o continue_a succession_n of_o a_o protestant_a church_n ever_o since_o christ_n the_o whole_a christian_a world_n yea_o even_a protestant_n themselves_o oppose_v the_o paradox_n if_o their_o plea_n for_o pure_a protestancy_n be_v scripture_n they_o will_v meet_v with_o as_o many_o adversary_n have_v not_o one_o syllable_n for_o it_o in_o god_n word_n if_o final_o they_o make_v a_o belief_n common_a to_o all_o christian_n to_o be_v their_o essential_a faith_n none_o like_v the_o doctrine_n both_o friend_n and_o enemy_n catholic_n and_o heretic_n stand_v against_o they_o therefore_o i_o say_v once_o more_o they_o must_v solve_v their_o own_o objection_n solve_v the_o argument_n be_v solve_v 6._o now_o you_o shall_v have_v my_o answer_n and_o i_o say_v a_o argument_n that_o draw_v all_o the_o force_v it_o have_v from_o the_o opposition_n of_o enemy_n and_o they_o be_v all_o know_a it_o opposition_n of_o heretic_n no_o proof_n against_o it_o heretic_n that_o oppose_v our_o catholic_n tradition_n destroy_v not_o only_o evident_a truth_n but_o also_o impugn'_v christ_n and_o christian_a religion_n atheist_n make_v objection_n against_o god_n jew_n against_o christ_n yea_o and_o the_o very_a instance_n now_o allow_v of_o suppose_v some_o wilful_a zelots_n contrary_a to_o the_o common_a receive_v tradition_n of_o so_o many_o monarch_n undoubted_a succession_n you_o christianity_n christian_n truth_n meet_v with_o adversary_n he_o that_o will_v side_n with_o such_o opponent_n shall_v at_o last_o desert_n christianity_n see_v therefore_o how_o weak_a this_o way_n of_o argue_v be_v believe_v it_o there_o be_v no_o one_o christian_a verity_n but_o have_v its_o adversary_n therefore_o the_o man_n that_o will_v side_n with_o such_o opponent_n and_o cavil_v also_o because_o a_o company_n of_o dismember_v and_o jar_a sectary_n do_v so_o must_v look_v how_o he_o strike_v lest_o he_o cut_v to_o deep_a and_o wound_v those_o he_o will_v not_o hurt_v for_o at_o last_o he_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o shake_v of_o the_o very_a name_n a_o notion_n of_o a_o christian_n i_o will_v say_v in_o a_o word_n what_o be_v more_o ample_o lay_v forth_o disc_n 1._o chap._n 7._o n._n 4._o 5._o we_o have_v a_o ancient_a church_n against_o these_o scatter_a company_n of_o novellist_n a_o church_n unite_v in_o doctrine_n against_o their_o jar_n and_o endless_a dissension_n a_o glorious_a church_n manifest_v by_o such_o mark_n and_o motive_n as_o make_v the_o world_n christian_n and_o these_o plead_v against_o their_o vnevidence_v opinion_n final_o we_o have_v most_o certain_a tradition_n against_o their_o uncertain_a guess_n upon_o such_o proof_n which_o can_v be_v shake_v we_o stand_v therefore_o unless_o our_o adversary_n beside_o the_o multitude_n of_o opponent_n bring_v rational_a proof_n against_o our_o possession_n which_o rest_v at_o last_o upon_o undeniable_a principle_n we_o be_v safe_a and_o can_v be_v daunt_v alas_o the_o mere_a number_n of_o know_a enemy_n without_o evidence_n proofle_n clamour_n of_o know_a enemy_n without_o a_o rational_a trial._n proofle_n to_o warrant_v what_o be_v pretend_a seem_v much_o like_a unjust_a clamour_n in_o a_o disorder_v commonwealth_n loud_a it_o be_v true_a but_o as_o senseless_a as_o loud_a when_o reason_n ought_v to_o have_v place_n and_o plead_v the_o cause_n by_o proof_n and_o principle_n therefore_o we_o appeal_v to_o principle_n may_v they_o bear_v sway_n we_o be_v content_a if_o not_o we_o tell_v you_o above_o though_o as_o many_o heretic_n rise_v up_o against_o we_o as_o there_o be_v atheist_n opposite_a to_o god_n and_o jew_n to_o christ_n we_o regard_v they_o not_o if_o they_o come_v unarm_v and_o only_a fight_n by_o the_o vote_n of_o their_o own_o scatter_a and_o divide_v company_n but_o enough_o be_v say_v of_o this_o subject_a in_o the_o discourse_n now_o cite_v 7._o here_o i_o will_v only_o add_v one_o consideration_n more_o and_o it_o be_v to_o assure_v our_o adversary_n though_o they_o run_v to_o pass_v age_n that_o be_v the_o whole_a world_n over_o and_o gather_v all_o the_o vote_n of_o enemy_n either_o against_o the_o possession_n or_o the_o ancient_a tradition_n of_o our_o church_n they_o only_o give_v we_o a_o number_n of_o jar_a suffrage_n which_o bind_v up_o together_o can_v amount_v to_o a_o weak_a probability_n schism_n a_o weak_a probability_n though_o grant_v can_v clear_v sectary_n from_o schism_n however_o let_v truth_n suffer_v suppose_v they_o weak_o probable_a be_v this_o enough_o think_v you_o to_o warrant_v sectary_n foul_a schism_n be_v here_o ground_n enough_o to_o justify_v a_o evident_a divorce_n make_v from_o a_o ancient_a church_n wherein_o their_o ancestor_n live_v peaceable_o time_n out_o of_o mind_n age_n after_o age_n without_o trouble_n and_o disturbance_n no._n all_o be_v improbable_a for_o what_o ever_o be_v less_o than_o evidence_n ground_v on_o sure_a principle_n will_v show_v itself_o to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o proofle_n cavil_v against_o so_o long_a prescription_n and_o immemorial_n possession_n of_o our_o ancient_n faith_n 8._o some_o may_v yet_o reply_v all_o that_o be_v say_v hitherto_o objection_n a_o objection_n show_v only_o a_o personal_a succession_n of_o pope_n prelate_n pastor_n and_o people_n in_o forego_v age_n but_o be_v far_o from_o prove_v the_o main_a point_n in_o controversy_n they_o mean_v a_o full_a and_o quiet_a possession_n of_o truth_n which_o we_o make_v so_o hereditary_a to_o these_o pope_n and_o bishop_n descend_v from_o st._n peter_n that_o it_o be_v never_o lose_v this_o they_o say_v be_v to_o be_v prove_v i_o answer_v we_o be_v yet_o oblige_v to_o prove_v nothing_o for_o the_o very_a testimony_n the_o vnanimous_a it_o when_o the_o church_n give_v in_o her_o evidence_n sectary_n be_v to_o disprove_v it_o consent_n the_o constant_a tradition_n of_o our_o unite_a and_o learned_a church_n without_o more_o be_v most_o pregnant_a argument_n as_o well_o for_o the_o possession_n of_o apostolical_a truth_n lay_v claim_v to_o as_o for_o the_o personal_a succession_n of_o our_o catholic_n pastor_n therefore_o unless_o sectary_n can_v weaken_v this_o plea_n by_o a_o contrary_a evidence_n more_o strong_a than_o our_o church_n tradition_n be_v and_o then_o the_o prove_v be_v incumbent_n on_o they_o we_o stand_v firm_a upon_o our_o olim_fw-la possideo_fw-la which_o can_v be_v shake_v i_o say_v by_o a_o contrary_a evidence_n strong_a than_o our_o church_n testimony_n and_o tradition_n speak_v now_o it_o be_v your_o time_n of_o prove_v what_o have_v you_o to_o allege_v against_o this_o sole_a improbable_a want_v of_o principle_n make_v sectary_n cavil_n improbable_a consent_n and_o tradition_n be_v it_o scripture_n produce_v it_o and_o we_o be_v silence_v if_o not_o vouchsafe_v to_o hold_v your_o peace_n hereafter_o have_v you_o the_o consent_n of_o father_n or_o ancient_a council_n to_o make_v your_o cause_n good_a against_o our_o plead_v tradition_n and_o the_o ancient_a possession_n of_o truth_n with_o it_o no._n examen_fw-la these_o learned_a volume_n you_o will_v not_o find_v one_o clear_a sentence_n favour_v your_o unjust_a process_n against_o a_o church_n that_o make_v your_o progenitor_n christian_n what_o then_o remain_v arian_n sectary_n own_o vote_n as_o weightles_a as_o the_o arian_n to_o scare_v we_o with_o but_o your_o ownself_n simple_a vote_n and_o if_o these_o cast_v as_o it_o be_v in_o a_o balance_n against_o our_o ancient_a possession_n can_v out_o weigh_v it_o and_o so_o deprive_v we_o of_o our_o right_n the_o arian_n long_o since_o have_v destroy_v we_o all_o for_o their_o vote_n be_v as_o weighty_a as_o unite_v as_o you_o yes_o and_o more_o numerous_a 9_o well_o though_o we_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o prove_v prove_v a_o few_o proof_n brief_o hint_v at_o though_o we_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o prove_v what_o both_o tradition_n and_o our_o ancient_a possession_n convince_v i_o will_v yet_o hint_n most_o brief_o at_o a_o few_o proof_n in_o behalf_n of_o our_o just_a possession_n first_o it_o be_v a_o undeniable_a verity_n that_o christ_n found_v a_o catholic_n church_n and_o it_o be_v as_o evident_a sectary_n confess_v it_o that_o he_o invest_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n in_o a_o ancient_a possession_n of_o truth_n 2._o it_o be_v a_o undoubted_a verity_n
the_o plea_n of_o possession_n and_o be_v try_v by_o the_o law_n i_o answer_v it_o be_v a_o strange_a piece_n of_o a_o argument_n possession_n the_o question_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v remove_v from_o the_o plea_n of_o possession_n and_o say_v it_o must_v not_o be_v remove_v unless_o you_o can_v show_v by_o your_o logic_n that_o when_o a_o man_n have_v two_o good_a proof_n for_o a_o verity_n he_o ought_v not_o to_o make_v use_n of_o both_o but_z be_v to_o content_v himself_o with_o the_o one_o only_o thus_o it_o be_v we_o prove_v the_o church_n infallibility_n by_o significant_a scripture_n as_o a_o possessor_n bonae_fw-la fidei_fw-la prove_v the_o right_n to_o his_o land_n by_o his_o ancient_a write_n and_o instance_n a_o instance_n as_o he_o add_n to_o his_o write_n a_o just_a possession_n so_o we_o plead_v also_o possession_n in_o our_o case_n why_o therefore_o shall_v we_o throw_v away_o this_o second_o proof_n take_v from_o possession_n unless_o a_o evident_a law_n come_v against_o it_o which_o we_o expect_v from_o you_o but_o fear_v it_o not_o sir_n you_o possess_v a_o benefice_n and_o can_v if_o need_v be_v show_v how_o you_o come_v by_o it_o whether_o it_o be_v a_o write_n or_o some_o thing_n equivalent_a it_o import_v not_o you_o have_v beside_o the_o possession_n of_o it_o suppose_v now_o any_o one_o will_v endeavour_v to_o disturb_v you_o or_o doubt_v of_o your_o suppose_a right_n you_o will_v plead_v both_o these_o title_n will_v you_o not_o answer_v this_o and_z your_o objection_n be_v solve_v 17._o a_o five_o objection_n page_n 628._o lie_v i_o know_v not_o how_o wrap_v up_o in_o twenty_o obscurity_n it_o be_v much_o to_o this_o sense_n we_o must_v prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o other_o way_n to_o interpret_v the_o law_n of_o christ_n but_o by_o our_o church_n withal_o that_o the_o church_n can_v come_v into_o a_o possession_n of_o any_o thing_n but_o what_o be_v original_o give_v she_o by_o the_o legislator_n mark_v upon_o what_o duty_n we_o be_v with_o sectary_n put_v we_o on_o duty_n which_o they_o can_v comply_v with_o put._n we_o must_v prove_v and_o by_o the_o âaw_v for_o here_o be_v the_o last_o trial_n with_o these_o man_n that_o our_o church_n interpret_n faithful_o whilst_o they_o sit_v down_o speechless_a as_o it_o be_v in_o their_o own_o cause_n and_o must_v not_o prove_v that_o their_o church_n interpret_n better_a moreover_o note_v also_o by_o the_o way_n how_o the_o whole_a question_n be_v interpretation_n the_o question_n be_v remove_v from_o the_o law_n to_o interpretation_n now_o remove_v from_o the_o law_n and_o come_v to_o this_o issue_n whether_o our_o interpretation_n or_o they_o be_v more_o conformable_a to_o god_n word_n most_o certain_o their_o interpretation_n be_v worth_a little_a because_o confess_o fallible_a and_o therefore_o proceed'_v not_o from_o the_o infallible_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o be_v ample_o declare_v adversary_n the_o proof_n lie_v on_o our_o adversary_n disc_n 2._o c._n 9_o n._n 7._o 8._o 9_o where_o we_o propose_v the_o difficulty_n and_o prove_v that_o one_o only_a oracle_n christ_n own_o spouse_n which_o be_v assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n interpret_n scripture_n infallibily_n now_o if_o our_o adversary_n except'_v against_o our_o scripture_n and_o reason_n there_o allege_v the_o task_n of_o prove_v will_v lie_v on_o he_o for_o he_o must_v either_o prove_v that_o our_o proof_n be_v proofle_n or_o that_o he_o far_o surpass_v they_o in_o worth_n and_o a_o clear_a evidence_n and_o he_o will_v find_v a_o insuperable_a difficulty_n in_o both_o all_o i_o say_v now_o be_v though_o the_o interpretation_n of_o our_o church_n be_v fallible_a it_o be_v as_o good_a as_o you_o and_o if_o we_o respect_v its_o age_n which_o give_v some_o pre-eminence_n it_o may_v be_v account_v much_o better_a we_o have_v large_o answer_v to_o the_o other_o part_n of_o the_o objection_n in_o the_o whole_a first_o discourse_n and_o prove_v that_o the_o church_n can_v come_v into_o the_o possession_n of_o any_o doctrine_n but_o what_o be_v allow_v of_o by_o the_o legislator_n it_o be_v otherwise_o err._n a_o fallible_a church_n may_v bold_o err._n i_o be_o sure_a with_o your_o church_n which_o because_o fallible_a may_v alter_v when_o and_o as_o often_o as_o sectary_n pleas._n to_o end_n our_o adversary_n shall_v have_v know_v that_o the_o matter_n now_o debate_v depend_v not_o immediate_o on_o the_o church_n infallibility_n for_o here_o be_v our_o immediate_a plea_n the_o church_n be_v once_o true_a and_o ever_o since_o its_o first_o foundation_n plead_v constant_o this_o quiet_a possession_n of_o truth_n ergo_fw-la unless_o that_o first_o ground_n be_v shake_v and_o this_o plead_v possession_n be_v evident_o disprove_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v suppose_v true_a still_o and_o thus_o you_o see_v how_o the_o obligation_n of_o prove_v lie_v irremovable_o on_o our_o adversary_n 19_o there_o yet_o remain_v some_o other_o wordy_a objection_n but_o i_o wave_v they_o because_o they_o be_v solve_v and_o in_o real_a truth_n be_v mere_a supposition_n and_o no_o proof_n sometime_o they_o will_v have_v tradition_n to_o be_v prove_v which_o be_v its_o own_o manifest_a proof_n sometime_o they_o tell_v we_o that_o a_o bare_a possession_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n be_v a_o senseless_a plea_n they_o suppose_v we_o have_v no_o more_o sometime_o that_o we_o be_v plain_o the_o imposer_n and_o they_o not_o aggressor_n and_o both_o be_v suppose_v i_o pass_v these_o and_o now_o hasten_v to_o one_o objection_n more_o solve_v in_o a_o three_o proposition_n chap._n xii_o an_o other_o objection_n and_o whether_o protestant_n can_v acquit_v themselves_o of_o schism_n 1._o some_o may_v argue_v further_o and_o say_v we_o have_v objection_n a_o simple_a objection_n hitherto_o suppose_v a_o wrong_a principle_n viz._n that_o our_o error_n be_v to_o be_v show_v we_o evident_o which_o be_v not_o so_o for_o it_o be_v enough_o to_o make_v they_o know_v by_o strong_a moral_a proof_n these_o sufficient_o convince_v we_o as_o guilt_o and_o clear_v they_o of_o the_o crime_n of_o schism_n neither_o can_v we_o have_v strong_a argument_n then_o moral_a in_o this_o matter_n because_o principle_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o evident_a in_o themselves_o all_o discourse_n therefore_o build_v on_o they_o must_v fall_v short_a of_o metaphysical_a evidence_n observe_v in_o pass_v if_o our_o protestant_n as_o they_o think_v bring_v strong_a moral_a argument_n against_o our_o suppose_a error_n we_o give_v they_o as_o good_a as_o they_o bring_v and_o clear_v our_o cause_n by_o as_o strong_a good_a moral_a solution_n to_o those_o argument_n they_o say_v the_o one_o and_o we_o the_o other_o who_o must_v be_v believe_v or_o who_o must_v judge_v here_o and_o if_o again_o they_o hold_v themselves_o by_o force_n of_o such_o moral_a proof_n acquit_v of_o schism_n which_o all_o sectary_n pretend_v to_o we_o charge_v it_o again_o on_o they_o by_o far_o more_o valid_a argument_n who_o judge_n now_o who_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v neither_o of_o we_o yet_o for_o hitherto_o we_o only_o talk_v without_o principle_n yet_o the_o catholic_n have_v his_o principle_n in_o readiness_n a_o long_a ancient_a possession_n now_o insist_v on_o principle_n the_o catholic_n answer_n found_v on_o a_o certain_a principle_n which_o be_v eleven_o point_n of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o what_o good_a law_n do_v our_o protestant_n take_v this_o right_n from_o he_o or_o turn_v he_o out_o of_o possession_n by_o what_o strong_a moral_a proof_n ground_v on_o a_o undubitable_a moral_a principle_n can_v they_o convince_v we_o of_o error_n and_o clear_v themselves_o of_o schism_n i_o will_v tell_v you_o and_o it_o be_v a_o truth_n they_o have_v neither_o principle_n we_o will_v glad_o hear_v of_o protestant_n proof_n against_o we_o reduce_v to_o sound_a principle_n proof_n nor_o principle_n to_o rely_v on_o but_o their_o own_o proofle_n word_n if_o i_o wrong_v they_o they_o can_v right_o themselselves_fw-mi and_o convince_v i_o by_o good_a argument_n in_o form_n to_o what_o be_v add_v of_o the_o vnevidence_n of_o faith_n i_o answer_v though_o the_o principle_n thereof_o for_o example_n the_o word_n of_o scripture_n or_o the_o definition_n of_o council_n want_v metaphysical_a evidence_n in_o themselves_o because_o only_o reveal_v conclusion_n principle_n of_o faith_n once_o admit_v of_o may_v ground_v a_o certain_a conclusion_n truth_n yet_o they_o be_v certain_a and_o once_o admit_v of_o as_o certain_a can_v ground_n a_o discourse_n which_o if_o well_o deduce_v need_n be_v no_o more_o to_o falter_v or_o deviate_v from_o good_a form_n then_o if_o we_o argue_v out_o of_o euclid_n principle_n thus_o much_o per_fw-la transennam_fw-la now_o to_o answer_v the_o argument_n home_o here_o be_v 2._o my_o three_o proposition_n protestant_n can_v so_o much_o as_o probably_n acquit_v themselves_o of_o schism_n nor_o probably_n impeach_v
the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n of_o error_n causal_n of_o their_o schism_n i_o prove_v the_o first_o part_n of_o my_o assertion_n no_o probability_n can_v acquit_v they_o of_o schism_n when_o evidence_n lay_v that_o crime_n on_o they_o but_o this_o be_v true_a and_o to_o prove_v the_o assumption_n i_o will_v not_o here_o tell_v they_o protestant_n evidence_n lay_v the_o crime_n of_o schism_n on_o protestant_n how_o improbable_a it_o be_v that_o this_o schism_n which_o take_v its_o rise_n from_o one_o discontent_a luther_n and_o a_o disgusted_a prince_n can_v have_v any_o good_a in_o it_o the_o cause_n from_o whence_o it_o come_v look_n like_o naught_o and_o the_o doleful_n effect_v which_o follow_v worse_a nor_o will_v i_o urge_v again_o how_o improbable_a it_o be_v that_o this_o one_o prince_n and_o one_o friar_n of_o life_n confess_o vicious_a can_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v go_v about_o any_o work_n of_o god_n or_o piety_n when_o mere_a passion_n hurry_a they_o on_o to_o struggle_v against_o their_o own_o conscience_n against_o a_o whole_a church_n and_o the_o faith_n of_o their_o decease_a ancestor_n these_o consideration_n i_o will_v wave_v 3._o yet_o i_o can_v but_o note_v how_o improbable_a it_o be_v to_o suppose_v that_o all_o those_o learned_a council_n which_o ancient_o teach_v christianity_n all_o those_o learned_a bishop_n those_o doctor_n those_o religious_a who_o like_a star_n beautify_v the_o terrestrial_a heaven_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n they._n it_o be_v improbable_a to_o say_v that_o sectary_n discover_v error_n in_o the_o church_n unseen_a by_o thousand_o more_o learned_a and_o numerous_a than_o they._n church_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n together_o have_v notwithstanding_o their_o vigilancy_n such_o a_o mist_n cast_v before_o their_o eye_n as_o not_o to_o discover_v those_o palpable_a gross_a error_n which_o our_o protestant_n have_v now_o so_o late_o espy_v say_v therefore_o the_o question_n be_v worth_a answer_v how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o our_o protestant_n first_o see_v these_o error_n and_o upon_o that_o monstruous_a sight_n quit_v rome_n whilst_o other_o as_o sharp-sighted_n as_o numerous_a and_o learned_a as_o they_o see_v none_o of_o they_o for_o many_o age_n before_o speak_v probable_o why_o for_o example_n do_v not_o so_o eminent_a a_o saint_n and_o doctor_n as_o st._n gregory_n the_o great_a be_v or_o his_o clergy_n so_o many_o follow_a innocent_n so_o many_o clements_n so_o many_o urban_n see_v these_o error_n and_o upon_o the_o discovery_n separate_a themselves_o long_v since_o from_o this_o suppose_a err_v church_n i_o will_v hear_v their_o answer_n if_o they_o except_v against_o these_o because_o they_o be_v pope_n i_o ask_v why_o at_o least_o do_v not_o so_o many_o bernard_n so_o many_o malachy_n so_o many_o bennet_n so_o many_o anselm_n so_o many_o king_n so_o many_o prince_n who_o temporal_a interest_n god_n know_v lay_v not_o in_o adore_v rome_n with_o innumerable_a other_o long_a ago_o desert_a this_o suppose_a err_v church_n and_o revolt_v from_o it_o as_o luther_n do_v be_v it_o not_o a_o degree_n of_o madness_n to_o suppose_n that_o all_o hypocritical_a these_o learned_a and_o innumerable_a professor_n must_v either_o be_v suppose_v stupid_o blind_a or_o wicked_o hypocritical_a these_o worthy_a powerful_a and_o learned_a professor_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n be_v either_o so_o stupidly_n blind_a as_o not_o to_o have_v see_v such_o error_n or_o so_o wicked_o hypocritical_a as_o to_o have_v wink_v at_o they_o after_o a_o clear_a discovery_n i_o say_v more_o the_o professor_n of_o this_o church_n be_v so_o far_o of_o from_o not_o see_v those_o doctrine_n which_o protestant_n now_o call_v error_n for_o example_n the_o offer_v up_o of_o sacrifice_n for_o the_o dead_a pray_v to_o saint_n etc._n etc._n that_o the_o denial_n of_o they_o be_v positive_o condemn_v as_o heretical_a in_o foregoing_a sectary_n none_o shall_v ever_o probably_n answer_v this_o question_n no_o more_o then_o give_v satisfaction_n to_o a_o other_o viz._n 4._o when_o this_o schism_n be_v first_o make_v by_o a_o few_o disgusted_a man_n in_o england_n why_o do_v so_o many_o not_o only_o in_o that_o island_n though_o temporal_o undo_v for_o their_o monstruous_a the_o opposition_n make_v so_o universal_o against_o this_o schism_n prove_v it_o monstruous_a pain_n but_o innumerable_a more_o in_o the_o christian_a world_n abroad_o stand_v up_o against_o it_o and_o oppose_v it_o on_o its_o first_o appearance_n as_o a_o most_o pernicious_a novelty_n all_o these_o condemn_v it_o as_o heretical_a and_o hold_v the_o broacher_n of_o it_o for_o heretic_n now_o have_v either_o goodness_n reason_n or_o religion_n accompany_v this_o schism_n it_o shall_v have_v rather_o gain_v a_o universal_a applaus_n from_o other_o more_o numerous_a and_o learned_a then_o those_o be_v who_o begin_v it_o but_o all_o be_v contrary_a it_o appear_v like_o another_o ismaël_n manus_fw-la eius_fw-la contra_fw-la omnes_fw-la &_o manus_fw-la omnium_fw-la contra_fw-la eum_fw-la as_o opposite_a to_o all_o so_o universal_o oppose_v by_o all_o and_o how_o can_v these_o few_o abberter_n of_o it_o when_o sectary_n the_o intolerable_a pride_n of_o sectary_n this_o foul_a work_n first_o begin_v without_o intolerable_a pride_n think_v themselves_o wise_a in_o patronise_a it_o then_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n in_o condemn_v it_o 5._o here_o then_o be_v my_o first_o argument_n against_o this_o schism_n a_o new_a sect_n schism_n or_o heresy_n call_v it_o what_o catholic_n a_o new_a doctrine_n never_o hear_v of_o before_o and_o so_o universal_o oppose_v can_v be_v sound_a and_o catholic_n you_o will_v which_o be_v never_o hear_v of_o before_o in_o the_o world_n and_o on_o its_o first_o appearance_n meet_v with_o a_o universal_a opposition_n make_v by_o all_o other_o christian_n who_o then_o live_v can_v be_v from_o god_n or_o sound_v and_o approve_a doctrine_n but_o thus_o the_o schism_n of_o protestant_n be_v at_o its_o first_o rise_n universal_o oppose_v and_o be_v so_o yet_o ergo_fw-la it_o can_v be_v from_o god_n or_o sound_a doctrine_n the_o major_n be_v evident_a in_o the_o case_n of_o arius_n pelagius_n and_o other_o heretic_n for_o the_o universal_a dislike_n heretic_n as_o be_v clear_a in_o the_o case_n of_o former_a heretic_n and_o opposition_n raise_v against_o these_o schism_n and_o heresy_n be_v even_o antecedent_o to_o their_o condemnation_n in_o council_n proof_n enough_o against_o they_o and_o if_o our_o adversary_n require_v more_o to_o wit_v a_o council_n condemnation_n we_o have_v it_o also_o they_o can_v in_o justice_n make_v any_o more_o exception_n against_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n then_o arius_n make_v against_o the_o nicene_n council_n the_o minor_a be_v as_o clear_v for_o all_o christian_n who_o then_o be_v in_o be_v condemn_v the_o english_a heresy_n and_o schism_n grecian_n dislike_v it_o and_o do_v so_o to_o this_o day_n arian_n abyssins_n nestorian_n etc._n etc._n and_o most_o of_o all_o catholic_n oppose_v it_o so_o far_o that_o not_o one_o will_v believe_v as_o protestant_n do._n so_o true_a it_o be_v manus_fw-la omnium_fw-la contra_fw-la eum_fw-la all_o band_v against_o this_o novelty_n therefore_o it_o can_v be_v from_o god_n or_o approve_a doctrine_n now._n that_o our_o protestant_n since_o their_o first_o rise_n have_v gain_v the_o company_n of_o some_o few_o jar_a and_o dissent_v brethren_n prove_v nothing_o for_o arius_n in_o time_n get_v more_o and_o i_o believe_v have_v they_o better_o unite_v in_o doctrine_n then_o these_o ever_o will_v be_v chap._n xiii_o a_o second_o argument_n against_o this_o schism_n of_o sectary_n cavil_v concern_v error_n enter_v the_o church_n insensible_o 1._o i_o argue_v 2._o protestant_n seem_o at_o least_o own_o sectary_n a_o argument_n ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la against_o sectary_n a_o holy_a universal_a catholic_n church_n before_o luther_n of_o a_o very_a large_a extent_n which_o comprise_v a_o generality_n of_o christian_n over_o and_o above_o the_o number_n of_o roman_a catholic_n this_o church_n be_v sure_o that_o jerusalem_n mention_v by_o the_o prophet_n upon_o who_o wales_n watchman_n be_v place_v and_o be_v by_o duty_n to_o speak_v in_o god_n cause_n when_o his_o honour_n be_v concern_v in_o this_o church_n we_o shall_v certain_o find_v those_o vigilant_a pastor_n doctor_n and_o teacher_n ephes_n 4._o who_o perfect_a saint_n and_o still_o edify_v the_o mystical_a body_n of_o christ_n to_o the_o end_n that_o we_o be_v own_o protestant_n high_o disgrace_n that_o large_a catholic_n church_n which_o they_o own_o not_o carry_v away_o by_o every_o wind_n of_o doctrine_n etc._n etc._n now_o i_o assume_v but_o with_o our_o protestant_n leave_v all_o the_o watchman_n all_o the_o pastor_n all_o the_o teacher_n of_o this_o ample_a and_o far_o extend_v church_n be_v so_o careless_o asleep_a so_o negligent_a and_o forgetful_a of_o their_o duty_n for_o the_o vast_a interval_n of_o a_o thousand_o
year_n together_o that_o they_o take_v no_o notice_n of_o these_o now_o imagine_v roman_n error_n by_o any_o public_a censure_n or_o condemnation_n but_o contrariwise_o permit_v rome_n to_o revel_v to_o countenance_v error_n yea_o and_o to_o be_v quite_o carry_v away_o with_o the_o slight_a doctrine_n as_o they_o suppose_v of_o a_o unbloody_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o purgatory_n etc._n etc._n only_o forsooth_o one_o martin_n luther_n and_o our_o protestant_n have_v such_o quick_a eye_n as_o to_o see_v they_o and_o upon_o the_o sight_n to_o hold_v themselves_o oblige_v in_o conscience_n to_o make_v a_o eternal_a divorce_n from_o this_o church_n wherein_o they_o be_v baptise_a observe_v here_o not_o only_a paradox_n upon_o paradox_n but_o also_o a_o whole_a heap_n of_o impossibility_n pack_v together_o our_o new_a man_n see_v these_o too_o plain_a and_o visible_a error_n but_o this_o large_a vigilant_a church_n see_v they_o church_n protestant_n make_v themselves_o more_o wise_a vigilant_a and_o zealous_a then_o then_o their_o large_a catholic_n church_n not_o they_o be_v so_o sensible_a of_o the_o honour_n of_o christian_a faith_n as_o to_o condemn_v they_o but_o this_o great_a church_n be_v so_o senseless_a as_o to_o dissemble_v all._n they_o now_o separate_a spurn_v and_o kik_n at_o this_o church_n as_o antichristian_a but_o that_o ample_a catholic_n society_n do_v never_o so_o much_o as_o put_v a_o mark_n of_o dishonour_n on_o rome_n for_o want_v of_o true_a doctrine_n if_o ever_o such_o a_o mark_n note_v censure_n private_a or_o public_a act_n issue_v out_o from_o a_o universal_a church_n against_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n let_v they_o speak_v and_o i_o will_v be_v silent_a hereafter_o if_o not_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a boldness_n to_o make_v themselves_o more_o wise_a zealous_n and_o vigilant_a than_o that_o universal_a church_n be_v which_o here_o to_o their_o prejudice_n they_o own_v because_o forsooth_o rome_n must_v loose_a the_o title_n of_o the_o church_n universal_a 2._o our_o protestant_n therefore_o must_v grant_v there_o be_v no_o deny_v it_o that_o either_o this_o universal_a church_n have_v lose_v her_o eye_n or_o be_v more_o than_o impious_o negligent_a over_o the_o charge_n commit_v to_o she_o which_o be_v to_o teach_v to_o instruct_v to_o reprehend_v and_o crush_v heresy_n as_o they_o appear_v or_o which_o be_v the_o real_a truth_n that_o they_o find_v fault_n with_o error_n which_o never_o be_v now_o here_o observe_v a_o other_o great_a advantage_n give_v against_o themselves_o and_o how_o they_o honour_n rome_n and_o disgrace_v their_o own_o imagine_a and_o more_o universal_a church_n church_n the_o diligence_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n compare_v with_o the_o negligence_n of_o their_o great_a imagine_a catholic_n church_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v vigilant_a and_o as_o the_o world_n know_v ever_o ready_a age_n after_o age_n to_o suppress_v heresy_n as_o they_o rise_v up_o and_o declare_v against_o they_o witness_n the_o condemn_a arian_n nestorian_n monothelit_v &c._n &c._n but_o this_o imagine_v universal_a church_n be_v so_o sleepy_a and_o vnconcerned_a as_o to_o permit_v one_o particular_a church_n for_o rome_n they_o say_v be_v no_o more_o to_o own_o and_o strong_o to_o foment_n those_o very_a error_n and_o this_o without_o so_o much_o as_o a_o word_n of_o reproof_n which_o cause_v our_o conscionable_a and_o tender_a heart_a protestant_n to_o schismatize_v as_o they_o do_v and_o bid_v adieu_n to_o rome_n for_o ever_o a_o strange_a tenderness_n of_o conscience_n protestant_n the_o tender_a conscience_n of_o protestant_n indeed_o which_o to_o take_v of_o the_o gild_n of_o schism_n from_o themselves_o do_v not_o only_o cast_v a_o eternal_a ignominy_n upon_o this_o vast_a imagine_a church_n but_o make_v it_o also_o sinful_a and_o damnable_a for_o dissemble_v so_o long_o with_o error_n which_o cause_v at_o last_o our_o protestant_n schism_n 3._o what_o can_v they_o reply_v to_o this_o argument_n will_v they_o say_v this_o great_a society_n of_o christian_n have_v not_o power_n to_o contra_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o whole_a be_v great_a than_o a_o part_n and_o rome_n they_o say_v if_o yet_o so_o much_o be_v only_o part_n of_o that_o universal_a society_n however_o if_o power_n be_v want_v where_o be_v church_n a_o vast_a improbability_n that_o one_o luther_n can_v be_v suppose_v to_o have_v have_v more_o knowledge_n and_o zeal_n than_o this_o whole_a church_n the_o zeal_n of_o this_o church_n can_v one_o luther_n and_o his_o few_o associate_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v have_v more_o zeal_n then_o flame_v in_o the_o heart_n of_o so_o many_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n for_o ten_o age_n together_o they_o may_v reply_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v ever_o hold_v sound_n in_o fundamental_o though_o not_o every_o way_n right_o in_o faith_n therefore_o this_o great_a church_n think_v it_o better_a patient_o to_o wink_v at_o these_o lesser_a fault_n then_o to_o raise_v a_o tempest_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n not_o reply_n a_o reply_n easy_o calm_v observe_v first_o how_o these_o man_n when_o they_o have_v say_v much_o and_o prove_v nothing_o know_v every_o thing_n without_o new_a revelation_n first_o they_o know_v where_o this_o vast_a church_n be_v though_o no_o body_n ever_o yet_o hear_v of_o it_o 2._o what_o it_o think_v 3._o upon_o what_o motive_n it_o dissemble_v so_o long_o etc._n etc._n but_o let_v all_o this_o pass_n my_o answer_n be_v exit_fw-la ore_fw-la tuo_fw-la te_fw-la judico_fw-la do_v this_o church_n prudent_o wink_v at_o these_o less_o did._n protestant_n ought_v to_o have_v proceed_v as_o their_o imagine_a church_n did._n suppose_a error_n because_o not_o fundamental_a nor_o destructive_a of_o salvation_n why_o do_v not_o our_o good_a protestant_n do_v so_o also_o do_v it_o hold_v it_o safe_a to_o sit_v down_o quiet_o then_o to_o raise_v a_o tempest_n among_o christian_n why_o do_v not_o our_o protestant_n take_v to_o the_o farâe_n cours_n also_o in_o do_v so_o they_o have_v make_v themselves_o as_o well_o inheritor_n of_o their_o forefather_n peace_n and_o wisdom_n as_o they_o now_o be_v of_o their_o land_n but_o to_o disow_v the_o better_a inheritance_n to_o condemn_v their_o ancestor_n and_o a_o whole_a church_n beside_o of_o error_n to_o make_v a_o violent_a bustle_n a_o hideous_a tumult_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n upon_o little_a cause_n be_v in_o a_o undeniable_a their_o open_a injustice_n and_o plain_a rebellion_n be_v undeniable_a word_n open_a injustice_n and_o flat_a rebellion_n i_o say_v upon_o little_a cause_n for_o in_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n where_o the_o law_n be_v without_o exception_n good_a it_o be_v hard_o to_o find_v the_o practical_a government_n so_o free_a from_o all_o misdemeanour_n but_o that_o you_o will_v have_v eye_n enough_o to_o espy_v they_o and_o heart_n ready_a upon_o very_o little_o feel_v to_o clamour_n against_o they_o yet_o licencence_n once_o these_o malcontent_n to_o rebel_n when_o they_o feel_v a_o little_a smart_n and_o adieu_o say_v i_o to_o all_o loyalty_n civil_a government_n destroy_v licence_n malcontent_n to_o rebel_n upon_o little_a aggrievance_n and_o all_o government_n be_v destroy_v be_v destroy_v both_o regal_a and_o other_o admit_v therefore_o that_o there_o have_v be_v abuse_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n as_o also_o which_o be_v falso_n it_o have_v fail_v in_o nonfundamentals_a of_o faith_n yet_o evident_a reason_n show_v the_o schism_n make_v by_o protestant_n to_o be_v unexcusable_a for_o as_o that_o man_n commit_n a_o unexcusable_a crime_n who_o for_o little_a aggrievance_n in_o a_o kingdom_n wherein_o he_o be_v bear_v open_o rebel_n against_o it_o so_o he_o commit_v a_o high_a offence_n if_o for_o petty_a fault_n he_o rebel_n be_v against_o a_o ancient_a church_n wherein_o he_o be_v baptise_a now_o it_o be_v as_o clear_a to_o the_o first_o schismatize_v protestant_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o mother_n church_n that_o give_v they_o baptism_n as_o it_o be_v clear_a to_o any_o subject_a in_o the_o world_n that_o such_o a_o kingdom_n first_o give_v he_o life_n unpardonable_a therefore_o be_v the_o crime_n of_o cause_n schism_n iâ_n can_v suppose_v a_o just_a cause_n schism_n in_o every_o one_o which_o can_v never_o suppose_v a_o just_a cause_n and_o thus_o much_o not_o only_o the_o holy_a father_n do_v but_o our_o protestant_n also_o must_v confess_v for_o to_o tell_v i_o on_o the_o one_o side_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v all_o it_o a_o paradox_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n want_v nothing_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n yet_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o leave_v it_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o yet_o on_o the_o other_o to_o assert_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o leave_v it_o when_o it_o want_v nothing_o necessary_a be_v implicatory_a in_o term_n yea_o and_o give_v liberty_n to_o protestant_n to_o leave_v their_o own_o
church_n when_o they_o listen_v where_o there_o be_v danger_n enough_o of_o more_o than_o little_a error_n which_o prejudice_n salvation_n 4._o and_o here_o be_v proof_n enough_o of_o the_o other_o part_n of_o my_o assertion_n which_o be_v protestant_n can_v probable_o impeach_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n of_o error_n causal_n of_o their_o schism_n you_o have_v already_o the_o reason_n for_o if_o fault_n less_o or_o more_o usual_o see_v even_o in_o well_o order_v commonwealth_n can_v not_o give_v just_a cause_n of_o public_a rebellion_n much_o less_o can_v these_o suppose_a fault_n and_o unproved_a schismatic_n sectary_n must_v either_o convince_v we_o of_o error_n high_o fundamental_a or_o they_o be_v plain_a schismatic_n error_n not_o fundamental_a in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n give_v just_a cause_n to_o our_o protestant_n of_o their_o shameful_a schism_n against_o it_o therefore_o they_o ought_v to_o convince_v we_o of_o error_n high_o fundamental_a and_o so_o make_v we_o no_o true_a christian_a church_n or_o they_o must_v sit_v down_o brand_v with_o the_o black_a note_n of_o both_o causal_n and_o formal_a schismatic_n there_o be_v no_o avoid_v it_o 5._o again_o i_o argue_v if_o error_n causal_n of_o protestant_n schism_n invade_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n they_o enter_v after_o the_o first_o 4._o or_o 5._o hundred_o year_n for_o so_o long_o say_v they_o that_o church_n be_v orthodox_n but_o it_o be_v more_o than_o improbable_a that_o such_o a_o deluge_n of_o they_o as_o our_o adversary_n charge_v on_o we_o invade_v that_o church_n and_o diffuse_v themselves_o all_o over_o i_o prove_v the_o minor_a forth_o the_o high_a improbability_n of_o error_n enter_v the_o church_n lay_v forth_o they_o can_v not_o enter_v this_o church_n without_o public_a defense_n and_o public_a resistance_n defense_n in_o those_o who_o first_o heretical_o vent_v they_o resistance_n in_o other_o who_o catholick_o oppose_v them_o but_o there_o be_v never_o since_o christ_n time_n any_o such_o first_o public_a heretical_a defense_n nor_o first_o public_a catholic_n opposition_n of_o these_o suppose_a error_n the_o real_a presence_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a prayer_n to_o saint_n etc._n etc._n only_o heretic_n condemn_v for_o their_o pain_n oppose_v they_o but_o not_o other_o let_v we_o therefore_o appeal_v to_o reason_n and_o ask._n how_o it_o sectary_n a_o clear_a conviction_n of_o sectary_n be_v possible_a that_o such_o loud_a clamorous_a novelty_n can_v so_o silent_o and_o as_o it_o be_v by_o night_n creep_v into_o a_o church_n and_o no_o body_n discover_v they_o on_o their_o first_o appearance_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o they_o can_v become_v public_a own_a object_n of_o man_n fairh_n and_o gain_v a_o universal_a belief_n through_o a_o whole_a ample_a church_n and_o no_o body_n yet_o know_v when_o this_o new_a belief_n or_o unheard_a of_o profess_a faith_n first_o begin_v nothing_o can_v be_v more_o improbable_a paradoxal_a and_o moral_o error_n drâwn_v from_o the_o moral_a impossibility_n of_o the_o entrance_n of_o these_o suppose_a error_n more_o impossible_a and_o 6._o to_o show_v you_o further_o the_o impossibility_n of_o this_o clandestine_v entrance_n of_o public_a error_n into_o a_o church_n without_o public_a notice_n or_o clamour_n against_o they_o be_v please_v to_o reflect_v here_o upon_o one_o instance_n suppose_v that_o a_o new_a sort_n of_o man_n shall_v now_o begin_v to_o broach_n a_o impious_a doctrine_n and_o open_o teach_v say_v a_o instance_n confirm_n all_o that_o be_v say_v that_o the_o water_n in_o baptism_n which_o wash_v away_o sin_n be_v âs_n real_o the_o true_a blood_n of_o christ_n and_o therefore_o worthy_a of_o adoration_n as_o catholic_n hold_v a_o consecrate_a host_n to_o be_v his_o sacred_a body_n and_o upon_o that_o acount_n adorable_a will_v not_o such_o a_o novelty_n think_v you_o where_o it_o public_o begin_v be_v public_o also_o clamour_v against_o by_o sound_n and_o orthodox_n christian_n yes_o and_o if_o it_o gradual_o get_v ground_n or_o more_o follower_n in_o time_n not_o easy_o suppress_v will_v it_o not_o as_o well_o as_o all_o other_o heresy_n which_o have_v trouble_v the_o world_n remain_v upon_o clear_a and_o undoubted_a record_n for_o posterity_n to_o read_v certain_o yes_o yet_o more_o can_v this_o persuasion_n live_v in_o any_o rational_a man_n that_o such_o a_o novelty_n may_v in_o time_n be_v so_o hold_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n by_o a_o most_o ample_a and_o learned_a church_n that_o the_o professor_n thereof_o will_v die_v for_o it_o the_o seven_o wonder_n of_o the_o world_n be_v not_o comparable_a to_o this_o one_o observe_v the_o application_n there_o be_v a_o time_n say_v instance_n the_o application_n of_o the_o instance_n protestant_n to_o wit_n for_o the_o 4._o or_o 5._o first_o age_n after_o christ_n when_o the_o whole_a pure_a primitive_a church_n no_o more_o believe_v christ_n sacred_a body_n to_o be_v real_o and_o substantial_o under_o the_o species_n of_o bread_n then_o now_o we_o believe_v his_o sacred_a blood_n to_o be_v under_o the_o species_n of_o water_n in_o baptism_n there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o the_o one_o as_o little_a deserve_a worship_n or_o adoration_n as_o the_o other_o for_o both_o be_v only_o holy_a sign_n and_o no_o more_o there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o this_o whole_a church_n grow_v mad_a and_o bring_v in_o the_o most_o palpable_a and_o erroneous_a novelty_n that_o ever_o the_o world_n hear_v of_o or_o record_v preserve_v what_o a_o piece_n of_o bread_n before_o not_o christ_n body_n be_v then_o o_o strange_a time_n believe_v to_o be_v his_o body_n a_o whole_a ample_n learned_a church_n be_v then_o cheat_v into_o that_o belief_n and_o whereas_o it_o once_o deserve_v no_o worship_n say_v our_o protestant_n all_n at_o last_o fall_v down_o and_o adore_v it_o in_o the_o open_a view_n of_o the_o world_n and_o to_o testify_v that_o they_o do_v so_o in_o earnest_n innumerable_a have_v shed_v their_o blood_n in_o defense_n of_o what_o they_o believe_v yet_o and_o here_o be_v the_o wonder_n of_o wonder_n sectary_n evidence_n against_o sectary_n no_o man_n can_v say_v who_o those_o be_v that_o first_o introduce_v this_o suppose_a monster_n of_o novelty_n no_o man_n can_v say_v in_o what_o age_n under_o what_o pope_n this_o error_n first_o get_v growth_n and_o patron_n for_o it_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v i_o what_o orthodox_n christian_n first_o stand_v up_o in_o god_n cause_n and_o oppose_v it_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v i_o when_o this_o visible_a and_o public_a adoration_n of_o a_o host_n begin_v no_o man_n can_v tell_v i_o how_o or_o when_o this_o new_a suppose_v coin_v doctrine_n serpent_n like_a first_o creep_v into_o man_n heart_n and_o at_o last_o poison_v a_o whole_a universal_a church_n hideous_a be_v these_o novelty_n prodigious_a these_o visible_a argument_n no_o author_n ever_o mention_v these_o notorious_a visible_a suppose_a change_n sectary_n trifle_v whilst_o they_o oppose_v the_o strength_n of_o our_o argument_n suppose_a change_n yet_o hush_n all_o pass_v in_o silence_n no_o body_n see_v they_o no_o body_n mention_n they_o not_o one_o author_n neither_o friend_n nor_o enemy_n write_v they_o or_o leave_v they_o upon_o record_n be_v not_o this_o think_v you_o whilst_o all_o other_o heresy_n be_v most_o exact_o register_v more_o than_o a_o pythagorean_n and_o prodigious_a silence_n 7._o it_o be_v pitiful_a to_o see_v with_o what_o petty_a trifle_n our_o adversary_n oppugn_v the_o strength_n of_o this_o most_o convince_v argument_n some_o tell_v we_o of_o a_o beard_n grow_v gray_a imperceptible_o of_o the_o index_n of_o a_o clock_n move_v insensible_o of_o tare_n peep_v up_o in_o a_o field_n when_o man_n be_v asleep_a and_o who_o can_v question_v say_v one_o very_o profound_o the_o birth_n of_o a_o infant_n because_o he_o know_v not_o the_o time_n of_o its_o conception_n error_n therefore_o may_v grow_v up_o with_o like_a silence_n in_o a_o church_n and_o as_o insensible_o observe_v this_o trifle_a we_o speak_v in_o the_o instance_n now_o give_v of_o a_o visible_a mountain_n and_o our_o adversary_n send_v we_o to_o seek_v for_o invisible_a moth_n in_o a_o old_a waste_a garment_n say_v i_o beseech_v you_o can_v they_o suppose_v that_o all_o object_n be_v alike_o discernible_a by_o our_o sense_n or_o be_v it_o as_o easy_a to_o find_v a_o needle_n in_o a_o bundle_n of_o straw_n as_o to_o see_v tower_n and_o castle_n before_o our_o eye_n in_o a_o fair_a sun_n shin_n day_n the_o suppose_a novelty_n now_o manifest_a sectary_n parallel_v thing_n of_o their_o own_o nature_n not_o perceptible_a with_o other_o most_o visible_a and_o manifest_a mention_v the_o suppose_a change_n of_o a_o whole_a church_n into_o another_o belief_n the_o imagine_a new_a public_a adoration_n of_o a_o sacrament_n be_v more_o discernible_a and_o visible_a than_o mountain_n and_o castle_n and_o
so_o much_o as_o probably_n show_v that_o they_o have_v mend_v the_o matter_n or_o set_v christian_a faith_n right_a again_o on_o its_o old_a foundation_n as_o it_o once_o stand_v pure_a it_o be_v therefore_o a_o most_o discomfortable_a reformation_n which_o only_o tell_v we_o we_o of_o our_o be_v out_o of_o the_o high_a road_n of_o truth_n unless_o the_o reformer_n lead_v we_o and_o this_o with_o assurance_n into_o the_o unerring_a way_n from_o whence_o we_o stray_v if_o this_o be_v not_o don_n it_o follow_v upon_o the_o supposition_n that_o both_o they_o and_o uncomfortable_a their_o pretend_a reformation_n most_o uncomfortable_a we_o be_v yet_o pitiful_o out_o and_o therefore_o both_o of_o we_o must_v look_v after_o some_o three_o guide_n to_o reduce_v we_o 16._o now_o that_o protestant_n be_v utter_o unable_a to_o persuade_v any_o rational_a man_n that_o they_o have_v exact_o bring_v christian_n faith_n to_o its_o ancient_a purity_n be_v more_o than_o evident_a right_o sectary_n have_v nothing_o like_o a_o principle_n whereby_o their_o reformation_n be_v prove_v probable_a it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o say_v we_o have_v err_v and_o a_o other_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v right_o for_o beside_o their_o own_o bare_a word_n which_o be_v worth_a little_a they_o have_v nothing_o like_o a_o principle_n neither_o scripture_n council_n nor_o father_n to_o ground_n a_o probable_a discourse_n pertinent_a to_o that_o purpose_n for_o none_o of_o these_o ever_o know_v what_o a_o protestant_a be_v it_o be_v true_a they_o pretend_v though_o god_n know_v to_o little_a purpose_n that_o scripture_n council_n and_o father_n be_v against_o our_o error_n but_o it_o be_v one_o thing_n slight_o to_o tell_v we_o we_o have_v err_v and_o a_o other_o solid_o to_o prove_v that_o they_o be_v right_o and_o have_v broughr_fw-mi christian_a faith_n hitherto_o much_o taint_v to_o its_o ancient_a purity_n this_o last_o be_v the_o only_a difficulty_n and_o i_o conjure_v they_o as_o they_o will_v give_v a_o account_n of_o their_o religion_n to_o almighty_a god_n without_o tergiversation_n or_o farfetched_a discourse_n direct_o and_o clear_o to_o solve_n it_o the_o proposition_n to_o be_v prove_v and_o positive_o prove_v what_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o prove_v be_v thus._n protestant_n because_o they_o will_v be_v reformer_n be_v every_o way_n right_o in_o their_o faith_n from_o which_o faith_n catholic_n have_v swerve_v observe_v it_o you_o shall_v never_o have_v difficulty_n they_o can_v give_v no_o direct_a answer_n to_o the_o difficulty_n a_o direct_a answer_n to_o chis_fw-la difficulty_n they_o may_v tell_v you_o catholic_n have_v err_v they_o follow_v scripture_n their_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v what_o be_v deliver_v in_o the_o first_o primitive_a age_n and_o they_o know_v that_o better_a than_o papist_n do._n they_o hope_v all_o be_v well_o with_o they_o etc._n etc._n and_o thus_o they_o i_o put_v you_o of_o with_o empty_a word_n but_o to_o prove_v solid_o that_o proposition_n be_v impossible_a believe_v it_o those_o bonzy_n of_o japan_n have_v more_o plausible_a proof_n to_o defend_v their_o pagod_n and_o impugn_v christianity_n then_o our_o adversary_n have_v to_o evidence_n protestancy_n to_o be_v the_o primitive_a faith_n and_o impugn_v the_o now-standing_a catholic_n roman_a religion_n chap._n fourteen_o a_o word_n to_o a_o few_o suppose_a and_o vnproved_a assertion_n whereby_o some_o endeavour_n to_o clear_a protestant_n of_o schism_n 1._o their_o first_o proposition_n there_o be_v no_o society_n of_o stillingfleet_n mr._n stillingfleet_n christian_n of_o any_o one_o communion_n but_o may_v impose_v some_o thing_n to_o be_v believe_v or_o practise_v which_o may_v be_v repugnant_a to_o christianity_n the_o assertion_n be_v falso_n in_o protestant_n principle_n unless_o it_o be_v grant_v that_o their_o ample_a catholic_n church_n can_v destroy_v christianity_n the_o general_a foundation_n of_o christian_a society_n i_o answer_v if_o the_o assertion_n fall_v on_o that_o imagine_a universal_a catholic_n church_n more_o ample_a than_o the_o roman_a which_o must_v be_v a_o society_n of_o christian_n of_o one_o communion_n it_o be_v fall_v in_o protestant_a principle_n unless_o they_o say_v that_o this_o great_a catholic_n church_n can_v impose_v thing_n to_o be_v believe_v or_o repugnant_a to_o the_o general_a foundation_n of_o christianity_n again_o if_o it_o relate_v to_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n it_o be_v a_o mere_a unproved_a fancy_n of_o their_o own_o for_o this_o church_n as_o be_v large_o show_v defend_v its_o infallibility_n by_o proof_n as_o certain_a as_o the_o common_a ground_n of_o christianity_n be_v be_v it_o how_o you_o will_v you_o have_v here_o our_o adversary_n acknowledgement_n that_o their_o particular_a church_n of_o christianity_n protestant_n may_v impose_v thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o ground_n of_o christianity_n protestancy_n because_o fallible_a may_v impose_v thing_n repugnant_a to_o the_o ground_n of_o christianity_n and_o this_o i_o easy_o believe_v without_o further_a proof_n 2._o the_o 2._o proposition_n there_o be_v a_o possibillity_n acknowledge_v that_o particular_a church_n may_v require_v unreasonable_a condition_n of_o communion_n the_o obligation_n to_o communion_n can_v be_v absolute_a and_o indispensable_a but_o only_o so_o far_o as_o nothing_o be_v require_v destructive_a to_o the_o end_n of_o christian_a society_n the_o teach_v the_o author_n of_o the_o proposition_n sure_a enough_o suppose_v himself_o fit_a to_o judge_v what_o be_v destructive_a no_o protestant_a can_v avouch_v so_o much_o as_o probable_o wherein_o the_o church_n have_v impose_v unreasonable_a condition_n protestant_n profess_v themselves_o fallible_a in_o all_o they_o teach_v assertion_n if_o i_o mistake_v not_o suppose_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n to_o be_v only_o a_o particular_a church_n deficient_a and_o liable_a to_o error_n which_o be_v not_o yet_o so_o much_o as_o probable_o prove_v and_o therefore_o i_o say_v the_o obligation_n to_o communicate_v with_o it_o be_v absolute_a and_o indispensable_a but_o let_v we_o wave_v this_o at_o present_a and_o contrary_a to_o truth_n imagine_v that_o this_o church_n have_v impose_v unreasonable_a condition_n destructive_a of_o christian_a communion_n etc._n etc._n we_o ask_v again_o and_o very_o serious_o who_o be_v they_o that_o can_v mend_v the_o matter_n in_o case_n it_o have_v don_n so_o or_o who_o dare_v avouch_v by_o the_o force_n of_o any_o receive_a principle_n that_o such_o and_o such_o particular_a condition_n impose_v on_o christian_n be_v unreasonable_a where_o be_v the_o equitable_a and_o infallible_a judge_n appoint_v by_o almighty_a god_n to_o decide_v in_o so_o weighty_a a_o matter_n be_v they_o protestant_n no._n it_o be_v impossible_a hear_v my_o reason_n if_o the_o church_n have_v err_v by_o impose_v such_o unreasonable_a condition_n protestant_n who_o profess_v themselves_o fallible_a in_o all_o they_o say_v may_v err_v more_o yea_o and_o spoil_v all_o whilst_o they_o go_v about_o to_o set_v thing_n straight_o however_o if_o they_o dare_v venture_n on_o so_o difficile_a a_o work_n amiss_o and_o therefore_o may_v more_o likely_a spoil_n then_o mend_v what_o they_o conceive_v amiss_o they_o be_v first_o oblige_v to_o prove_v and_o this_o not_o by_o talk_n but_o by_o undeniable_a principle_n that_o just_o so_o far_o our_o church_n err_v so_o far_o it_o require_v unreasonable_a condition_n of_o communion_n and_o next_o that_o they_o the_o illuminate_v man_n of_o the_o world_n have_v do_v no_o more_o but_o exact_o cancel_v the_o error_n of_o our_o church_n leave_v all_o untouched_a that_o be_v not_o destructive_a to_o the_o end_n of_o christian_a society_n for_o we_o must_v believe_v they_o be_v the_o skilful_a master_n that_o always_o hit_v right_o though_o confess_o fallible_a you_o shall_v soon_o draw_v pure_a gold_n out_o of_o mere_a dross_n then_o get_v any_o thing_n like_o a_o tolerable_a proof_n from_o these_o man_n to_o countenance_v one_o of_o these_o desperate_a assertion_n alas_o they_o only_a word_n it_o without_o proof_n as_o arian_n and_o nestorian_n do._n and_o here_o be_v all_o you_o have_v from_o them_o 3._o the_o 3._o proposition_n nothing_o can_v be_v more_o unreasonable_a prove_v the_o proposition_n suppose_v what_o be_v to_o be_v prove_v then_o that_o the_o society_n impose_v such_o condition_n of_o communion_n shall_v be_v judge_n whether_o those_o condition_n be_v just_a and_o equitable_a or_o no._n i_o answer_v and_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o unreasonable_a then_o to_o make_v a_o recede_a party_n from_o a_o cause_n rebel_n be_v be_v not_o to_o be_v judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n ancient_a church_n a_o few_o rebellious_a people_n against_o it_o judge_n in_o their_o own_o cause_n the_o arian_n judge_v thus_o for_o themselves_o and_o so_o do_v protestant_n all_o rebellion_n in_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n be_v patronize_v if_o those_o who_o revolt_n may_v clear_a themselves_o from_o gild_n upon_o their_o own_o vote_n and_o say_v such_o condition_n impose_v schism_n
unproved_a and_o fall_v fall_v doctrine_n i_o call_v it_o confuse_v because_o when_o they_o tell_v we_o there_o can_v be_v no_o separation_n from_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o in_o such_o thing_n wherein_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n lie_v they_o shall_v declare_v express_o and_o particular_o wherein_o that_o unity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n consist_v but_o to_o leave_v we_o in_o darkness_n concern_v no_o man_n know_v unity_n they_o speak_v confuse_o of_o unknown_a ligament_n and_o of_o as_o unknown_a unity_n what_o ligament_n and_o pretend_a unity_n of_o a_o strange_a imagine_a catholic_n church_n without_o say_v how_o far_o these_o ligament_n reach_v or_o wherein_o precise_o this_o exact_a unity_n lie_v be_v only_o to_o turn_v we_o of_o with_o talk_n and_o teach_v just_a nothing_o if_o they_o answer_v the_o unity_n of_o this_o doctrine_n be_v find_v in_o the_o fundamental_o of_o faith_n we_o be_v yet_o as_o fundamental_a no_o man_n can_v imagine_v what_o they_o will_v make_v fundamental_a far_o to_o seek_v as_o before_o for_o who_o know_v what_o these_o new_a protestant_n will_v make_v fundamental_a and_o vnfundamental_a doctrine_n they_o may_v say_v one_o thing_n to_o day_n be_v fundamental_a and_o change_v it_o to_o morrow_n however_o admit_v that_o they_o declare_v themselves_o and_o tell_v we_o punctual_o so_o much_o and_o no_o more_o be_v the_o fundamental_a fancy_n and_o if_o we_o can_v it_o will_v only_o be_v their_o own_o unproved_a fancy_n and_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n it_o will_v be_v only_o their_o own_o suppose_a and_o vnproved_a assertion_n and_o occasion_n anew_o as_o hot_a a_o dispute_n as_o any_o other_o controversy_n between_o we_o unfortunate_a be_v these_o man_n in_o every_o thing_n they_o say_v and_o it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o for_o want_v ground_n to_o build_v on_o and_o a_o church_n to_o regulate_v their_o faith_n whatever_o they_o vent_v against_o our_o catholic_n doctrine_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v as_o much_o their_o own_o suppose_a and_o vnproved_a fancy_n as_o if_o a_o arian_n dispute_v against_o we_o 4._o observe_v yet_o how_o they_o still_o run_v on_o with_o these_o unproved_a supposition_n when_o man_n say_v they_o separate_z themselves_o from_o the_o error_n of_o all_o particular_a church_n they_o do_v not_o separate_a from_o the_o whole_a etc._n etc._n bless_a be_v such_o them_o protestant_n separate_v and_o poor_o suppose_v that_o they_o run_v away_o with_o truth_n only_o and_o leave_v all_o the_o error_n behind_o them_o man_n but_o who_o be_v they_o for_o god_n sake_n protestant_n yes_o and_o i_o must_v take_v their_o word_n for_o it_o we_o have_v no_o other_o proof_n pray_v you_o tell_v i_o when_o that_o first_o protestant_a giant_n martin_n luther_n stand_v up_o and_o separate_v from_o all_o the_o society_n of_o christian_n throughout_o the_o whole_a world_n from_o catholic_n from_o arian_n abyssins_n grecian_n &c._n &c._n who_o assure_v he_o ând_n here_o we_o urge_v for_o a_o satisfactory_a principle_n or_o who_o can_v yet_o assure_v our_o protestant_n that_o both_o he_o and_o separation_n who_o assur_n they_o so_o much_o or_o that_o they_o be_v not_o more_o deep_o in_o error_n by_o their_o own_o wilful_a separation_n they_o be_v not_o more_o plunge_v into_o gross_a error_n by_o this_o wilful_a divorce_n then_o if_o they_o have_v remain_v as_o once_o they_o be_v honest_a catholic_n can_v in_o reason_n suppose_v that_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o these_o society_n that_o quit_v rome_n be_v corrupt_v in_o doctrine_n and_o without_o so_o much_o as_o a_o seem_a probability_n hold_v luther_n and_o his_o follower_n the_o only_a pure_a and_o untainted_a christian_n of_o the_o world_n these_o be_v paradox_n and_o vast_a improbability_n for_o if_o all_o these_o err_v when_o they_o leave_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n as_o evident_o they_o do_v what_o god_n or_o angel_n be_v it_o that_o direct_v protestant_n to_o hit_n right_o every_o way_n and_o to_o avoid_v all_o error_n these_o heretic_n when_o they_o separate_v be_v fallible_a man_n and_o actual_o err_v our_o protestant_n be_v as_o fallible_a and_o may_v have_v do_v worse_a these_o error_n protestant_n separation_n parallel_v with_o that_o of_o other_o heretic_n protestant_n proof_n be_v their_o own_o word_n and_o nothing_o els._n whether_o protestant_n dare_v assert_v that_o their_o reform_a protestancy_n be_v so_o right_o that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v make_v better_a if_o they_o affirm_v we_o urge_v for_o principle_n to_o prove_v it_o all_o that_o former_o desert_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n err_v upon_o what_o proof_n be_v protestant_n exempt_v from_o the_o like_a error_n follow_v their_o own_o self_n judgement_n in_o make_v that_o divorce_n yet_o miss_v of_o truth_n protestant_n can_v only_o say_v so_o much_o and_o therefore_o very_o likely_a may_v have_v miss_v more_o how_o then_o shall_v we_o know_v and_o by_o a_o satisfactory_a proof_n that_o this_o rare_a reformation_n which_o oppose_v all_o religion_n be_v untainted_a and_o orthodox_n i_o will_v tell_v you_o protestant_n after_o a_o infamy_n cast_v on_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n say_v so_o and_o what_o they_o say_v though_o whole_a army_n of_o christian_n more_o learned_a and_o numerous_a stand_v against_o they_o must_v be_v think_v true_a be_v not_o this_o a_o jolly_a proof_n in_o a_o word_n here_o be_v my_o dilemma_n either_o they_o must_v assert_v that_o their_o whole_a protestant_a doctrine_n now_o establish_v be_v without_o blemish_n pure_a and_o orthodox_n or_o yet_o have_v its_o error_n if_o this_o last_o it_o need_v another_o reformation_n if_o they_o make_v it_o so_o pure_a that_o it_o can_v be_v make_v better_a they_o only_o say_v without_o proof_n what_o all_o the_o condemn_a heretic_n in_o christendom_n assert_v for_o themselves_o and_o moreover_o will_v have_v christian_n believe_v the_o great_a paradox_n ever_o hear_v of_o viz._n that_o they_o only_o have_v the_o good_a luck_n to_o hit_v right_o whilst_o all_o foregoing_a sectary_n who_o abandon_v the_o roman_a church_n be_v and_o yet_o be_v taint_v with_o gross_a corruption_n the_o reason_n why_o both_o they_o and_o all_o other_o heretic_n that_o leave_v the_o mother-church_n be_v in_o error_n be_v draw_v from_o the_o impossibility_n of_o do_v the_o work_n they_o have_v go_v about_o for_o it_o be_v not_o in_o man_n power_n to_o change_v or_o reform_v religion_n no._n only_a one_o high_a priest_n god_n and_o man_n once_o make_v a_o change_n who_o be_v holy_a innocent_a undefiled_a separate_v from_o sinner_n and_o make_v high_a than_o the_o heaven_n man_n therefore_o wicked_a as_o luther_n be_v guilty_a religion_n one_o only_o high_a priest_n have_v power_n to_o reform_v religion_n of_o high_a crime_n bear_v and_o bring_v up_o in_o sin_n and_o now_o bury_v in_o contempt_n be_v unfit_a instrument_n for_o such_o a_o work_n they_o may_v mar_v religion_n but_o to_o mend_v it_o be_v impossible_a 5._o again_o that_o distinction_n make_v above_o between_o the_o common_a ligament_n of_o a_o church_n and_o particular_a error_n in_o all_o church_n which_o yet_o do_v not_o vnchurch_n they_o be_v frivolous_a vnproved_a and_o most_o fals._n for_o first_o there_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v any_o common_a tie_v or_o ground_n of_o union_n among_o all_o christian_n now_o in_o be_v which_o consider_v by_o a_o abstract_a notion_n sufficient_o conslitute_v the_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n my_o reason_n be_v no_o doctrine_n common_a salvation_n doctrine_n common_a to_o all_o christian_n be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o salvation_n to_o arian_n nestorian_n catholic_n and_o protestant_n or_o universal_o hold_v by_o all_o christian_n can_v be_v more_o prove_v to_o be_v save_v faith_n enough_o for_o christian_n then_o if_o we_o gratis_o assert_v that_o a_o belief_n in_o one_o god_n only_o common_a to_o turk_n jew_n and_o christian_n be_v full_a faith_n enough_o for_o we_o all_o scripture_n as_o i_o have_v large_o prove_v in_o a_o forego_n chapter_n require_v yet_o more_o explicit_fw-la faith_n of_o many_o particular_n 2._o it_o be_v utter_o fall_v that_o the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n the_o true_a catholic_n church_n be_v not_o find_v among_o christian_n that_o err_v in_o faith_n church_n may_v be_v find_v among_o all_o particular_a err_v church_n the_o primitive_a christian_n be_v a_o body_n apart_o and_o as_o distinct_a from_o the_o arian_n in_o those_o day_n as_o we_o be_v now_o from_o protestant_n and_o therefore_o no_o doctrine_n common_a to_o that_o church_n and_o arian_n be_v ever_o think_v sufficient_a catholic_n doctrine_n otherwise_o arius_n may_v have_v tell_v the_o nicene_n faith_n otherwise_o arius_n will_v not_o have_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n father_n yes_o and_o these_o shall_v have_v assent_v to_o he_o you_o unjust_o condemn_v i_o for_o admit_v that_o i_o have_v my_o particular_a error_n you_o
may_v have_v you_o also_o we_o be_v all_o yet_o of_o one_o church_n and_o need_v not_o to_o break_v of_o any_o catholic_n unity_n because_o though_o both_o you_o and_o i_o err_v we_o may_v yet_o retain_v the_o essence_n of_o a_o catholic_n churck_n heretic_n hitherto_o never_o plead_v thus_o for_o their_o cause_n but_o as_o pertinacious_o defend_v christianity_n heretic_n as_o strong_o defend_v their_o particular_a error_n as_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n their_o private_a opinion_n as_o they_o do_v the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n only_o our_o protestant_n now_o press_v with_o unanswerable_a argument_n concern_v the_o plain_a name_v of_o a_o catholic_n church_n before_o luther_n like_o man_n live_v by_o shift_v seek_v out_o a_o woeful_a subterfuge_n and_o make_v all_o err_v church_n partly_o good_a and_o catholic_n in_o the_o common_a ligament_n of_o christianity_n and_o partly_o nought_o be_v heretical_a in_o their_o particular_a error_n whereas_o the_o spouse_n of_o christ_n be_v but_o one_o immaculate_a moral_a body_n and_o can_v be_v no_o more_o taint_v with_o error_n than_o the_o pure_a primitive_a church_n be_v no_o nor_o more_o corrupt_v than_o the_o whole_a bible_n necessary_a the_o entire_a purity_n of_o the_o church_n necessary_a now_o be_v and_o yet_o remain_v pure_o god_n word_n 3._o grant_v which_o be_v the_o great_a chimaera_n imaginable_a that_o the_o common_a ligament_n and_o ground_n of_o catholic_n faith_n be_v to_o be_v find_v among_o all_o the_o err_a society_n of_o christian_n protestant_n have_v yet_o a_o endless_a task_n in_o hand_n which_o be_v to_o persuade_v all_o man_n opposite_a to_o they_o that_o they_o by_o their_o discern_v spirit_n have_v just_o catholic_n protestant_n can_v prove_v that_o they_o have_v take_v so_o much_o doctrine_n to_o themselves_o as_o be_v pure_o catholic_n hit_v the_o nail_n on_o the_o head_n and_o take_v so_o much_o to_o themselves_o as_o be_v pure_o catholic_n doctrine_n without_o mixture_n of_o error_n with_o it_o believe_v i_o it_o will_v be_v hard_a to_o prove_v so_o much_o do_v and_o if_o they_o prove_v it_o not_o by_o vndeniable_a principle_n farewell_o protestant_n say_v i_o for_o they_o may_v be_v more_o in_o error_n by_o their_o late_a reformation_n then_o all_o those_o err_v church_n together_o which_o they_o have_v go_v about_o to_o reform_v 6._o in_o another_o chapter_n entitle_v the_o reformation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n justify_v these_o very_a man_n after_o they_o have_v make_v the_o catholic_n church_n like_o a_o common_a field_n lay_v open_a to_o all_o those_o inhabitant_n who_o own_o the_o fundamental_o of_o christian_a faith_n tell_v we_o that_o the_o roman_a church_n stand_v guilty_a of_o the_o violation_n of_o public_a right_n and_o add_n good_n neither_o proof_n nor_o inference_n good_n many_o particular_a doctrine_n many_o superstitious_a practice_n which_o have_v no_o foundation_n in_o scripture_n or_o consent_v of_o the_o primitive_a church_n therefore_o this_o roman_a church_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o so_o be_v become_v schismatical_a but_o their_o church_n of_o england_n have_v hit_v right_o and_o be_v only_o so_o far_o separate_v from_o rome_n as_o rome_n have_v divide_v herself_o from_o the_o belief_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n what_o have_v we_o here_o a_o cluster_n of_o mere_a superfluous_a word_n i_o be_o astonish_v to_o see_v man_n run_v on_o with_o such_o proofle_n generality_n however_o we_o will_v have_v patience_n and_o friendly_a ask_v how_o far_o be_v that_o large_a field_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o be_v extend_v point_v out_o the_o limit_n of_o it_o name_v those_o christian_n and_o they_o only_o principle_n not_o one_o of_o these_o particular_n can_v be_v prove_v by_o certain_a principle_n who_o inhabit_v that_o large_a field_n what_o be_v those_o fundamental_o of_o faith_n how_o many_o be_v there_o of_o they_o ninty_a nine_o or_o a_o hundred_o specify_v with_o a_o proof_n at_o the_o end_n of_o it_o but_o proof_n be_v now_o out_o of_o fashion_n with_o protestant_n those_o particular_a falso_n doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n so_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n say_v once_o plain_o what_o that_o catholic_n church_n be_v from_o which_o rome_n separate_v and_o something_o be_v don_n but_o above_o all_o make_v good_a your_o wild_a assertion_n that_o just_o so_o far_o you_o be_v divide_v from_o rome_n not_o one_o inch_n more_o or_o less_o as_o rome_n be_v separate_v from_o the_o universal_a catholic_n church_n to_o do_v this_o justice_n requir'_v a_o exact_a proof_n of_o these_o three_o thing_n first_o that_o you_o particular_o show_v we_o prove_v three_o proposition_n to_o be_v prove_v what_o or_o how_o much_o the_o precise_a doctrine_n of_o that_o imagine_a catholic_n church_n be_v which_o dwell_n in_o your_o fancy_n 2._o wherein_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v swerve_v from_o that_o true_a doctrine_n 3._o and_o this_o will_v cost_v you_o some_o pain_n make_v good_a upon_o any_o receive_a christian_a principle_n that_o you_o be_v right_a in_o your_o faith_n and_o have_v just_a divide_v yourselves_o so_o far_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o this_o be_v from_o another_o church_n more_o universal_a and_o catholic_n can_v these_o man_n live_v to_o mathusalem_n age_n they_o will_v never_o come_v near_o to_o the_o likelihood_n of_o a_o rational_a proof_n for_o any_o one_o of_o these_o particular_n i_o say_v of_o a_o proof_n for_o i_o will_v have_v they_o know_v that_o to_o talk_v at_o random_n and_o vent_v their_o own_o fancy_n as_o they_o do_v here_o will_v weigh_v but_o little_a when_o reason_n come_v to_o balance_n all_o with_o a_o close_a argue_n in_o good_a form_n 7._o when_o again_o they_o be_v tell_v in_o the_o same_o chapter_n that_o the_o separation_n of_o protestant_n be_v not_o only_o from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o as_o calvin_n confess_v from_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n which_o necessary_o imply_v a_o separation_n from_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n they_o answer_v we_o have_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n in_o any_o thing_n wherein_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n be_v agree_v be_v this_o so_o great_a christian_n no_o heretic_n separate_v from_o the_o universal_a doctrine_n believe_v by_o all_o christian_n a_o matter_n to_o be_v praise_v for_o not_o to_o separate_a from_o what_o man_n can_v separate_a if_o they_o own_o christ_n and_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o christian_n mark_v well_o i_o beseech_v you_o neither_o the_o arian_n nor_o nestorian_n nor_o donatist_n nor_o any_o other_o condemn_v heretic_n separate_v from_o any_o thing_n wherein_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n agree_v in_o for_o they_o believe_v in_o christ_n a_o saviour_n and_o redeemer_n and_o thus_o much_o all_o christian_n hold_v but_o be_v this_o faith_n enough_o to_o save_v we_o without_o believe_v more_o pray_v you_o answer_v again_o these_o heretic_n add_v something_a heretic_n what_o get_v they_o the_o name_n of_o separatist_n or_o heretic_n to_o that_o general_n own_a belief_n of_o all_o and_o this_o get_v they_o the_o name_n of_o separatist_n or_o heretic_n not_o because_o they_o deserted_n the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n but_o because_o they_o abandon_v that_o ancient_a church_n wherein_o they_o be_v baptise_a protestant_n have_v don_n the_o like_a in_o leave_v the_o same_o ancient_a church_n and_o have_v add_v that_o to_o their_o specifical_a religion_n which_o be_v neither_o the_o common_a doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n no_o nor_o hold_v by_o any_o christian_a society_n in_o the_o world_n upon_o this_o account_n therefore_o they_o as_o just_o deserve_v the_o name_n of_o heretic_n and_o separatist_n as_o either_o arian_n or_o nestorian_a and_o thus_o much_o i_o prove_v by_o their_o own_o concession_n doctrine_n protestant_n prove_v schismatich_n by_o their_o own_o doctrine_n for_o they_o grant_v that_o the_o donatist_n be_v separatist_n and_o schismatic_n because_o they_o confine_v the_o catholic_n church_n within_o their_o own_o bound_n of_o africa_n yet_o by_o their_o good_a leave_n these_o very_a donatist_n dissent_v in_o nothing_o that_o be_v hold_v all_o over_o common_a christian_a doctrine_n for_o they_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o christ_n as_o we_o do_v yet_o be_v heretic_n upon_o the_o account_n of_o their_o particular_a principle_n the_o donatist_n no_o schismatic_n in_o protestant_n principle_n doctrine_n though_o they_o clash_v with_o nothing_o hold_v universal_o you_o will_v say_v but_o they_o do_v clash_n for_o without_o all_o proof_n they_o confine_v the_o church_n to_o one_o place_n only_o contra._n and_o you_o my_o good_a friend_n without_o all_o likelihood_n of_o proof_n make_v the_o church_n a_o mighty_a wide_a one_o you_o give_v it_o arm_n which_o embrace_v all_o call_v christian_n though_o heretic_n in_o their_o particular_a tenant_n do_v therefore_o the_o particular_a
doctrine_n of_o the_o donatist_n confine_v the_o church_n to_o one_o place_n vnchurch_n they_o believe_v it_o your_o wide_a the_o donatist_n be_v schismatich_n for_o make_v the_o church_n too_o straight_o and_o so_o be_v protestant_n for_o make_v it_o to_o wide_a particular_a doctrine_n in_o make_v it_o too_o large_a will_v vnchurch_n you_o also_o i_o call_v both_o these_o doctrine_n particular_a and_o heretical_a for_o as_o never_o man_n before_o the_o donatist_n make_v the_o catholic_n church_n so_o straight_o as_o they_o do_v so_o never_o christian_n before_o these_o late_a protestant_n make_v it_o so_o large_a as_o to_o hold_v in_o it_o all_o the_o heretckis_n in_o the_o world_n i_o say_v express_o this_o doctrine_n of_o the_o donatist_n be_v only_o their_o particular_a error_n and_o not_o then_o universal_a or_o common_a to_o all_o christian_n for_o their_o very_a deny_v the_o church_n to_o be_v spread_v the_o whole_a world_n over_o make_v that_o doctrine_n not_o vnuniversal_a or_o not_o hold_v by_o all._n and_o thus_o much_o protestant_n must_v say_v for_o whilst_o they_o or_o any_o other_o sectary_n maintain_v tenant_n particular_a to_o themselves_o for_o example_n two_o sacrament_n only_o a_o doctrine_n heretic_n in_o the_o principle_n of_o protestant_n the_o arian_n and_o nestorian_n be_v not_o heretic_n so_o limitate_v can_v be_v call_v universal_a out_o of_o what_o be_v hitherto_o say_a we_o must_v conclude_v if_o no_o doctrine_n can_v make_v a_o man_n a_o heretic_n but_o the_o denial_n of_o that_o which_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n own_o be_v the_o arian_n and_o nestorian_n be_v not_o heretic_n 8._o these_o novellist_n go_v on_o trifle_a in_o a_o most_o serious_a matter_n and_o first_o tell_v we_o though_o a_o man_n differ'_v accidental_a a_o frivolous_a instance_n every_o one_o know_v what_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o man_n but_o protestant_n know_v not_o how_o much_o doctrine_n be_v essential_a to_o christian_a faith_n and_o how_o much_o be_v mere_o accidental_a from_o all_o other_o in_o accident_n for_o example_n in_o feature_n yet_o he_o leave_v not_o of_o to_o be_v essential_o a_o man_n therefore_o though_o protestant_n differ_v from_o all_o other_o christian_n in_o doctrine_n accidental_a or_o wherein_o these_o dissent_v society_n disagree_v from_o one_o another_o yet_o as_o long_o as_o they_o stick_v to_o the_o common_a own_a faith_n of_o all_o christian_n so_o long_o they_o be_v safe_a and_o member_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n a_o miserable_a put_v of_o it_o seem_v a_o very_a universal_a doctrine_n suffice_v protestant_n to_o be_v good_a catholic_n all_o we_o desire_v be_v that_o they_o will_v exact_o say_v how_o much_o precise_o of_o this_o doctrine_n will_v serve_v the_o turn_n as_o both_o necessary_a and_o sufficient_a to_o make_v we_o all_o catholic_n or_o whether_o the_o arian_n nestorian_n or_o donatist_n have_v enough_o of_o it_o to_o be_v good_a catholic_n if_o yes_o they_o be_v both_o good_a catholic_n and_o heretic_n at_o once_o catholic_n upon_o the_o symbolize_v arian_n and_o protestant_n symbolize_v account_n of_o common_a christian_a doctrine_n own_a by_o they_o and_o heretic_n for_o their_o particular_a erroneous_a tenant_n and_o it_o be_v more_o than_o probable_a that_o protestant_n be_v like_o they_o secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la catholic_n because_o of_o their_o common_a doctrine_n but_o simpliciter_fw-la heretic_n by_o reason_n of_o their_o late_a introduce_v novelty_n 9_o they_o tell_v we_o again_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n be_v not_o to_o be_v measure_v by_o the_o particular_a opinion_n either_o of_o all_o or_o any_o particular_a church_n but_o by_o such_o thing_n which_o be_v the_o proper_a foundation_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o there_o can_v be_v no_o separation_n from_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n but_o in_o such_o thing_n wherein_o it_o be_v catholic_n and_o it_o be_v not_o catholic_n in_o any_o thing_n but_o in_o what_o proper_o relate_v to_o its_o be_v and_o constitution_n let_v the_o world_n judge_n whether_o this_o be_v not_o mere_a confuse_a talk_n for_o the_o only_a difficulty_n explication_n sectary_n wave_v that_o only_a difficulty_n which_o require_v explication_n in_o this_o matter_n be_v to_o know_v of_o these_o new_a doctor_n how_o much_o precise_a doctrine_n be_v necessary_a and_o sufficient_a to_o be_v believe_v how_o much_o of_o it_o constitut'_v the_o be_v and_o foundation_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o what_o be_v accidental_a or_o unnecessary_a you_o see_v they_o wave_v this_o and_o content_v themselves_o with_o tell_v we_o of_o no_o man_n know_v what_o be_v of_o no_o man_n know_v what_o foundation_n of_o a_o church_n without_o descend_v to_o particular_n or_o prove_v what_o these_o essential_o be_v or_o final_o who_o those_o christian_n be_v that_o be_v right_o in_o the_o essential_o of_o faith_n before_o luther_n or_o have_v the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n among_o they_o they_o proceed_v here_o as_o if_o by_o protestant_n enjoin_v we_o to_o learn_v that_o doctrine_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n and_o allow_v we_o neither_o master_n nor_o rule_n to_o learn_v it_o by_o a_o master_n shall_v tell_v a_o young_a beginner_n with_o grammar_n you_o must_v learn_v your_o rule_n well_o and_o understand_v they_o perfect_o but_o you_o shall_v have_v neither_o book_n nor_o precept_n from_o any_o whereby_o to_o learn_v they_o i_o profess_v before_o almighty_a god_n and_o i_o think_v thousand_o not_o only_a catholic_n but_o other_o be_v of_o my_o opinion_n i_o be_o yet_o as_o whole_o ignorant_a of_o what_o these_o new_a protestant_n will_v make_v the_o essential_o of_o faith_n the_o necessary_a and_o sufficient_a foundation_n and_o be_v of_o a_o church_n as_o ever_o boy_n be_v of_o grammar_n rule_n when_o he_o first_o go_v to_o school_n i_o may_v perhaps_o guess_v better_a at_o their_o doctrine_n and_o my_o thought_n be_v they_o hold_v all_o the_o heretic_n in_o the_o sense_n the_o world_n will_v cry_v shame_n if_o they_o explicate_v their_o sense_n world_n whether_o arian_n or_o other_o to_o be_v good_a catholic_n christian_n yet_o dare_v not_o publish_v so_o much_o in_o write_v and_o this_o be_v the_o true_a reason_n why_o they_o schulk_n in_o generality_n and_o hide_v themselves_o under_o these_o universal_a vnexplicate_v term_n of_o the_o essential_o of_o faith_n of_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n the_o foundation_n of_o it_o etc._n etc._n well_o i_o will_v say_v it_o once_o more_o if_o the_o doctrine_n common_a to_o all_o christian_n be_v the_o essential_a necessary_a salvation_n no_o heretic_n ever_o be_v if_o doctrine_n common_a to_o all_o be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n and_o sufficient_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n true_o catholic_n it_o follow_v evident_o that_o no_o heretic_n be_v ever_o yet_o vnchurch_v by_o his_o particular_a heresy_n but_o 10._o woe_n be_v to_o catholic_n what_o ever_o become_v of_o other_o they_o must_v be_v vnchurch_v for_o these_o man_n assert_v and_o very_o wise_o as_o they_o think_v although_o nothing_o separate_v a_o church_n proper_o from_o the_o catholic_n but_o what_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o be_v of_o it_o yet_o a_o church_n and_o this_o be_v the_o roman_a may_v separate_a herself_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n society_n by_o take_v upon_o she_o to_o make_v such_o thing_n necessary_a condition_n of_o communion_n which_o never_o be_v the_o condition_n of_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n observe_v first_o a_o supposition_n for_o a_o proof_n of_o strange_a impose_v condition_n observe_v 2._o a_o supposition_n sectary_n mere_a supposition_n pass_v for_o proof_n with_o sectary_n for_o a_o proof_n of_o no_o man_n know_v what_o catholic_n church_n wide_a and_o large_a than_o the_o roman_a but_o above_o all_o 11._o observe_v 3._o their_o unlearned_a discourse_n the_o roman_a church_n say_v they_o draw_v the_o bound_n of_o catholic_n communion_n within_o herself_o and_o so_o divide_v from_o the_o true_a catholic_n church_n i_o ask_v from_o what_o true_a catholic_n church_n do_v separate_v they_o can_v name_v the_o orthodox_n church_n from_o which_o the_o roman_a church_n separate_v she_o divide_v herself_o speak_v out_o and_o name_v that_o church_n design_v it_o plain_o which_o be_v actual_o orthodox_n and_o in_o be_v when_o luther_n apostate_v and_o something_o be_v say_v to_o the_o purpose_n if_o you_o fail_v to_o show_v we_o that_o imagine_a church_n from_o which_o you_o suppose_v the_o roman_a separate_v all_z you_o assert_v be_v a_o mere_a calumny_n we_o say_v and_o can_v justify_v it_o there_o be_v no_o such_o true_a church_n in_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o separate_a from_o unless_o arian_n nestorian_n eutychian_o grecian_n &c._n &c._n constitute_v that_o great_a imagine_a moral_a body_n but_o these_o as_o be_v evident_a once_o catholic_n separate_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n not_o she_o from_o they_o therefore_o this_o suppose_a separation_n be_v only_o a_o
unproved_a fancy_n 12._o yet_o more_o and_o this_o be_v to_o show_v you_o the_o strange_a prove_v grant_v what_o sectary_n will_v have_v nothing_o be_v prove_v weakness_n of_o our_o adversary_n whole_a discourse_n let_v we_o suppose_v this_o falsity_n of_o a_o true_a catholic_n church_n in_o luther_n day_n much_o wide_o than_o the_o roman_a withal_o that_o the_o roman_a be_v only_o a_o corrupt_a part_n of_o that_o more_o ample_a church_n believe_v it_o these_o man_n be_v yet_o far_o enough_o from_o prove_v their_o intent_n for_o admit_v upon_o the_o supposition_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n draw_v the_o bound_n of_o catholic_n communion_n within_o herself_o and_o confin_n all_o truth_n within_o her_o own_o community_n this_o be_v only_o her_o own_o particular_a opinion_n which_o draw_v no_o more_o confine_n no_o more_o than_o protestant_n do_v now_o for_o do_v do_v protestant_n pretend_v as_o much_o to_o have_v christ_n verity_n teach_v by_o they_o as_o catholic_n do_v not_o they_o prosess_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n be_v more_o pure_o and_o less_o erroneous_o teach_v in_o england_n at_o this_o day_n then_o in_o any_o other_o society_n of_o christian_n that_o dissent'_v from_o they_o yes_o here_o then_o be_v as_o much_o draw_v of_o truth_n to_o themselves_o and_o this_o draw_v consequent_o imply_v a_o great_a division_n from_o that_o fancy_v church_n and_o consequent_o they_o divide_v themselves_o from_o their_o catholic_n church_n catholic_n church_n which_o i_o be_o sure_a never_o teach_v that_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n be_v preach_v most_o pure_o and_o without_o error_n among_o a_o few_o english_a protestant_n mere_a opinion_n therefore_o of_o particular_a church_n as_o long_o as_o the_o general_n doctrine_n of_o all_o christian_n stand_v unshaken_a can_v in_o these_o man_n principle_n vnchurch_n any_o christian_a society_n or_o if_o they_o can_v both_z they_o i_o mean_v our_o protestant_n and_o all_o other_o sectary_n be_v vnchurch_v because_o all_o of_o they_o believe_v more_o than_o the_o general_n essential_o of_o faith_n exact_v of_o any_o christian_a 13._o it_o may_v be_v answer_v though_o they_o believe_v more_o yea_o and_o particular_o hold_v that_o christ_n doctrine_n be_v more_o pure_o teach_v and_o believe_v in_o england_n then_o in_o other_o place_n yet_o this_o be_v not_o a_o necessary_a condition_n of_o communion_n with_o they_o no_o i_o hope_v it_o be_v a_o protestancy_n to_o have_v communion_n with_o protestant_n be_v without_o doubt_n necessary_a to_o believe_v something_o of_o pure_a protestancy_n necessary_a condition_n of_o communion_n with_o protestant_n though_o unnecessary_a for_o communion_n with_o that_o other_o fancy_v universal_a church_n and_o the_o general_n doctrine_n thereof_o the_o reason_n be_v no_o man_n can_v be_v more_o a_o protestant_n unless_o he_o believe_v all_o particular_a own_a article_n of_o that_o religion_n as_o pure_a and_o orthodox_n then_o a_o good_a papist_n and_o not_o believe_v what_o that_o church_n particular_o teach_v 14._o now_o because_o we_o be_v get_v thus_o far_o into_o a_o matter_n wherein_o i_o hold_v our_o adversary_n much_o oversee_v i_o will_v sectary_n a_o question_n propose_v not_o to_o be_v answer_v by_o sectary_n glad_o have_v a_o clear_a answer_n to_o this_o one_o question_n viz._n whether_o after_o a_o due_a proposal_n it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o communicate_v with_o protestant_n that_o be_v firm_o to_o believe_v any_o one_o article_n of_o our_o protestant_n reform_a faith_n as_o it_o be_v protestancy_n for_o example_n two_o sacrament_n only_o no_o real_a presence_n no_o sacrifice_n or_o what_o else_o you_o will_v if_o they_o answer_v yes_o then_o i_o infer_v the_o belief_n of_o that_o doctrine_n universal_a and_o necessary_a if_o doctrine_n common_a ââ_o all_o be_v not_o sufficient_a something_o of_o protestancy_n must_v be_v own_v necessary_a common_a to_o all_o christian_n be_v not_o enough_o to_o salvation_n for_o now_o they_o require_v more_o viz_o a_o belief_n of_o some_o doctrine_n peculiar_a to_o protestancy_n as_o it_o be_v reform_v contrariwise_o if_o they_o grant_v nothing_o within_o the_o bound_n of_o pure_a protestancy_n to_o be_v a_o doctrine_n of_o such_o absolute_a necessity_n to_o salvation_n it_o follow_v evident_o though_o a_o protestant_n after_o a_o perfect_a knowledge_n have_v of_o his_o religion_n as_o reform_v do_v both_o abjure_v and_o anathematise_v that_o particular_a believer_n if_o nothing_o of_o protestancy_n be_v account_v of_o as_o necessary_a one_o may_v abjure_v all_o that_o religion_n and_o yet_o be_v a_o faithful_a believer_n doctrine_n and_o believ'_v only_o with_o a_o general_n faith_n common_a to_o arian_n and_o all_o other_o heretic_n he_o may_v yet_o be_v save_v because_o the_o belief_n of_o no_o one_o article_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o protestancy_n avail_n he_o one_o whit_n to_o salvation_n if_o so_o tell_v i_o i_o beseech_v you_o what_o a_o religion_n have_v we_o here_o shall_v we_o say_v that_o the_o author_n and_o professor_n of_o protestancy_n have_v make_v a_o shameful_a bustle_n to_o bring_v in_o a_o novelty_n which_o must_v be_v call_v the_o true_a reform_a religion_n and_o now_o hear_v theâ_n teach_v that_o be_v teach_v nothing_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n grant_v thus_o much_o and_o throw_v protestancy_n salvation_n a_o shameful_a schism_n about_o protestancy_n that_o teach_v nothing_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n out_o of_o the_o world_n man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o it_o 15._o some_o perhaps_o will_v reply_v protestant_n at_o least_o judge_n that_o among_o the_o many_o religion_n which_o now_o swarm_n in_o the_o world_n their_o reform_a novelty_n be_v one_o of_o the_o best_a and_o the_o secure_a way_n to_o heaven_n alas_o we_o judgement_n we_o ask_v not_o what_o protestant_n judge_v but_o demand_v for_o a_o proof_n of_o that_o judgement_n inquire_v not_o what_o they_o mere_a fallible_a man_n judge_v every_o heretic_n speak_v favourable_o in_o his_o own_o cause_n but_o we_o go_v further_o and_o ask_v into_o what_o undoubted_a principle_n that_o judgement_n be_v final_o resolve_v or_o whether_o these_o man_n withal_o the_o judgement_n and_o learning_n they_o have_v be_v able_a solid_o and_o rational_o to_o prove_v that_o their_o particular_a article_n of_o protestancy_n rest_v firm_o and_o rely_v upon_o the_o object_n of_o all_o faith_n which_o be_v god_n certain_a and_o salvation_n if_o protestant_n can_v resolve_v the_o belief_n of_o their_o particular_a article_n into_o divine_a revelation_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n divine_a revelation_n if_o this_o can_v be_v don_n the_o particular_a tenant_n of_o protestancy_n be_v as_o certain_a and_o consequent_o the_o belief_n of_o they_o as_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o be_v the_o belief_n of_o that_o general_n doctrine_n which_o all_o christian_n own_o the_o reason_n be_v clear_a because_o the_o testimony_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o same_o god_n and_o the_o same_o eternal_a verity_n as_o now_o we_o must_v suppose_v warrant_n be_v as_o well_o the_o one_o as_o the_o other_o again_o if_o they_o say_v and_o they_o must_v say_v it_o god_n have_v not_o reveal_v in_o the_o whole_a bible_n one_o article_n of_o protestancy_n and_o therefore_o the_o belief_n of_o not_o one_o reform_a article_n be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n it_o follow_v that_o this_o religion_n thus_o separate_v religion_n if_o not_o protestancy_n be_v no_o part_n of_o christian_a religion_n from_o the_o true_a centre_n of_o divine_a faith_n god_n infallible_a revelation_n be_v no_o christian_a religion_n at_o all_o but_o stand_v totter_v on_o fancy_n and_o fancy_v only_o which_o be_v a_o great_a verity_n 16._o occasional_o i_o here_o answer_v to_o a_o trivial_a objection_n of_o other_o that_o much_o extol_v the_o clemency_n of_o protestant_n who_o like_a papist_n do_v not_o excommunicate_v all_o that_o believe_v not_o as_o they_o believe_v good_a reason_n say_v i_o for_o why_o shall_v they_o excommunicate_v any_o for_o not_o believe_v a_o religion_n which_o be_v build_v on_o fancy_n can_v they_o judge_v in_o conscience_n or_o assure_v we_o that_o what_o they_o hold_v as_o sectary_n be_v reveal_v by_o protestancy_n the_o want_n of_o zeal_n in_o sectary_n for_o protestancy_n god_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n or_o worth_a believe_v they_o shall_v so_o far_o stand_v for_o god_n cause_n and_o set_v so_o great_a a_o value_n on_o it_o as_o to_o induce_v all_o even_o by_o spiritual_a menace_n it_o be_v a_o sweet_a way_n then_o to_o deprive_v man_n of_o their_o life_n and_o fortune_n to_o embrace_v their_o novelty_n but_o alas_o the_o real_a gild_n of_o schism_n which_o lie_v like_o lead_n at_o their_o heart_n make_v they_o most_o frigid_a in_o advance_v a_o religion_n lay_v hold_v on_o by_o mere_a chance_n and_o a_o most_o unfortunate_a casuality_n almighty_a god_n soften_v these_o conceal_a heart_n by_o sorrowful_a repentance_n and_o forgive_v all_o sectary_n their_o double_a great_a sin_n both_o
of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n the_o four_o discourse_n the_o church_n evidence_n of_o the_o improbability_n of_o protestant_a religion_n the_o first_o chapter_n christ_n church_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n sectary_n be_v convince_v 1._o we_o have_v often_o make_v a_o just_a exception_n against_o sectary_n in_o the_o foregoing_a discourse_n forth_o a_o just_a exception_n against_o sectary_n mare_n full_o lay_v forth_o and_o you_o shall_v have_v it_o here_o again_o in_o plain_a language_n protestant_n as_o they_o prove_v not_o their_o own_o religion_n of_o protestancy_n so_o they_o never_o impugn_v the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n by_o rational_a argument_n at_o last_o reducible_a to_o undoubted_a principle_n catholic_n contrariwise_o make_v good_a their_o church_n doctrine_n by_o undeniable_a principle_n and_o by_o manifest_a proof_n evidence_n the_o nullity_n of_o protestant_n faith_n though_o both_o these_o assertion_n be_v already_o demonstrate_v in_o the_o precedent_a treatise_n yet_o because_o of_o the_o weightines_n of_o the_o matter_n it_o will_v be_v necessary_a to_o epitomise_v some_o point_n large_o declare_v above_o and_o bring_v much_o to_o a_o clear_a view_n and_o a_o more_o compendious_a form_n 2._o to_o do_v this_o we_o may_v suppose_v if_o true_a religion_n we_o god_n establish_v religion_n with_o intention_n to_o have_v it_o know_v not_o to_o hide_v it_o from_o we_o be_v in_o the_o world_n the_o wise_a providence_n of_o god_n have_v make_v it_o so_o manifest_a to_o reason_n by_o force_n of_o rational_a motive_n that_o all_o may_v know_v it_o for_o certain_o god_n never_o establish_v religion_n among_o christian_n with_o intention_n to_o hide_v it_o from_o they_o or_o to_o put_v it_o out_o of_o their_o sight_n if_o man_n will_v follow_v reason_n proof_n therefore_o for_o it_o can_v no_o more_o fail_v then_o religion_n itself_o unless_o fail_v proof_n therefore_o for_o it_o can_v fail_v a_o infinite_a goodness_n which_o be_v impossible_a oblige_v we_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o embrace_v a_o religion_n which_o no_o man_n after_o a_o diligent_a search_v make_v by_o all_o the_o reason_n he_o have_v can_v find_v out_o 3._o upon_o this_o principle_n let_v i_o tell_v our_o protestant_n controversy_n wordy_a cavil_n end_v no_o controversy_n that_o they_o and_o we_o be_v not_o in_o so_o important_a a_o matter_n to_o misspend_v our_o time_n or_o to_o wrangle_v it_o out_o with_o word_n no._n proof_n must_v enter_v if_o they_o hold_v their_o religion_n true_a and_o we_o fall_v and_o so_o they_o must_v also_o if_o we_o say_v the_o contrary_a again_o neither_o of_o we_o can_v here_o proceed_v as_o schoolman_n do_v when_o they_o oppugn_v one_o a_o other_o conjecture_n solid_n proof_n must_v sway_v here_o and_o not_o weak_a conjecture_n and_o defend_v their_o different_a opinion_n upon_o weak_a and_o doubtful_a ground_n for_o if_o the_o proof_n for_o christ_n religion_n be_v not_o strong_a than_o schoolmen_n often_o be_v for_o mere_a uncertain_a opinion_n we_o may_v as_o well_o and_o without_o offence_n reject_v a_o weak_a prove_v religion_n as_o we_o do_v a_o weak_a prove_v opinion_n the_o argument_n therefore_o for_o religion_n whereon_o salvation_n depend_v be_v to_o stand_v firm_a upon_o vndeniable_a principle_n or_o this_o follow_v that_o though_o god_n have_v most_o clear_o evidence_v religion_n yet_o proof_n be_v want_v to_o make_v it_o know_v and_o this_o whilst_o he_o will_v have_v it_o know_v and_o manifest_v to_o all._n thus_o much_o suppose_v 4._o we_o will_v first_o brief_o touch_v on_o a_o few_o argument_n for_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n which_o be_v ample_o lay_v forth_o upon_o several_a occasion_n in_o this_o treatise_n i_o can_v argument_n a_o brief_a repetition_n of_o some_o few_o argument_n repeat_v all_o in_o a_o short_a compendium_n yet_o you_o shall_v have_v enough_o to_o silence_v sectary_n and_o remember_v we_o speak_v now_o of_o the_o antecedent_n evidence_n which_o clear_o show_v we_o christ_n true_a church_n and_o make_v it_o indubitable_o credible_a for_o no_o religion_n as_o i_o note_v above_o be_v exit_fw-la terminis_fw-la without_o convince_a proof_n either_o evident_o credible_a true_a or_o fals._n 5._o i_o say_v then_o first_o a_o church_n or_o religion_n which_o manife_v itself_o and_o prove_v the_o doctrine_n it_o profess_v by_o the_o same_o sign_n note_n and_o character_n of_o truth_n whereby_o the_o be_v the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n be_v evidence_v as_o the_o apostolical_a or_o primitive_a church_n be_v apostolical_a and_o primitive_a church_n be_v mark_v and_o evidence_v be_v undoubted_o true_a or_o if_o this_o proof_n be_v not_o valid_a we_o may_v easy_o deny_v truth_n to_o that_o apostolical_a and_o primitive_a church_n now_o the_o only_a church_n in_o the_o world_n thus_o mark_v and_o evidence_v be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n throughout_o all_o age_n this_o principle_n be_v undeniable_a deny_v these_o mark_n and_o sign_n to_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n you_o deny_v what_o be_v evident_a grant_v they_o and_o you_o admit_v of_o popery_n see_v disc_n 1._o c._n 9_o 10._o 6._o 2._o a_o church_n or_o religion_n which_o in_o every_o age_n after_o church_n miracle_n christ_n own_o mark_n evidence_n the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n christ_n have_v have_v a_o most_o clear_a assure_a and_o vndubitable_a evidence_n of_o truth_n which_o be_v the_o glory_n of_o miracle_n christ_n own_a mark_n and_o cognisance_n make_v know_v the_o absolute_a power_n of_o god_n cooperate_n with_o it_o and_o therefore_o can_v but_o be_v true_a unless_o we_o think_v that_o his_o power_n alone_o divorce_v as_o it_o be_v from_o goodness_n do_v set_v his_o hand_n and_o seal_n to_o mere_a forge_v sign_n and_o wrought_v these_o wonder_n to_o deceive_v the_o world_n but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n and_o she_o only_o clear_o demonstrat_n vnparallelled_a miracle_n not_o in_o one_o but_o in_o every_o age_n as_o be_v without_o controversy_n prove_v by_o undoubted_a record_n undeniable_a they_o be_v undeniable_a which_o truth_n i_o engage_v to_o make_v good_a if_o any_o doubt_n of_o it_o therefore_o either_o this_o church_n or_o none_o be_v christ_n true_a church_n i_o call_v miracle_n rhe_n most_o forceable_a and_o persuasive_a argument_n of_o truth_n that_o can_v be_v propose_v all_o other_o convince_v and_o above_o all_o other_o proof_n most_o convince_v proof_n though_o clear_a and_o convince_v to_o disinterest_v judgement_n be_v liable_a to_o cavil_n for_o cite_v scripture_n against_o sectary_n wilful_a misinterpretation_n abuse_v it_o produce_v father_n and_o council_n they_o be_v either_o reject_v cavil_n other_o proof_n more_o liable_a to_o cavil_n by_o these_o man_n as_o fallible_a or_o draw_v to_o a_o sinister_a sense_n as_o fancy_n will_v have_v it_o tell_v they_o of_o the_o sanctity_n of_o our_o church_n they_o answer_v much_o of_o it_o may_v be_v hypocrisy_n insist_v upon_o that_o great_a work_n of_o conversion_n some_o reply_n policy_n and_o humane_a industry_n have_v a_o strong_a hand_n in_o them_o but_o when_o we_o come_v to_o the_o proof_n of_o proof_n and_o plead_v our_o cause_n by_o know_a and_o most_o evidence_v miracle_n all_o mouth_n be_v stop_v envy_n itself_o be_v silence_v and_o can_v speak_v a_o probable_a word_n against_o we_o unless_o miracle_n none_o can_v require_v that_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o this_o church_n work_v miracle_n perhaps_o some_o require_v and_o most_o unreasonable_o that_o every_o one_o within_o this_o moral_a body_n shall_v work_v miracle_n which_o be_v mere_o to_o cavil_v for_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n all_o have_v no_o such_o privilege_n it_o be_v therefore_o sufficient_a that_o there_o be_v some_o choice_n and_o select_v person_n unite_v in_o faith_n with_o this_o church_n to_o who_o god_n communicat_n the_o grace_n and_o do_v these_o wonder_n see_v more_o of_o this_o subject_a disc_n 1._o c._n 10._o n._n 15._o 16._o 17._o 7._o 3._o a_o church_n which_o have_v convert_v whole_a kingdom_n and_o nation_n from_o infidelity_n to_o christ_n and_o draw_v innumerable_a church_n admirable_a conversion_n wrought_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n as_o well_o prove_v it_o orthodox_n as_o the_o primitive_a church_n soul_n from_o a_o tepid_a life_n to_o penance_n and_o austerity_n from_o the_o content_n of_o the_o world_n to_o a_o contempt_n of_o it_o from_o self-love_n to_o a_o perfect_a self-abnegation_a must_v either_o be_v deserve_o name_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n or_o the_o apostolical_a church_n prove_v not_o its_o truth_n by_o such_o admirable_a and_o miraculous_a conversion_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n only_o have_v by_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n don_n these_o wonder_n therefore_o it_o be_v the_o true_a church_n or_o there_o be_v never_o any_o true_a upon_o earth_n deny_v these_o conversion_n make_v by_o our_o catholic_n society_n you_o deny_v what_o be_v most_o evident_a grant_v they_o you_o
to_o have_v be_v preserve_v by_o god_n prove_v also_o the_o roman_a christian_a religion_n gracious_o preserve_v the_o reason_n prove_v true_a christian_a religion_n take_v under_o that_o general_n notion_n to_o have_v be_v preserve_v in_o so_o many_o storm_n of_o persecution_n by_o god_n special_a assistance_n if_o sectary_n answer_v yes_o the_o very_a same_o argument_n apply_v to_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n prove_v that_o also_o gracious_o uphold_v by_o providence_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o as_o i_o have_v large_o prove_v true_a christian_a religion_n though_o never_o so_o general_o take_v and_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n be_v synonima_n and_o the_o very_a same_n there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o them_o now_o if_o sectary_n say_v that_o as_o well_o the_o christian_n as_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n have_v subsist_v so_o long_o without_o special_a assistance_n by_o man_n mere_a industry_n and_o humane_a policy_n they_o do_v not_o only_o enervate_a old_a gamaliel_n argument_n but_o more_o vent_v a_o paradox_n which_o can_v paradox_n if_o sectary_n say_v religion_n have_v be_v so_o long_o preserve_v by_o humane_a policy_n they_o vent_v a_o unproved_a paradox_n never_o be_v prove_v or_o bring_v to_o any_o know_a principle_n but_o to_o fancy_n only_o 26._o and_o thus_o much_o brief_o of_o some_o few_o argument_n for_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n which_o if_o reduce_v to_o form_n and_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o do_v it_o be_v unanswerable_a you_o have_v more_o in_o the_o treatise_n let_v we_o now_o se_fw-mi in_o the_o next_o place_n what_o sectary_n can_v say_v for_o their_o novelty_n or_o upon_o what_o proof_n antecedent_n to_o their_o faith_n they_o be_v able_a so_o far_o to_o evidence_n the_o credibility_n of_o protestancy_n as_o to_o make_v it_o in_o a_o poor_a measure_n probable_a chap._n ii_o protestancy_n be_v a_o vnevidence_v and_o a_o most_o improbable_a religion_n or_o rather_o no_o religion_n but_o a_o mere_a fancy_v opinion_n 1._o it_o be_v vnevidence_v for_o the_o professor_n of_o it_o can_v by_o no_o rational_a argument_n previous_a to_o belief_n more_o prove_v that_o their_o own_a novelty_n ought_v to_o be_v admit_v of_o as_o prudent_o credible_a then_o the_o worst_a arianism_n protestancy_n as_o much_o vnevidence_v as_o arianism_n of_o heresy_n take_v for_o a_o instance_n arianism_n hear_v my_o reason_n the_o very_a ground_n whereon_o rational_a proof_n ought_v to_o stand_v fail_v they_o they_o have_v no_o antiquity_n no_o universality_n no_o succession_n of_o protestant_a bishop_n and_o pastor_n they_o want_v lawful_a mission_n miracle_n and_o all_o other_o prudential_a sign_n of_o truth_n as_o be_v large_o declare_v in_o the_o first_o discourse_n c._n 9_o yet_o from_o these_o and_o the_o like_a motive_n previous_a rational_a proof_n manifest_v the_o credibility_n of_o religion_n must_v be_v draw_v or_o the_o religion_n which_o be_v assert_v true_a rational_a motive_n must_v evidente_n the_o credibility_n of_o religion_n or_o it_o be_v uphold_v by_o his_o bare_a word_n that_o say_v it_o be_v true_a to_o be_v true_a or_o credible_a will_v appear_v naked_a and_o vnevidence_v have_v nothing_o to_o uphold_v it_o but_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o he_o who_o say_v it_o be_v true_a and_o therefore_o be_v no_o religion_n i_o need_v not_o to_o urge_v this_o point_n further_o because_o sectary_n tacit_o suppose_v the_o credibility_n of_o their_o religion_n to_o be_v vndemonstrable_a by_o outward_a sign_n and_o mark_v of_o truth_n for_o inquire_v of_o they_o why_o they_o rather_o embrace_v protestancy_n then_o popery_n or_o any_o other_o doctrine_n of_o heretic_n you_o never_o hear_v a_o word_n of_o the_o long_a continuance_n motive_n sectary_n seem_v to_o make_v no_o account_n of_o these_o antecedent_n motive_n of_o their_o church_n of_o their_o lawful_a mission_n of_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o protestant_a bishop_n from_o christ_n time_n nor_o of_o undoubted_a miracle_n etc._n etc._n no._n but_o they_o present_o run_v to_o scripture_n and_o tell_v you_o that_o both_o their_o faith_n and_o the_o motive_n of_o it_o internal_a to_o the_o book_n stand_v there_o sufficient_o evidence_v shall_v we_o see_v a_o little_a the_o vanity_n of_o this_o assertion_n 2._o methinks_v i_o enter_v into_o a_o study_n where_o a_o learned_a protestant_n sit_v with_o a_o bible_n before_o he_o and_o much_o dissatisfy_v with_o his_o novelty_n i_o assure_v he_o the_o protestancy_n the_o bible_n alone_o prove_v nothing_o for_o protestancy_n very_a want_n of_o rational_a proof_n ground_v on_o objective_a motive_n draw_v i_o from_o his_o religion_n which_o be_v neither_o evident_o nor_o so_o much_o as_o probably_n make_v credible_a to_o any_o the_o man_n point_v at_o his_o bible_n and_o say_v this_o book_n both_o prove_v protestant_a religion_n and_o give_v you_o motive_n for_o it_o make_v sir_n say_v i_o this_o your_o assertion_n good_a viz._n the_o bible_n delivers_n protestant_n religion_n he_o argue_v the_o bible_n teach_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n the_o eternal_a son_n of_o god_n the_o redeemer_n of_o the_o world_n and_o thus_o much_o protestancy_n teach_v also_o ergo_fw-la scripture_n prove_v protestancy_n protestancy_n to_o prove_v doctrine_n by_o scripture_n common_a to_o all_o christian_n be_v not_o to_o prove_v protestancy_n i_o answer_v the_o argument_n à _fw-la genere_fw-la ad_fw-la speciem_fw-la prove_v just_o nothing_o for_o these_o doctrine_n common_a both_o to_o catholic_n and_o other_o sectary_n be_v no_o specifical_a article_n of_o protestancy_n as_o it_o be_v reform_v now_o these_o sir_n you_o must_v show_v contain_v in_o scripture_n for_o example_n as_o a_o protestant_n you_o believe_v no_o sacrifice_n offer_v upon_o the_o altar_n no_o purgatory_n no_o transubstantiation_n etc._n etc._n pray_v you_o warrant_v these_o negative_a believe_v article_n by_o scripture-proof_n he_o reply_v after_o his_o long_a read_v scripture_n he_o find'_v no_o mention_n make_v at_o all_o of_o a_o sacrifice_n of_o transubstantiation_n and_o the_o like_a i_o answer_v other_o as_o learned_a as_o he_o find_v they_o and_o prove_v all_o by_o scripture_n here_o therefore_o be_v no_o own_a principle_n to_o ground_n his_o denial_n on_o but_o let_v this_o pass_n 3._o i_o argue_v against_o my_o doctor_n though_o you_o find_v not_o a_o sacrifice_n or_o purgatory_n in_o scripture_n nay_o more_o though_o we_o false_o suppose_v both_o to_o be_v unrevealed_a proofle_n sectary_n negative_a way_n of_o argue_v demonstrate_v proofle_n mystery_n yet_o you_o can_v positive_o say_v by_o a_o act_n of_o faith_n a_o sacrifice_n be_v not_o purgatory_n be_v not_o i_o prove_v it_o nothing_o can_v be_v believe_v by_o divine_a faith_n but_o what_o god_n positive_o reveal_n but_o god_n have_v not_o say_v any_o where_n positive_o there_o be_v no_o purgatory_n no_o sacrifice_n no_o transubstantiation_n ergo_fw-la these_o negative_n can_v be_v believe_v by_o divine_a faith_n sectary_n grant_v the_o major_a the_o minor_a be_v as_o evident_a for_o they_o shall_v as_o soon_o prove_v that_o god_n now_o positive_o reveal_n who_o shall_v be_v the_o last_o man_n alive_a in_o the_o world_n as_o prove_v that_o scripture_n positive_o teach_v purgatory_n be_v not_o a_o sacrifice_n be_v not_o &c._n &c._n whence_o i_o infer_v if_o protestant_n believe_v no_o purgatory_n for_o example_n it_o be_v not_o enough_o to_o say_v we_o read_v of_o no_o such_o place_n in_o scripture_n for_o be_v this_o true_a it_o be_v only_o a_o bare_a negative_a and_o at_o most_o show_n that_o god_n negative_n what_o protestant_n be_v to_o prove_v if_o the_o believe_v any_o of_o their_o negative_n have_v omit_v to_o speak_v at_o all_o of_o purgatory_n which_o silence_n can_v ground_n no_o act_n of_o faith_n unless_o this_o consequence_n be_v good_a because_o a_o infinite_a verity_n neither_o affirm's_n nor_o deny_v that_o three_o place_n therefore_o i_o will_v believe_v no_o purgatory_n to_o believe_v then_o no_o purgatory_n or_o no_o sacrifice_n it_o be_v necessary_a not_o only_o to_o say_v god_n say_v nothing_o in_o scripture_n of_o these_o mystery_n but_o more_o be_v require_v viz._n to_o prove_v that_o his_o infallible_a revelation_n positive_o deny_v they_o for_o word_n before_o sectary_n positive_o deny_v catholic_n doctrine_n they_o be_v to_o prove_v that_o god_n have_v positive_o deny_v it_o in_o his_o word_n before_o i_o positive_o deny_v a_o purgatory_n by_o my_o faith_n i_o must_v prove_v it_o positive_o deny_v by_o a_o infinite_a verity_n which_o be_v utter_o impossible_a see_v this_o point_n more_o ample_o declare_v disc_n 2._o c._n 8._o n._n 4._o 5._o 4._o perhaps_o the_o doctor_n will_v tell_v i_o these_o negative_n of_o no_o sacrifice_n no_o purgatory_n etc._n etc._n be_v no_o essential_o of_o protestant_a religion_n but_o certain_a by-article_n which_o may_v as_o well_o be_v reject_v as_o maintain_v whilst_o the_o common_a and_o allove_a own_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n be_v firm_o believe_v if_o he_o
answer_v thus_o first_o protestant_n religion_n come_v to_o nothing_o for_o all_o or_o the_o most_o pair_v of_o it_o be_v make_v up_o of_o these_o negative_n 2._o this_o reform_a part_n be_v no_o christian_a religion_n religion_n if_o sectary_n make_v their_o negative_n not_o essential_a to_o protestancy_n their_o reform_a religion_n be_v no_o christian_a religion_n for_o christian_a religion_n at_o last_o resolvable_a into_o god_n certain_a revelation_n can_v be_v yield_v to_o and_o deny_v as_o man_n plea_n unless_o we_o grant_v that_o that_o may_v be_v deny_v which_o god_n say_v be_v true_a 3._o it_o follow_v though_o a_o protestant_a curse_n and_o anathematise_v the_o specifical_a article_n of_o his_o reform_a religion_n as_o reform_v he_o may_v yet_o be_v a_o good_a protestant_n and_o gain_v salvation_n by_o the_o general_n faith_n common_a to_o arian_n and_o other_o heteredox_n christian_n i_o will_v glad_o hear_v of_o a_o good_a solution_n to_o these_o difficulty_n more_o large_o lay_v forth_o disc_n 3._o c._n 11._o n._n 13._o 14._o in_o the_o mean_a while_n you_o see_v how_o vnevidence_v a_o thing_n protestant_n religion_n be_v which_o have_v neither_o rational_a motive_n to_o make_v it_o credible_a nor_o probable_a protestancy_n have_v neither_o motive_n to_o make_v it_o credible_a nor_o a_o word_n of_o scripture_n to_o make_v it_o probable_a so_o much_o as_o one_o favourable_a word_n of_o scripture_n to_o make_v it_o probable_a you_o see_v moreover_o how_o scripture_n alone_o without_o a_o church_n and_o a_o naked_a church_n not_o manifest_v by_o prudent_a motive_n leave_v we_o in_o darkness_n lead_v into_o labyrinth_n yea_o and_o utter_o impossibilitat_n not_o less_o the_o search_n then_o the_o find_v out_o of_o true_a religion_n 5._o from_o the_o evident_a vnevidence_n of_o this_o new_a religion_n the_o follow_v from_o the_o unevidence_n of_o protestancy_n the_o improbability_n of_o it_o follow_v improbability_n of_o it_o follow_v as_o a_o property_n do_v to_o its_o essence_n for_o a_o vnproved_a religion_n be_v improbable_a and_o a_o improbable_a religion_n be_v no_o christian_a religion_n pray_v you_o tell_v i_o if_o one_o pretend_v to_o be_v a_o wise_a man_n and_o never_o give_v sign_n or_o proof_n of_o his_o wisdom_n to_o be_v learned_a and_o show_v himself_o a_o dunce_n in_o all_o company_n to_o be_v liberal_a and_o instance_n a_o instance_n relieve_v none_o in_o necessity_n will_v you_o admit_v of_o all_o without_o proof_n upon_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o he_o who_o say_v he_o be_v wise_a learned_a and_o liberal_a no_o you_o will_v slight_v such_o talk_n as_o vnworthly_a of_o credit_n and_o hold_v it_o improbable_a this_o be_v the_o real_a case_n of_o protestant_n who_o vapour_n much_o talk_v much_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o pure_a reform_a gospel_n but_o when_o thing_n come_v to_o the_o test_n and_o proof_n be_v just_o call_v probable_a no_o principle_n whereby_o to_o prove_v protestancy_n probable_a for_o to_o make_v word_n good_a they_o can_v neither_o say_v by_o force_n of_o any_o receive_a principle_n why_o they_o believe_v protestancy_n in_o general_n to_o be_v christ_n true_a religion_n nor_o why_o they_o give_v assent_v by_o divine_a faith_n to_o so_o much_o as_o to_o one_o article_n within_o the_o compass_n of_o protestancy_n as_o it_o be_v reform_v improbable_a the_o doctrine_n assert_v the_o proof_n of_o it_o the_o opposition_n make_v against_o catholic_n and_o the_o method_n hold_v in_o arguin_n ãâ¦ã_o g_o improbable_a 6._o you_o will_v say_v this_o charge_n go_v high_a and_o therefore_o just_o require_v of_o i_o to_o declare_v further_o wherein_o chief_o our_o adversary_n speak_v so_o improbable_o i_o answer_v they_o do_v it_o not_o in_o one_o particular_a only_o but_o in_o every_o thing_n they_o say_n the_o doctrine_n assert_v by_o they_o be_v improbable_a the_o proof_n of_o their_o new_a religion_n be_v improbable_a the_o oppositi_fw-la make_v against_o our_o roman_a catholic_n faith_n be_v improbable_a the_o very_a method_n hold_v in_o argue_v against_o we_o be_v improbable_a all_o fall_v all_o be_v deficient_a and_o it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o for_o who_o be_v able_a to_o persuade_v himself_o without_o assent_v to_o a_o most_o desperate_a improbability_n that_o in_o this_o old_a age_n of_o the_o world_n when_o all_o rather_o expect_v the_o day_n of_o judgement_n then_o a_o settlement_n of_o a_o new_a religion_n a_o little_a knot_n of_o man_n whole_o unknown_a a_o hundred_o year_n agon_n shall_v now_o start_v up_o and_o speak_v to_o the_o purpose_n when_o they_o go_v about_o not_o only_o to_o cast_v down_o a_o long_o stand_v church_n but_o more_o to_o make_v a_o novelty_n credible_a whereof_o the_o world_n have_v no_o knowledge_n at_o all_o for_o fiften_v age_n before_o this_o i_o say_v be_v high_o improbable_a but_o ad_fw-la rem_fw-la 7._o i_o say_v first_o their_o doctrine_n be_v improbable_a and_o prove_v it_o arian_n protestancy_n not_o resolvable_a into_o god_n revelation_n stand_v on_o fancy_n and_o therefore_o improbable_a protestant_n gloss_n as_o improbable_a as_o the_o arian_n no_o doctrine_n fallible_o teach_v can_v be_v vltimat_o resolve_v into_o god_n infallible_a revelation_n but_o into_o fallible_a guess_n or_o fancy_n only_o the_o profess_a doctrine_n of_o protestancy_n as_o reform_v be_v fallible_o teach_v and_o can_v be_v resolve_v into_o god_n infallible_a revelation_n therefore_o it_o final_o rest_v on_o mere_a guess_n or_o fancy_n and_o consequent_o be_v improbable_a see_v disc_n 1._o c._n 1._o n._n 6._o 8._o 2._o it_o be_v improbable_a to_o say_v that_o scripture_n alone_o without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n make_v any_o man_n certain_a in_o what_o he_o gloss_n or_o at_o all_o infallible_a for_o both_o arian_n and_o pelagian_o read_v it_o and_o gloss_n it_o yet_o err_v gross_o in_o point_n most_o essential_a protestant_n who_o own_o no_o infallible_a interpreter_n both_z read_z and_o gloss_n as_o these_o do_v by_o their_o own_o uncertain_a guess_n and_o therefore_o gloss_n as_o improbably_n disc_n 1._o c._n 4._o n._n 7._o 8._o improbable_a universal_a opposition_n make_v protestancy_n improbable_a 9_o 3._o a_o doctrine_n which_o at_o its_o first_o rise_n and_o after_o also_o be_v and_o be_v still_o as_o much_o oppose_v by_o other_o christian_n the_o whole_a world_n over_o as_o ever_o arianism_n be_v and_o be_v improbable_a protestancy_n have_v and_o have_v still_o this_o universal_a opposition_n make_v against_o it_o and_o therefore_o upon_o that_o sole_a acount_n be_v improbable_a disc_n 1._o c._n 6._o n._n 3._o 10._o 4._o to_o say_v on_o the_o one_o side_n that_o protestancy_n be_v the_o true_a improbable_a protestancy_n dishonour_v christ_n and_o therefore_o be_v improbable_a orthodox_n religion_n and_o on_o the_o other_o to_o grant_v that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n which_o sectary_n condemn_v of_o error_n have_v infinite_o obscure_v protestancy_n with_o the_o splendour_n of_o most_o glorious_a mark_n of_o truth_n manifest_o know_v to_o the_o world_n as_o miracle_n conversion_n etc._n etc._n be_v high_o improbable_a because_o dishonourable_a to_o christ_n and_o injurious_a to_o god_n who_o can_v make_v a_o fall_v religion_n more_o clear_a to_o reason_n or_o more_o prudent_o credible_a than_o his_o own_o truth_n and_o verity_n be_v disc_n 1._o c._n 12._o n._n 1._o 2._o protestancy_n a_o new_a coin_a heresy_n may_v be_v better_a defend_v then_o protestancy_n 11._o 5._o a_o new_a coin_v heresy_n without_o motive_n of_o credibility_n may_v as_o well_o be_v invent_v and_o better_a defend_v by_o the_o bare_a word_n of_o scripture_n then_o protestancy_n can_v be_v defend_v but_o such_o a_o heresy_n be_v improbable_a therefore_o protestancy_n upon_o that_o account_n be_v much_o more_o improbable_a disc_n 1._o c._n 12._o n._n 3._o 4._o 5._o providence_n sectary_n improbable_o allow_v god_n no_o more_o but_o a_o lame_a and_o half_a providence_n 12._o 6._o to_o say_v that_o god_n have_v only_o care_n of_o a_o bible_n and_o preserve_v that_o free_a from_o corruption_n but_o withal_o permit_v his_o own_o immaculate_a spouse_n the_o church_n which_o he_o found_v pure_a to_o play_v the_o harlot_n and_o afterward_o to_o deceive_v christian_n with_o damnable_a error_n be_v not_o only_o to_o allow_v he_o a_o lame_a and_o half_a providence_n but_o also_o to_o vent_v a_o doctrine_n more_o than_o improbable_a improbable_a they_o must_v say_v that_o a_o church_n essential_o errable_a may_v as_o easy_o lose_v the_o consolation_n of_o grace_n at_o truth_n both_o be_v improbable_a that_o be_v enormous_o impious_a sectary_n say_v so_o and_o therefore_o speak_v improbable_o disc_n 2._o c._n 2._o n._n 7._o 13._o 7._o a_o church_n essential_o errable_a may_v loose_v all_o truth_n and_o consequent_o as_o easy_o all_o consolation_n of_o grace_n and_o so_o become_v whole_o divorce_v from_o christ_n the_o first_o protestant_n assert_v and_o therefore_o must_v maintain_v the_o other_o which_o be_v heretical_a and_o more_o than_o improbable_a
doctrine_n disc_n 2._o c._n 6._o n._n 7._o 8._o 14._o 8._o though_o contrary_a to_o both_o truth_n and_o conscience_n it_o be_v suppose_v that_o we_o prove_v not_o our_o catholic_n certainty_n they_o improbable_o find_v their_o doctrine_n upon_o falso_n suppose_v negative_n be_v fallible_a and_o therefore_o not_o assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o pretend_v improbable_o to_o teach_v christ_n doctrine_n with_o certainty_n verity_n yet_o no_o absolute_a denial_n of_o these_o verity_n follow_n from_o our_o not_o prove_v they_o but_o protestant_n upon_o this_o fall_v suppose_v negative_a we_o prove_v not_o without_o the_o least_o appearance_n of_o any_o infallible_a revelation_n for_o they_o ground_n their_o faith_n which_o be_v a_o most_o desperate_a improbability_n disc_n 2._o c._n 8._o n._n 2._o 3._o 15._o 9_o it_o be_v improbable_a to_o say_v that_o protestant_n whilst_o they_o teach_v their_o novelty_n or_o interpret_v scripture_n do_v either_o the_o one_o or_o other_o as_o faithful_a oracle_n or_o instrument_n assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n for_o these_o man_n whether_o they_o teach_v or_o interpret_v profess_v themselves_o fallible_a in_o all_o they_o say_v therefore_o be_v not_o assist_v instrument_n of_o this_o bless_a spirit_n who_o teach_v by_o none_o the_o necessary_a doctrine_n of_o a_o universal_a church_n interpret_n by_o none_o but_o such_o as_o do_v it_o infallible_o disc_n 2._o c._n 9_o n._n 8._o 16._o 10._o to_o say_v that_o that_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n be_v not_o true_a in_o all_o age_n before_o luther_n be_v more_o than_o improbable_a protestant_n who_o fals._n they_o make_v improbable_o a_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n fals._n can_v name_v no_o other_o catholic_n church_n but_o the_o roman_a which_o they_o hold_v erroneous_a must_v both_o vow_n and_o vote_n the_o creed_n fall_v for_o so_o vast_a a_o time_n disc_n 3._o c._n 1._o n._n 1._o improbable_a to_o teach_v that_o a_o doctrine_n common_a to_o heretic_n be_v enough_o for_o salvation_n be_v improbable_a a_o religion_n essential_o hypocritical_a improbable_a 17._o 11._o it_o be_v high_o improbable_a to_o say_v that_o either_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v corrupt_v in_o doctrine_n or_o that_o a_o doctrine_n common_a to_o all_o heretic_n be_v enough_o for_o save_v faith_n protestant_n affirm_v both_o disc_n 3._o c._n 2._o 18._o 12._o a_o church_n essential_o hypocritical_a that_o may_v believe_v one_o thing_n and_o must_v profess_v a_o other_o be_v unworthy_a of_o credit_n and_o can_v be_v judge_v to_o hold_v probable_a doctrine_n protestant_n own_v such_o a_o church_n disc_n 3._o c._n 6._o n._n 10._o 19_o 13._o a_o church_n or_o religion_n that_o have_v not_o one_o article_n of_o faith_n ground_v on_o scripture_n as_o it_o be_v reform_v yet_o sectary_n so_o be_v a_o church_n without_o a_o word_n of_o scripture_n for_o it_o another_o improbability_n of_o sectary_n pretend'_v to_o draw_v all_o to_o it_o by_o force_n of_o scripture_n deliver_v most_o improbable_a doctrine_n protestancy_n be_v such_o a_o religion_n ibidem_fw-la n._n 11._o 20._o 14._o protestant_n that_o pretend_v to_o submit_v to_o the_o authority_n of_o one_o two_o or_o three_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o scornful_o reject_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n proceed_v improbable_o disc_n 3._o c._n 7._o n._n 9_o and_o thus_o much_o brief_o of_o a_o few_o doctrinal_a improbability_n teach_v by_o protestant_n the_o treatise_n afford'_v you_o more_o touch_v the_o liberty_n the_o vnconstancy_n the_o endless_a dissension_n of_o sectary_n with_o other_o sad_a effect_n that_o follow_v this_o new_a gospel_n these_o i_o wave_v in_o this_o place_n and_o 21._o say_v 2._o the_o proof_n of_o sectary_n for_o their_o new_a religion_n reason_n sectary_n proof_n of_o their_o own_o religion_n be_v improbable_a the_o reason_n be_v improbable_a the_o assertion_n be_v consequential_a and_o stand_v firm_a upon_o what_o be_v say_v already_o for_o a_o doctrine_n prove_v improbable_a by_o undoubted_a principle_n can_v be_v make_v evident_o credible_a by_o any_o rational_a argument_n unless_o truth_n be_v contrary_a to_o truth_n but_o the_o doctrine_n of_o protestancy_n be_v demonstrate_v improbable_a therefore_o no_o rational_a proof_n can_v make_v it_o evident_o credible_a nor_o so_o much_o as_o weak_o probable_a to_o confirm_v this_o do_v no_o more_o but_o demand_v of_o any_o sectary_n the_o question_n have_v be_v often_o propose_v upon_o what_o rational_a proof_n other_o a_o protestant_n can_v say_v upon_o a_o rational_a principle_n why_o he_o judge_v his_o religion_n true_a or_o the_o best_a of_o all_o other_o or_o receive_v principle_n antecedent_n to_o his_o faith_n he_o believe_v protestancy_n i_o do_v not_o say_v christian_a religion_n take_v in_o what_o general_n way_n you_o will_v to_o be_v the_o best_a and_o pure_a religion_n now_o profess_v he_o can_v pretend_v that_o this_o novelty_n be_v ex_fw-la terminis_fw-la evident_o true_n or_o credible_a for_o no_o religion_n be_v so_o much_o less_o that_o he_o believe_v without_o reason_n or_o because_o he_o will_v believe_v therefore_o after_o he_o have_v declare_v what_o he_o believe_v he_o must_v also_o satisfy_v the_o doubt_n and_o tell_v we_o why_o he_o believe_v and_o ground_n his_o answer_n upon_o a_o rational_a principle_n but_o it_o be_v as_o impossible_a to_o satisfy_v this_o one_o demand_v as_o to_o remove_v the_o pyraenean_a mountain_n from_o the_o place_n they_o stand_v in_o the_o reason_n be_v it_o be_v reason_n it_o be_v high_o against_o reason_n to_o embrace_v a_o religion_n without_o prudent_a motive_n protestancy_n have_v no_o prudent_a motive_n if_o they_o have_v any_o in_o store_n they_o can_v be_v lay_v forth_o to_o reason_n high_o against_o all_o reason_n to_o embrace_v any_o religion_n whether_o new_a or_o old_a without_o rational_a proof_n ground_v on_o sure_a motive_n which_o plead_v as_o it_o be_v in_o god_n behalf_n and_o make_v religion_n evident_o credible_a before_o we_o yield_v assent_v to_o it_o but_o protestant_n have_v no_o rational_a motive_n antecedent_n to_o their_o belief_n of_o protestancy_n which_o hold_v a_o strict_a analogy_n with_o those_o of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n as_o be_v ample_o prove_v disc_n 1._o c._n 9_o 10._o 11._o 12._o therefore_o their_o religion_n as_o protestancy_n be_v without_o proof_n vnevidence_v if_o they_o can_v gainsay_v my_o assertion_n let_v they_o speak_v and_o bring_v their_o motive_n to_o light_n we_o will_v glad_o hear_v what_o can_v be_v answer_v plain_o to_o this_o one_o plain_a demand_n 22._o after_o a_o general_n view_v take_v of_o protestancy_n we_o may_v descend_v to_o particular_n and_o inquire_v in_o the_o next_o place_n why_o the_o professor_n of_o it_o believe_v so_o much_o as_o one_o article_n of_o this_o novelty_n for_o example_n two_o sacrament_n only_o no_o sacrifice_n no_o church_n infallible_a why_o they_o believe_v and_o it_o be_v the_o worst_a of_o all_o yea_o and_o a_o paradox_n protestant_n astrange_v paradon_n of_o protestant_n beyond_o expression_n that_o christ_n abandon_v the_o very_a church_n he_o found_v in_o the_o great_a need_n and_o danger_n that_o can_v concern_v a_o church_n which_o be_v and_o be_v to_o defend_v it_o from_o heresy_n here_o we_o may_v just_o stand_v astonish_v and_o ask_v how_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o ouâ_n careful_a lord_n jesus_n like_o one_o drowsy_a or_o forgetful_a of_o his_o charge_n withdraw_v his_o providence_n from_o that_o church_n he_o found_v what_o have_v he_o be_v asleep_o so_o long_o it_o be_v true_a when_o he_o enter_v a_o little_a boat_n matt._n 8._o it_o be_v a_o type_n of_o the_o church_n a_o great_a tempest_n arise_v he_o seem_v regardless_o of_o his_o disciple_n fear_n and_o sleep_v a_o while_n but_o to_o say_v he_o have_v now_o sleep_v on_o for_o a_o thousand_o perish_v christ_n found_v the_o roman_a catholich_n church_n yet_o protestant_n say_v he_o suffer_v it_o to_o perish_v year_n and_o like_o one_o reckless_a suffer_v that_o ark_n he_o build_v not_o only_o to_o be_v toss_v with_o the_o worst_a of_o tempest_n but_o to_o be_v overturn_v with_o a_o deluge_n of_o error_n and_o fall_v doctrine_n be_v a_o novelty_n fit_a for_o protestant_n to_o broach_n then_o any_o christian_a in_o the_o world_n to_o hear_v or_o think_v of_o ask_v therefore_o what_o scripture_n what_o vnanimous_a consent_n of_o father_n or_o council_n have_v they_o for_o this_o long_o suppose_a negligence_n of_o our_o vigilant_a lord_n i_o will_v tell_v you_o they_o can_v allege_v just_a so_o much_o proof_n for_o this_o unheard_a of_o paradox_n as_o they_o do_v for_o their_o other_o novelty_n which_o be_v pure_o nothing_o protestancy_n therefore_o whether_o we_o consider_v unprove_v protestancy_n every_o way_n unprove_v it_o in_o a_o general_n way_n or_o descend_v to_o the_o particular_a tenant_n thereof_o be_v mere_o fancy_n a_o vnproved_a and_o
exclamation_n the_o prophet_n lesson_n and_o the_o wise_a counsel_n of_o the_o son_n of_o syrach_n the_o wisdom_n and_o knowledge_n of_o god_n quis_fw-la cognovit_fw-la sensum_fw-la domini_fw-la who_o have_v know_v the_o mind_n of_o our_o lord_n or_o who_o have_v be_v his_o counsellor_n learn_v well_o that_o good_a lesson_n esay_n 55._o 9_o my_o thought_n be_v not_o your_o thought_n for_o as_o the_o heaven_n be_v exalt_v above_o the_o earth_n sâ_n be_v my_o way_n exalt_v above_o you_o and_o my_o cogitation_n above_o your_o cogitation_n learn_v more_o of_o jesus_n the_o wise_a son_n of_o syrach_n eccles_n 33._o 15._o and_o look_v with_o he_o upon_o all_o evil._n teach_v ââ_o to_o reverence_n god_n permission_n of_o evil._n the_o work_n of_o the_o high_a you_o see_v two_o against_o two_o and_o one_o against_o one_o against_o evil_n be_v good_a against_o death_n be_v life_n against_o a_o just_a man_n be_v a_o sinner_n and_o i_o add_v against_o truth_n you_o have_v heresy_n s._n austin_n lib._n 11._o de_fw-la civitate_fw-la c._n 18._o call_v work_n s._n augustine_n discourse_n of_o contrariety_n in_o god_n work_n these_o thing_n rârum_fw-la antitheta_fw-la contrarity_n in_o the_o work_n of_o god_n and_o moreover_o assure_v we_o that_o his_o goodness_n will_v never_o have_v create_v either_o man_n or_o angel_n in_o who_o evil_n be_v foresee_v nisi_fw-la pariter_fw-la nosset_n quibus_fw-la eos_fw-la bonorum_fw-la usibus_fw-la accommodaret_fw-la unless_o he_o have_v also_o know_v how_o useful_a subservient_fw-fr and_o beneficial_a i_o will_v will_v prove_v at_o last_o to_o virtuous_a good_a men._n atque_fw-la ita_fw-la in_o ordinem_fw-la seculorum_fw-la tanquam_fw-la pulcherrimum_n carmen_fw-la etiam_fw-la ex_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la quasi_fw-la antithetis_fw-la honestaret_fw-la and_o how_o that_o in_o the_o cours_n of_o age_n he_o may_v commend_v and_o set_v forth_o all_o we_o see_v like_o a_o well_o make_v verse_n with_o certain_a contrariety_n truth_n evil_n grace_v virtue_n and_o error_n give_v a_o lustre_n to_o truth_n evil_n therefore_o have_v its_o good_a and_o give_v a_o grace_n to_o virtue_n error_n add_n a_o comeliness_n to_o truth_n and_o the_o more_o ugly_a heresy_n be_v the_o more_o it_o sett'_v forth_o the_o lustre_n of_o christ_n orthodox_n church_n and_o make_v it_o glorious_a doctrine_n s._n austin_n confirm's_n the_o doctrine_n pictor_n novit_fw-la they_o be_v word_n of_o s._n austin_n serm._n de_fw-fr diversis_fw-la c._n 5._o fine_n ubi_fw-la ponat_fw-la nigrum_fw-la colorem_fw-la ut_fw-la sit_fw-la decora_fw-la pictura_fw-la &_o nescit_fw-la deus_fw-la ubi_fw-la ponat_fw-la peccatores_fw-la ut_fw-la sit_fw-la ordinata_fw-la creatura_fw-la a_fw-it painter_n know_v well_o where_o to_o lay_v dark_a colour_n that_o his_o piece_n may_v be_v fair_a to_o the_o eye_n and_o shall_v not_o god_n know_v where_o to_o place_v sinner_n the_o like_a be_v of_o heretic_n that_o his_o creature_n may_v thereby_o appear_v church_n and_o shâwâs_v of_o what_o use_v err_a man_n be_v to_o the_o church_n seemly_a and_o in_o order_n yes_o most_o assure_o this_o great_a doctor_n say_v yet_o more_o lib._n de_fw-la vera_fw-la beligione_fw-la c._n 6._o haec_fw-la enim_fw-la catholica_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la per_fw-la totum_fw-la orbem_fw-la validè_fw-la lateque_fw-la diffusa_fw-la omnibus_fw-la errantibus_fw-la ad_fw-la profectus_fw-la suos_fw-la &_o ad_fw-la eorum_fw-la correctionem_fw-la cum_fw-la evigilare_fw-la voluerint_fw-la etc._n etc._n this_o catholic_n church_n so_o far_o and_o near_o diffuse_v make_v benefit_n of_o all_o poor_a err_a soul_n yea_o and_o do_v so_o for_o their_o amendment_n when_o they_o shall_v please_v to_o awake_v out_o of_o their_o drowsiness_n it_o make_v use_n of_o gentile_n to_o let_v they_o see_v the_o wonder_n it_o work_v of_o heretic_n to_o prove_v its_o holy_a doctrine_n of_o schismatic_n to_o give_v they_o a_o lesson_n of_o better_a stability_n of_o jew_n to_o show_v they_o the_o beauty_n of_o christian_a religion_n etc._n etc._n so_o it_o be_v all_o the_o blindness_n in_o the_o world_n say_v s._n austin_n else_o be_v ad_fw-la aliquem_fw-la usum_fw-la sanctorum_fw-la ordinatur_fw-la be_v ordain_v for_o some_o church_n heresy_n serviceable_a to_o the_o church_n profit_n and_o service_n of_o god_n elect_n and_o choose_a people_n 8._o conclude_v therefore_o as_o there_o will_v be_v delude_v soul_n whether_o jew_n or_o gentile_n as_o there_o will_v be_v sin_n oppression_n and_o open_a injustice_n to_o the_o end_n of_o age_n sic_fw-la oportet_fw-la haereses_fw-la esse_fw-la so_o there_o will_v be_v heresy_n also_o church_n no_o wonder_n that_o some_o wilful_o shut_v their_o eye_n to_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o church_n and_o those_o who_o wilful_o shut_v their_o eye_n to_o the_o evidence_n of_o a_o glorious_a mother_n church_n and_o wonder_v not_o at_o it_o for_o you_o know_v that_o the_o son_n of_o god_n himself_o come_v into_o the_o world_n et_fw-la mundus_fw-la cum_fw-la non_fw-la cognovit_fw-la and_o the_o world_n will_v not_o know_v he_o his_o sacred_a doctrine_n be_v preach_v all_o over_o but_o seem_v judaeis_n scandalum_fw-la gentibus_fw-la stultitia_fw-la a_o scandal_n to_o the_o jew_n and_o a_o foolery_n all._n when_o the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v not_o know_v to_o all._n to_o the_o gentile_n what_o marvel_n be_v it_o then_o that_o his_o own_o holy_a church_n be_v less_o regard_v by_o dispirited_a soul_n and_o the_o doctrine_n thereof_o set_v light_n by_o have_v patience_n wait_v on_o god_n good_a leisure_n no_o hart_n be_v so_o hard_a but_o grace_n can_v soften_v it_o these_o dimm_n eye_n of_o deceive_v man_n will_v at_o last_o be_v open_v et_fw-la videbit_fw-la omnis_fw-la caro_fw-la salutare_fw-la dei_fw-la and_o all_o shall_v see_v and_o know_v that_o as_o there_o be_v no_o other_o saviour_n but_o one_o christ_n our_o lord_n so_o there_o be_v no_o other_o church_n but_o church_n no_o other_o christ_n but_o one_o no_o other_o church_n but_o the_o one_o only_a roman_a catholic_n church_n one_o wherein_o salvation_n long_o seek_v for_o can_v be_v find_v but_o in_o the_o one_o only_a ancient_n apostolical_a catholic_n and_o holy_a roman_a church_n credo_fw-la sanctam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la catholicam_fw-la finis_fw-la the_o chapter_n in_o order_n the_o first_o discourse_n of_o a_o infallible_a church_n and_o infallible_a teacher_n chap._n i._o there_o be_v infallible_a teacher_n of_o true_a christian_a religion_n page_n 16._o chap._n ii_o the_o infallible_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n necessary_o require_v infallible_a teacher_n 20_o chap._n iii_o other_o proof_n for_o teacher_n and_o a_o church_n infallible_a 29_o chap._n iv_o reply_v to_o these_o argument_n be_v answer_v 36_o chap._n v._o a_o controversy_n with_o some_o late_a sectary_n concern_v moral_a certainty_n 49_o chap._n vi_o faith_n only_o moral_o certain_a be_v no_o faith_n protestant_n have_v no_o moral_a certainty_n of_o protestant_a religion_n 63_o chap._n vii_o how_o sectary_n err_v in_o the_o search_n make_v after_o religion_n of_o their_o weak_a and_o improbable_a opposition_n the_o objection_n be_v more_o full_o answer_v 70_o chap._n viii_o a_o few_o reflection_n make_v upon_o these_o motive_n of_o credibility_n no_o religion_n have_v motive_n sound_v moral_a certainty_n but_o one_o only_a which_o be_v ãâã_d roman_n catholic_n religion_n 78_o chap._n ix_o a_o short_a digression_n concern_v the_o shuffle_n of_o protestant_n in_o this_o matter_n 88_o chap._n x._o protestant_n have_v no_o rational_a motive_n whereby_o their_o new_a faith_n be_v evidence_v to_o be_v so_o much_o as_o probable_a 96_o chap._n xi_o argument_n draw_v from_o reason_n against_o protestant_n upon_o the_o consideration_n of_o these_o declare_a motive_n 114_o chap._n xii_o protestant_n for_o want_v of_o rational_a motive_n can_v convert_v a_o infidel_n to_o christian_a faith_n 119_o chap_n xiii_o protestancy_n for_o want_n of_o rational_a motive_n dishonor_n christ_n and_o make_v way_n for_o any_o new_a coin_a heresy_n 128_o the_o second_o discourse_n of_o scripture_n chap._n i._o scripture_n be_v useless_a if_o none_o declare_v infallible_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o 135_o chap._n ii_o the_o fallacy_n of_o protestant_n concern_v scripture_n and_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v discover_v 144_o chap._n iii_o all_o substantial_o of_o faith_n be_v not_o plain_a in_o scripture_n without_o a_o infallible_a teacher_n 153_o chap._n iu_o sole_a scripture_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n can_v be_v no_o rule_n of_o faith_n protestant_n have_v no_o scripture_n for_o their_o religion_n as_o it_o be_v protestancy_n 162_o chap._n v._o the_o reason_n of_o private_a man_n and_o their_o private_a spirit_n can_v interpret_v scripture_n 169_o chap._n vi_o the_o new_a mode_n of_o protestant_n misinterpret_v scripture_n which_o prove_v the_o church_n infallibility_n be_v more_o ample_o refute_v 179_o chap._n vii_o more_o of_o this_o subject_n 187_o chap._n viii_o the_o new_a mode_n of_o sectary_n misinterpret_v scripture_n destroy_v protestant_n religion_n 195_o chap._n ix_o of_o the_o mean_n leave_v by_o almighty_a god_n to_o interpret_v scripture_n true_o one_o
passage_n more_o of_o scripture_n prove_v infallible_a teacher_n be_v quote_v 203_o chap._n x._o objection_n be_v answer_v 217_o the_o three_o discourse_n of_o sectary_n unreasonable_a proceed_v chap._n i._o protestant_n be_v unreasonable_a whilst_o they_o seem_o hold_v a_o catholic_n church_n distinct_a from_o the_o roman_a neither_o know_v nor_o designable_a by_o any_o 231_o chap._n ii_o of_o a_o late_a writer_n doctrine_n 236_o chap._n iii_o the_o pretend_a reformation_n of_o protestant_n be_v unreasonable_a if_o faith_n in_o christ_n only_o suffice_v for_o salvation_n a_o more_o explicit_fw-la faith_n be_v prove_v necessary_a 244_o chap._n iu_o the_o ambiguous_a discourse_n of_o protestant_n concern_v fundamental_o in_o faith_n be_v prove_v unreasonable_a 250_o chap._n v._o a_o answer_n to_o one_o reply_n more_o of_o this_o subject_n 262_o chap._n vi_o some_o few_o proposition_n of_o a_o late_a writer_n be_v brief_o examine_v his_o discourse_n of_o fundamental_o destroy_n protestant_n religion_n 271_o chap._n vii_o more_o of_o this_o subject_n objection_n be_v answer_v 291_o chap._n viii_o protestant_n be_v unreasonable_a in_o the_o defense_n of_o their_o late_a manifest_a and_o undoubted_a schism_n 315_o chap._n ix_o protestant_n can_v make_v good_a their_o charge_n against_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n concern_v causal_a schism_n 323_o chap._n x._o the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n whilst_o evidence_n come_v not_o against_o it_o stand_v firm_a upon_o its_o ancient_n possess_v right_o this_o long_a possession_n prove_v the_o church_n orthodox_n 333_o chap._n xi_o of_o a_o late_a writer_n exception_n against_o our_o plead_v possession_n 339_o chap._n xii_o another_o objection_n and_o whether_o protestant_n can_v acquit_v themselves_o of_o schism_n 357_o chap._n xiii_o a_o second_o argument_n against_o this_o schism_n of_o sectary_n cavil_v concern_v error_n enter_v the_o church_n insensible_o 362_o chap._n fourteen_o a_o word_n to_o a_o few_o suppose_a and_o unproved_a assertion_n whereby_o some_o endeavour_n to_o clear_a protestant_n of_o schism_n 379_o chap._n xv._o more_o of_o these_o author_n confuse_a doctrine_n be_v refute_v 387_o the_o four_o discourse_n of_o the_o church_n evident_a credibility_n of_o the_o improbability_n of_o protestancy_n chap._n i._n christ_n church_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v no_o other_o but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n sectary_n be_v convince_v of_o error_n 405_o chap._n ii_o protestancy_n be_v a_o unevidence_v and_o a_o most_o improbable_a religion_n or_o rather_o no_o religion_n but_o a_o mere_a fancy_v opinion_n 420_o chap._n iii_o a_o word_n more_o of_o sectary_n new_a mode_n of_o argue_v lay_v forth_o by_o touch_v on_o one_o controversy_n concern_v the_o doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n 434_o chap._n iu_o a_o parallel_n of_o proof_n for_o and_o against_o tâe_v doctrine_n of_o purgatory_n a_o solution_n to_o a_o late_a adversary_n objection_n 452_o chap._n v._o a_o objection_n propose_v and_o solve_v in_o a_o discourse_n of_o another_o controversy_n which_o be_v the_o real_a presence_n 477_o chap._n vi_o sectary_n without_o either_o proof_n or_o principle_n wrest_v christ_n word_n to_o a_o improper_a sense_n and_o vent_v a_o heresy_n upon_o mere_a fancy_n 489_o chap._n vii_o how_o different_o we_o and_o sectary_n proceed_v in_o this_o controversy_n what_o they_o be_v to_o prove_v 506_o chap._n viii_o the_o conclusion_n the_o church_n evidence_n 517_o some_o few_o of_o the_o more_o chief_z content_n of_o this_o treatise_n the_o first_o discourse_n of_o infallible_a teacher_n and_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n christs_n church_n have_v infallible_a teacher_n of_o true_a christian_a religion_n christ_n infallible_a doctrine_n require_v infallible_a teacher_n a_o doctrine_n that_o be_v fallible_a may_v be_v fall_v christ_n send_v none_o to_o teach_v any_o other_o doctrine_n but_o that_o which_o may_v be_v resolve_v into_o god_n certain_a revelation_n but_o such_o a_o doctrine_n can_v neither_o be_v fall_v nor_o fallible_a sectary_n preach_v no_o other_o doctrine_n but_o what_o be_v fallible_a and_o may_v be_v fall_v the_o objective_a infallibility_n of_o god_n word_n in_o scripture_n be_v not_o ex_fw-la terminis_fw-la evident_a and_o no_o church_n as_o they_o say_v ever_o yet_o tell_v they_o or_o can_v tell_v they_o infallible_o that_o it_o be_v infallible_a if_o all_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n may_v err_v in_o their_o delivery_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n god_n will_v as_o indifferent_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v a_o lie_n as_o his_o certain_a verity_n if_o god_n deprive_v all_o pastor_n of_o infallible_a assistance_n christian_a religion_n now_o stand_v on_o no_o more_o firm_a ground_n than_o man_n weak_a mutable_a and_o err_a opinion_n god_n infallible_a revelation_n avail_v nothing_o in_o order_n to_o faith_n unless_o christian_n lay_v hold_v on_o the_o certainty_n thereof_o by_o faith_n which_o can_v be_v do_v unless_o that_o oracle_n which_o propose_v the_o revelation_n to_o all_o be_v infallible_a if_o the_o proponent_n of_o a_o revelation_n only_o say_v doubtful_o i_o think_v god_n speak_v as_o i_o preach_v but_o be_o not_o certain_a the_o assent_n give_v to_o his_o preach_v be_v also_o doubtful_a and_o no_o faith_n faith_n surpass_v in_o its_o strength_n and_o tendency_n all_o moral_a and_o metaphysical_a certainty_n though_o moral_a certainty_n be_v sufficient_a for_o faith_n yet_o sectary_n have_v not_o so_o much_o for_o protestancy_n as_o it_o be_v reform_v how_o sectary_n err_v in_o their_o search_n make_v after_o religion_n and_o both_o weak_o and_o improbable_o oppugn_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n roman_n church_n reflection_n upon_o the_o motive_n of_o credibility_n it_o be_v impossible_a after_o the_o establishment_n of_o true_a faith_n in_o the_o world_n that_o god_n permit_v a_o false_a religion_n to_o be_v more_o clear_o evidence_v to_o reason_n by_o force_n of_o rational_a motive_n then_o true_a religion_n be_v manifest_v a_o fall_v religion_n can_v equalise_v god_n true_a religion_n in_o the_o evidence_n of_o prudent_a motive_n induce_v to_o faith_n no_o religion_n have_v motive_n sound_v moral_a certainty_n prerequire_v to_o faith_n but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n only_a protestant_n have_v nothing_o like_o rational_a motive_n whereby_o protestancy_n as_o protestancy_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v so_o much_o as_o probable_a where_o mr._n stillingfleet_n treat_v of_o resolve_v protestant_n faith_n he_o wave_v the_o question_n whole_o and_o speak_v no_o more_o in_o behalf_n of_o protestancy_n than_o arianism_n or_o another_o heresy_n argument_n draw_v from_o reason_n against_o protestant_n upon_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o church_n motive_n sectary_n can_v for_o want_v of_o prudent_a motive_n induce_v to_o faith_n convert_v a_o infidel_n to_o christian_a religion_n their_o religion_n dishonour_v christ_n and_o make_v way_n to_o any_o new_a coin_a heresy_n the_o second_o discourse_n of_o scripture_n scripture_n be_v a_o useless_a book_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o sectary_n if_o none_o as_o they_o confess_v declare_v infallible_o the_o sense_n of_o it_o in_o high_a point_n of_o controversy_n arian_n interpret_v scripture_n as_o probable_o as_o protestant_n when_o they_o oppose_v the_o sense_n receive_v by_o the_o church_n sectary_n make_v scripture_n a_o book_n that_o prove_v all_o religion_n and_o more_o significant_a for_o arianism_n then_o protestancy_n the_o fallacy_n of_o protestant_n concern_v the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v discover_v grant_v no_o infallible_a church_n we_o have_v no_o assurance_n of_o true_a and_o interrupt_a scripture_n scripture_n may_v be_v more_o easy_o corrupt_v then_o a_o whole_a church_n cheat_v into_o false_a doctrine_n no_o man_n can_v prudent_o suppose_v that_o god_n have_v more_o care_n to_o preserve_v scripture_n uncorrupt_a than_o a_o church_n free_a from_o error_n all_o substantial_o of_o faith_n be_v not_o in_o scripture_n a_o learned_a philosopher_n by_o his_o own_o read_v scripture_n can_v judge_v what_o it_o mean_v in_o a_o hundred_o passage_n without_o a_o interpreter_n sectary_n now_o be_v in_o the_o very_a same_o case_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n sectary_n in_o their_o gloss_n on_o scripture_n do_v nothing_o but_o add_v and_o subtract_v from_o god_n word_n when_o they_o oppose_v the_o church_n sense_n of_o scripture_n sole_a scripture_n without_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n can_v be_v no_o rule_n of_o faith_n protestant_n have_v not_o one_o word_n of_o scripture_n for_o their_o religion_n as_o it_o be_v protestancy_n the_o reason_n of_o private_a man_n or_o of_o a_o private_a spirit_n can_v interpret_v scripture_n the_o new_a mode_n of_o protestant_n misinterpret_v scripture_n be_v ample_o refute_v all_o our_o sectary_n endeavour_n be_v to_o turn_v scripture_n off_o from_o the_o catholic_n sense_n by_o their_o own_o fancy_n and_o then_o think_v the_o work_n don_fw-mi it_o be_v one_o thing_n to_o say_v and_o only_o to_o say_v it_o that_o scripture_n allege_v by_o we_o prove_v not_o what_o we_o intend_v and_o another_o positive_o to_o prove_v the_o doctrine_n contrary_a
to_o we_o to_o be_v ground_v on_o scripture_n in_o this_o sectary_n always_o fail_v the_o new_a mode_n of_o sectary_n interpret_n scripture_n destroy_v protestant_n religion_n here_o be_v the_o sequel_n of_o sectary_n we_o catholic_n prove_v not_o what_o we_o assert_v therefore_o they_o make_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n a_o article_n of_o their_o new_a faith_n faith_n can_v rely_v on_o such_o negative_n of_o the_o mean_n leave_v by_o almighty_a god_n to_o interpret_v scripture_n the_o holy_a ghost_n only_o speak_v by_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o church_n interpret_n scripture_n infallible_o in_o those_o matter_n which_o concern_v the_o general_a belief_n of_o all_o protestant_n who_o profess_v themselves_o to_o be_v fallible_a in_o what_o ever_o they_o teach_v be_v no_o instrument_n assume_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o teach_v and_o interpret_v infallible_o god_n word_n no_o sectary_n can_v judge_v the_o church_n but_o the_o church_n be_v to_o judge_v all_o sectary_n the_o third_z discourse_n of_o the_o unreasonable_a proceed_n of_o protestant_n in_o some_o chief_a matter_n of_o controversy_n protestant's_n who_o seem_o hold_v a_o catholic_n church_n before_o luther_n large_a than_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n and_o can_v design_v it_o proceed_v unreasonable_o and_o must_v falsify_v that_o article_n of_o our_o creed_n i_o believe_v the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n before_o luther_n there_o be_v no_o christian_n in_o the_o world_n for_o a_o thousand_o year_n at_o least_o but_o roman_a catholic_n and_o know_v heretic_n neither_o those_o catholic_n alone_o as_o protestant_n say_v nor_o the_o know_a heretic_n nor_o both_o together_o constitute_v the_o true_a catholic_n church_n therefore_o there_o be_v no_o true_a catholic_n church_n on_o earth_n for_o so_o vast_a a_o time_n no_o abstract_a doctrine_n common_a to_o all_o who_o be_v name_v christian_n be_v sufficient_a to_o constitute_v catholic_n doctrine_n mr._n stillingfleet_n be_v confute_v and_o his_o doctrine_n show_v improbable_a faith_n in_o christ_n only_o as_o a_o redeemer_n be_v insufficient_a to_o salvation_n a_o more_o explicit_a faith_n of_o other_o particular_n be_v prove_v necessary_a if_o catholic_n and_o sectary_n be_v right_a in_o the_o fundamental_o of_o faith_n all_o the_o pretend_a reformation_n of_o protestant_n come_v to_o a_o slight_a work_n about_o non_fw-la essential_o which_o may_v have_v make_v thing_n worse_a than_o before_o it_o be_v not_o the_o less_o or_o more_o weight_n of_o thing_n reveal_v that_o make_v faith_n less_o or_o more_o value_v of_o but_o the_o submission_n we_o yield_v to_o god_n veracity_n which_o be_v one_o and_o of_o equal_a authority_n in_o what_o ever_o he_o reveal_n though_o a_o distinction_n be_v grant_v between_o fundamental_o and_o not_o fundamental_o yet_o protestant_n can_v so_o much_o as_o probable_o sever_v the_o fundamental_o from_o the_o other_o by_o any_o know_a principle_n if_o there_o be_v no_o catholic_n church_n own_v at_o least_o infallible_a in_o fundamental_o all_o faith_n both_o of_o christ_n and_o creed_n may_v perish_v before_o the_o world_n end_n be_v and_o if_o there_o be_v such_o a_o infallible_a church_n in_o fundamental_o sectary_n ought_v to_o design_n it_o and_o say_v to_o who_o that_o spirit_n be_v grant_v in_o what_o subject_n it_o reside_v etc._n etc._n a_o protestant_n who_o so_o far_o deny_v christ_n true_a church_n that_o he_o can_v say_v where_o it_o be_v and_o endeavor_n to_o reform_v other_o before_o he_o have_v certainty_n of_o his_o own_o half_a well_o make_v reformation_n can_v probable_o go_v about_o to_o withdraw_v a_o prudent_a catholic_n from_o his_o religion_n some_o proposition_n of_o mr._n stillingfleet_n be_v examine_v his_o discourse_n of_o fundamental_o destroy_n protestant_n religion_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o be_v of_o a_o church_n and_o say_v not_o precise_o how_o much_o doctrine_n constitute_v that_o be_v he_o can_v name_v any_o orthodox_n church_n that_o ever_o except_v against_o the_o article_n believe_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n he_o make_v the_o negative_a article_n of_o the_o english_a church_n not_o to_o be_v article_n of_o faith_n but_o only_o inferior_a truth_n hold_v only_o in_o order_n to_o peace_n and_o tranquillity_n his_o church_n therefore_o be_v essential_o hypocritical_a which_o may_v believe_v one_o thing_n and_o must_v profess_v a_o other_o though_o protestant_n be_v very_a papist_n in_o hart_n yea_o and_o anathematise_v all_o these_o negative_a article_n they_o may_v be_v look_v on_o as_o bless_a child_n of_o this_o new_a negative_a church_n if_o their_o exterior_a be_v fair_o protestantlike_a he_o make_v his_o church_n no_o more_o a_o english_a church_n then_o a_o church_n of_o arian_n and_o of_o all_o condemn_a heretic_n he_o say_v the_o english_a church_n make_v no_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o such_o as_o have_v the_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n and_o of_o rome_n itself_o the_o assertion_n be_v evident_o untrue_a for_o no_o orthodox_n church_n no_o heretical_a society_n no_o consent_n âf_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n ever_o teach_v that_o a_o doctrine_n wherein_o all_o christian_n agree_v be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n when_o sectary_n say_n christ_n give_v to_o his_o disciple_n a_o sign_n only_o of_o his_o body_n this_o very_a doctrine_n be_v either_o a_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n or_o one_o of_o their_o inferior_a truth_n if_o the_o first_o they_o believe_v that_o which_o never_o have_v the_o approbation_n of_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n much_o less_o of_o rome_n itself_o if_o the_o second_o be_v grant_v they_o have_v no_o divine_a faith_n at_o all_o of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n the_o nullity_n of_o our_o adversary_n ground_n be_v be_v declare_v though_o the_o church_n make_v new_a article_n of_o faith_n if_o we_o speak_v rigorous_o the_o church_n make_v no_o new_a article_n but_o only_o declare_v more_o explicit_o what_o be_v ancient_o believe_v the_o father_n call_v the_o church_n a_o rich_a treasury_n wherein_o the_o depositum_fw-la of_o apostolical_a doctrine_n be_v secure_o preserve_v the_o analogy_n of_o faith_n be_v explicate_v there_o be_v a_o platform_n of_o christian_a religion_n before_o scripture_n be_v write_v and_o the_o apostle_n separate_v themselves_o and_o preach_v to_o several_a nation_n sectary_n who_o seem_o acquiesce_v in_o the_o judgement_n of_o one_o or_o two_o ancient_a father_n most_o inconsequent_o reject_v the_o authority_n of_o a_o learned_a general_n council_n that_o be_v of_o great_a weight_n and_o estimation_n if_o the_o church_n definition_n be_v therefore_o to_o be_v think_v fallible_a because_o man_n declare_v they_o and_o all_o man_n be_v liar_n much_o more_o be_v our_o sectary_n novelty_n and_o gloss_n on_o scripture_n to_o be_v value_v of_o as_o fallible_a upon_o the_o same_o ground_n these_o fallible_a man_n tell_v i_o my_o church_n doctrine_n be_v fallible_a suppose_v false_o it_o be_v so_o it_o be_v altogether_o as_o good_a as_o this_o very_a fallible_a proposition_n be_v that_o say_v it_o be_v fallible_a and_o if_o which_o be_v true_a it_o be_v infallible_a it_o be_v much_o better_a no_o man_n that_o hold_v his_o religion_n fallible_a can_v probable_o endeavour_v to_o convert_v a_o other_o though_o the_o contrary_a religion_n profess_v by_o this_o other_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v no_o more_o but_o fallible_a much_o less_o can_v he_o persecute_v he_o for_o not_o yield_v assent_n to_o a_o fallible_a religion_n all_o the_o storm_n of_o persecution_n raise_v against_o catholic_n be_v not_o upon_o any_o account_n of_o want_n of_o faith_n but_o for_o this_o sole_a cause_n that_o we_o will_v not_o believe_v one_o thing_n and_o force_v our_o conscience_n to_o profess_v a_o other_o which_o be_v to_o say_v we_o be_v persecute_v because_o we_o will_v not_o be_v hypocrite_n the_o unreasonableness_n of_o protestant_n schism_n lay_v forth_o from_o the_o viii_o chap._n of_o the_o three_o discourse_n to_o the_o xv._o the_o separation_n of_o protestant_n from_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n be_v as_o plain_a and_o manifest_v a_o sinful_a schism_n as_o ever_o be_v decry_v rebellion_n in_o a_o kingdom_n or_o any_o violation_n of_o a_o country_n right_o the_o formal_a schism_n of_o sectary_n be_v evident_a but_o the_o causal_n charge_v on_o catholic_n be_v no_o more_o but_o a_o unproved_a calumny_n proof_n bring_v to_o receive_a principle_n fail_v sectary_n whilst_o they_o make_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o formal_a schism_n the_o suppose_a error_n charge_v on_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n by_o sectary_n be_v not_o like_o the_o first_o principle_n in_o nature_n evident_a ex_fw-la terminis_fw-la and_o therefore_o must_v be_v prove_v by_o a_o discourse_n ground_v on_o certain_a principle_n we_o licence_n sectary_n in_o their_o discourse_n against_o we_o to_o make_v use_n of_o all_o imaginable_a sound_a principle_n scripture_n father_n tradition_n or_o what_o they_o plea_n and_o only_o exclude_v
move_v and_z draws_z man_n to_o believe_v be_v it_o how_o you_o will_v inheritance_n protestant_n can_v prove_v that_o the_o operation_n of_o grace_n be_v their_o peculiar_a inheritance_n though_o indeed_o our_o protestant_n have_v a_o odd_a spirit_n they_o can_v show_v probable_o that_o the_o operation_n of_o god_n divine_a grace_n be_v more_o their_o peculiar_a inheritance_n than_o other_o who_o believe_v contrary_a to_o they_o but_o of_o this_o hereafter_o in_o the_o interim_n note_n that_o in_o the_o discourse_n hitherto_o we_o inquire_v not_o so_o much_o after_o the_o reason_n of_o protestant_n for_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n as_o for_o its_o sense_n in_o point_n of_o controversy_n whereof_o you_o will_v see_v more_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n chap._n vi_o the_o new_a mode_n of_o protestant_n misinterpret_v scripture_n which_o prove_v the_o church_n infallibility_n be_v more_o ample_o refute_v 1._o we_o note_v above_o that_o it_o much_o avail_n when_o sectary_n take_v a_o liberty_n of_o gloss_v scripture_n as_o they_o please_v to_o urge_v they_o to_o a_o proof_n of_o their_o interpretation_n by_o this_o close_a deal_v we_o shall_v learn_v much_o of_o their_o fallacious_a spirit_n and_o see_v how_o they_o both_o abuse_v their_o reader_n and_o which_o be_v worse_o the_o sacred_a word_n of_o god_n 2._o in_o the_o former_a discourse_n we_o handle_v that_o controversy_n teacher_n scripture_n most_o significant_a for_o infallible_a teacher_n concern_v the_o infallibility_n of_o pastor_n and_o teacher_n in_o the_o catholic_n church_n to_o prove_v the_o verity_n we_o allege_v such_o express_a scripture_n that_o i_o dare_v affirm_v the_o whole_a bible_n speak_v no_o where_o any_o truth_n of_o our_o christian_a faith_n then_o this_o in_o more_o plain_n catagorical_a and_o significant_a term_n may_v the_o word_n without_o patch_n of_o vain_a gloss_n have_v their_o open_a and_o obvious_a sense_n 3._o for_o the_o infallibility_n then_o of_o live_v teacher_n we_o cite_v what_o christ_n say_v luk._n 10._o 16._o he_o that_o hear_v you_o hear_v i_o etc._n etc._n or_o as_o the_o greek_a read'_v and_o perhaps_o more_o significant_o hear_v you_o he_o hear_v i_o and_o argue_v thus_o he_o who_o hear_v christ_n speak_v here_o be_v a_o teacher_n teacher_n argument_n for_o infallible_a teacher_n subjective_o infallible_a in_o doctrine_n and_o teach_v but_o he_o who_o here_o be_v those_o who_o be_v point_v at_o by_o that_o particle_n you_o here_o be_v christ_n speak_v for_o hear_v you_o he_o hear_v i_o ergo_fw-la he_o here_o be_v teacher_n subjective_o infallible_a in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o teach_v 4._o to_o this_o a_o grandy_n among_o our_o sectary_n answer_n be_v sectary_n the_o gloss_n of_o sectary_n that_o say_v of_o christ_n he_o that_o hear_v you_o etc._n etc._n be_v absolute_o true_a in_o the_o apostle_n who_o keep_v themselves_o to_o that_o which_o be_v reveal_v by_o christ_n but_o it_o be_v only_o conditional_o true_a mark_v the_o gloss_n in_o their_o successor_n id_fw-la est_fw-la so_o long_o and_o so_o far_o as_o you_o speak_v my_o word_n and_o not_o your_o own_o observe_v i_o say_v the_o injury_n do_v the_o text_n by_o a_o self-conceited_a glosser_n and_o he_o speak_v peremptory_o it_o be_v but_o conditional_o true_a in_o their_o successor_n who_o say_v so_o good_a sir_n christ_n or_o you_o prove_v your_o gloss_n which_o overreach_v the_o text_n and_o all_o the_o word_n which_o god_n ever_o speak_v must_v i_o therefore_o be_v fool_v into_o a_o fallible_a how_o desperate_o fallible_a man_n go_v about_o to_o persuade_v that_o all_o pastor_n be_v fallible_a false_a belief_n and_o hold_v all_o the_o pastor_n in_o christ_n church_n fallible_a because_o you_o a_o mere_a fallible_a man_n be_v please_v to_o tell_v i_o they_o be_v fallible_a or_o that_o all_o they_o have_v be_v only_o the_o small_a allowance_n of_o a_o conditional_a but_o of_o no_o absolute_a infallibility_n evangelical_n sincerity_n require_v a_o proof_n of_o a_o assertion_n so_o new_o coin_a produce_v it_o infallible_a a_o new_a sectary_n may_v say_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v only_o conditional_o infallible_a but_o their_o suecessor_n absolute_o infallible_a then_o and_o let_v it_o be_v plain_a scripture_n unless_o this_o be_v do_v any_o new_a haeretick_n may_v give_v the_o quite_o contrary_a gloss_n to_o christ_n word_n and_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v only_o conditional_o infallible_a whilst_o live_v with_o christ_n they_o may_v be_v right_o instruct_v in_o case_n they_o err_v but_o that_o the_o follow_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n be_v make_v absolute_o infallible_a because_o they_o have_v not_o the_o personal_a presence_n of_o so_o good_a a_o master_n to_o reclaim_v they_o in_o case_n they_o swerve_v from_o his_o doctrine_n thus_o much_o be_v say_v and_o only_o say_v without_o proof_n and_o your_o gloss_n good_a sir_n have_v no_o better_a proof_n to_o enhaunse_v it_o but_o your_o own_o say_v which_o be_v not_o worth_a a_o rush_n o_o but_o they_o be_v strange_a kind_n of_o sectary_n say_v you_o who_o deny_v the_o apostle_n infallibility_n they_o be_v so_o indeed_o and_o as_o strange_a they_o be_v who_o deny_v to_o the_o true_a church_n infallible_a teacher_n but_o this_o be_v not_o what_o i_o aim_n at_o all_o i_o now_o say_v be_v that_o if_o such_o sectary_n appear_v perhaps_o among_o you_o in_o england_n they_o prove_v their_o assertion_n as_o well_o by_o vent_v their_o sectary_n fancy_n vent_v without_o proof_n by_o both_o these_o sectary_n gloss_n upon_o christ_n word_n as_o you_o do_v you_o you_o say_v those_o word_n be_v only_o conditional_o true_a in_o the_o apostle_n successor_n but_o prove_v nothing_o they_o say_v the_o word_n be_v conditional_a in_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o but_o absolute_a in_o their_o successor_n and_o prove_v nothing_o you_o be_v here_o both_o alike_o unless_o luther_n proof_n help_v you_o out_o doctor_n martinus_n lutherus_n vult_fw-la sic_fw-la habere_fw-la sic_fw-la volo_fw-la sic_fw-la jubeo_fw-la you_o have_v not_o more_o you_o reply_v where_o the_o command_n be_v for_o preach_v matth._n 28._o the_o restraint_n be_v add_v what_o restraint_n none_o at_o all_o when_o send_v as_o lawful_a missioner_n to_o preach_v christ_n doctrine_n than_o they_o can_v deliver_v no_o other_o doctrine_n send_v by_o he_o and_o as_o member_n of_o the_o church_n then_o found_v herein_o they_o can_v neither_o go_v beyond_o infallible_a how_o far_o the_o apostle_n and_o true_a pastor_n be_v infallible_a nor_o fall_v short_a of_o their_o commission_n i_o say_v as_o send_v for_o no_o man_n god_n know_v say_v that_o the_o apostle_n or_o 70._o disciple_n or_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n be_v or_o be_v infallible_a in_o every_o ordinary_a matter_n whereof_o they_o casual_o discourse_v 5._o well_o but_o the_o message_n these_o 70._o disciple_n be_v send_v upon_o require_v no_o infallible_a assistance_n for_o they_o be_v not_o to_o deliver_v full_o christ_n doctrine_n but_o only_o to_o prepare_v for_o it_o by_o tell_v their_o hearer_n that_o the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v at_o hand_n here_o be_v also_o more_o than_o be_v probable_a or_o can_v be_v prove_v for_o be_v it_o probable_a think_v you_o that_o these_o 70._o send_v to_o preach_v reiterated_a nothing_o but_o these_o few_o word_n the_o kingdom_n of_o god_n be_v at_o hand_n be_v it_o probable_a that_o they_o be_v so_o toung-tyed_n as_o to_o say_v nothing_o at_o all_o of_o this_o kingdom_n of_o christ_n sacred_a virtue_n or_o of_o his_o miracle_n whereby_o he_o found_v this_o kingdom_n etc._n etc._n be_v it_o how_o you_o will_v they_o be_v infallible_a at_o least_o in_o the_o delivery_n of_o that_o message_n for_o have_v christ_n send_v by_o his_o eternal_a father_n personal_o deliver_v the_o message_n he_o have_v speak_v infallible_o but_o say_v the_o text_n he_o who_o here_o be_v you_o hear_v i_o ergo_fw-la these_o 70._o be_v infallible_a in_o the_o message_n they_o deliver_v you_o reply_v again_o though_o the_o apostle_n and_o those_o 70._o disciple_n be_v suppose_v infallible_a before_o a_o obje_fw-fr â£_o ction_n christ_n ascension_n yet_o nothing_o can_v be_v draw_v from_o hence_o for_o the_o church_n continual_a infallibility_n first_o because_o be_v send_v abroad_o by_o christ_n when_o there_o be_v no_o infallible_a write_n contain_v christ_n doctrine_n 2._o they_o have_v sufficient_a evidence_n of_o miracle_n in_o cure_v disease_n and_o cast_v out_o devil_n to_o attest_v that_o infallibility_n to_o this_o second_o answer_v i_o answer_v above_o that_o the_o church_n have_v the_o like_a evidence_n of_o infallibility_n by_o miracle_n cast_v of_o devil_n etc._n etc._n the_o first_o objection_n be_v proofle_n because_o infallible_a writing_n alone_o make_v no_o man_n infallible_a as_o be_v evident_a in_o all_o know_a heretic_n who_o have_v god_n infallible_a word_n yet_o most_o certain_o pervert_v it_o there_o be_v therefore_o as_o much_o need_n of_o a_o